summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69051-0.txt7697
-rw-r--r--old/69051-0.zipbin169646 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h.zipbin1046098 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/69051-h.htm10541
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/cover.jpgbin413664 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/coversmall.jpgbin261618 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/decoline.jpgbin18778 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/dropcap_a.jpgbin27101 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/dropcap_f.jpgbin26233 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/dropcap_i.jpgbin26849 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/dropcap_t.jpgbin26402 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_001.jpgbin43505 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_012.jpgbin34473 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_013.jpgbin49724 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_034.jpgbin47075 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_060.jpgbin48680 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_087.jpgbin43582 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_114.jpgbin35989 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_115.jpgbin41845 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_136.jpgbin39329 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_137.jpgbin44442 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_159.jpgbin35889 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_160.jpgbin43513 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_176.jpgbin32423 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_177.jpgbin51154 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_189.jpgbin34760 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_190.jpgbin35596 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_299.jpgbin44571 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_contents.jpgbin46049 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/i_preface.jpgbin36441 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69051-h/images/title.jpgbin39298 -> 0 bytes
34 files changed, 17 insertions, 18238 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c63ff5a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69051 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69051)
diff --git a/old/69051-0.txt b/old/69051-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 95751d4..0000000
--- a/old/69051-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7697 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Romances of the old town of Edinburgh,
-by Alexander Leighton
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Romances of the old town of Edinburgh
-
-Author: Alexander Leighton
-
-Release Date: September 26, 2022 [eBook #69051]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Sonya Schermann, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The
- Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROMANCES OF THE OLD TOWN OF
-EDINBURGH ***
-
-
-
-
-
- ROMANCES OF THE OLD TOWN
- OF
- EDINBURGH.
-
- BY
- ALEXANDER LEIGHTON,
-
- AUTHOR OF “MYSTERIOUS LEGENDS OF EDINBURGH,” “CURIOUS STORIED
- TRADITIONS OF SCOTTISH LIFE,” ETC.
-
- EDINBURGH:
- WILLIAM P. NIMMO.
- 1867.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The stories in this volume owe their publication to the favour
-extended to my Book of Legends. If I had any apology to make it could
-only--independently of what is due for demerits which the cultivators
-of “the gay science” will not fail to notice--consist in an answer to
-the charge that books of this kind feed a too natural appetite for
-images and stimulants which tends to voracity, and which again tends
-to that attenuation of the mental constitution deserving of the name
-of _marasmus_. I may be saved the necessity of such an apology by
-reminding the reader that, although I plead guilty to the charge of
-invention, I have generally so much of a foundation for these stories
-as to entitle them to be withdrawn from the category of fiction. On
-this subject the reader may be inclined to be more particular in his
-inquiry than suits the possibility of an answer which may at once be
-safe and satisfactory. I would prefer to repose upon the generous
-example of that philanthropic showman, who leaves to those who look
-through his small windows the choice of selecting his great duke out
-of two personages, both worthy of the honour. The reader may believe,
-or not believe, but it is not imperative that he should do either;
-for even at the best--begging pardon of my fair readers for the
-Latin--_fides semper est inevidens in re testificata_.
-
- A. L.
-
- YORK LODGE, TRINITY,
- _January 1867_.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- PAGE
-
- THE STORY OF THE TWO RED SLIPPERS, 1
-
- THE STORY OF THE DEAD SEAL, 13
-
- THE STORY OF MRS HALLIDAY, 35
-
- THE STORY OF MARY BROWN, 60
-
- THE STORY OF THE MERRILLYGOES, 88
-
- THE STORY OF THE SIX TOES, 115
-
- THE STORY OF MYSIE CRAIG, 137
-
- THE STORY OF PINCHED TOM, 160
-
- THE STORY OF THE IRON PRESS, 177
-
- THE STORY OF THE GIRL FORGER, 190
-
- THE STORY OF MARY MOCHRIE AND THE MIRACLE OF THE COD, 214
-
- THE STORY OF THE PELICAN, 238
-
- THE STORY OF DAVIE DEMPSTER’S GHAIST, 255
-
- THE STORY OF THE GORTHLEY TWINS, 277
-
- THE STORY OF THE CHALK LINE, 299
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
- ROMANCES
- OF THE
- OLD TOWN OF EDINBURGH.
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Two Red Slippers.
-
-
-The taking down of the old house of four or five flats, called
-Gowanlock’s Land, in that part of the High Street which used to be
-called the Luckenbooths, has given rise to various stories connected
-with the building. Out of these I have selected a very strange
-legend--so strange, indeed, that, if not true, it must have been the
-production, _quod est in arte summa_, of a capital inventor; nor need I
-say that it is of much importance to talk of the authenticity of these
-things, for the most authentic are embellished by invention, and it is
-certainly the best embellished that live the longest; for all which we
-have very good reasons in human nature.
-
-Gowanlock’s Land, it would seem, merely occupied the site of an older
-house, which belonged, at the time of Prince Charlie’s occupation of
-the city, to an old town councillor of the name of Yellowlees. This
-older house was also one of many stories, an old form in Edinburgh,
-supposed to have been adopted from the French; but it had, which was
-not uncommon, an entry from the street running under an arch, and
-leading to the back of the premises to the lower part of the tenement,
-that part occupied by the councillor. There was a lower flat, and one
-above, which thus constituted an entire house; and which, moreover,
-rejoiced in the privilege of having an extensive garden, running
-down as far as the sheet of water called the North Loch, that secret
-“domestic witness,” as the ancients used to say, of many of the dark
-crimes of the old city. These gardens were the pride of the rich
-burghers of the time, decorated by Dutch-clipped hollies and trim
-boxwood walks; and in our special instance of Councillor Yellowlees’s
-retreat, there was in addition a summer-house, or rustic bower,
-standing at the bottom; that is, towards the north, and close upon
-the loch. I may mention also, that in consequence of the damp, this
-little bower was strewed with rushes for the very special comfort of
-Miss Annie Yellowlees, the only and much-petted child of the good
-councillor.
-
-All which you must take as introductory to the important fact that the
-said Miss Annie, who, as a matter of course, was “very bonnie,” as well
-as passing rich to be, had been, somewhat previous to the prince’s
-entry to the town, pledged to be married to no less considerable a
-personage than Maister John Menelaws, a son of him of the very same
-name who dealt in pelts in a shop of the Canongate, and a student of
-medicine in the Edinburgh University; but as the councillor had in
-his secret soul hankerings after the prince, and the said student,
-John, was a red-hot royalist, the marriage was suspended, all to the
-inexpressible grief of our “bonnie Annie,” who would not have given
-her John for all the Charlies and Geordies to be found from Berwick to
-Lerwick. On the other hand--while Annie was depressed, and forced to
-seek relief in solitary musings in her bower by the loch--it is just as
-true that “it is an ill wind that blaws naebody gude;” nay, the truth
-of the saying was verified in Richard Templeton, a fellow-student of
-Menelaws, and a rival, too, in the affections of Annie; who, being a
-Charlieite as well as an Annieite, rejoiced that his companion was in
-the meantime foiled and disappointed.
-
-Meanwhile, and, I may say, while the domestic affairs of the
-councillor’s house were still in this unfortunate position, the
-prince’s bubble burst in the way which history tells us of, and
-thereupon out came proscriptions of terrible import, and, as fate would
-have it, young Templeton’s name was in the bloody register; the more by
-reason that he had been as noisy as Edinburgh students generally are in
-the proclamation of his partisanship. He must fly or secrete himself,
-or perhaps lose a head in which there was concealed a considerable
-amount of Scotch cunning. He at once thought of the councillor’s house,
-with that secluded back garden and summer-house, all so convenient for
-secrecy, and the envied Annie there, too, whom he might by soft wooings
-detach from the hated Menelaws, and make his own through the medium
-of the pity that is akin to love. And so, to be sure, he straightway,
-under the shade of night, repaired to the house of the councillor,
-who, being a tender-hearted man, could not see a sympathiser with the
-glorious cause in danger of losing his head. Templeton was received, a
-report set abroad that he had gone to France, and all proper measures
-were taken within the house to prevent any domestic from letting out
-the secret.
-
-In this scheme Annie, we need hardly say, was a favouring party; not
-that she had any love for the young man, for her heart was still
-true to Menelaws, (who, however, for safety’s sake, was now excluded
-from the house,) but that, with a filial obedience to a beloved
-father, she felt, with a woman’s heart, sympathy for one who was in
-distress, and a martyr to the cause which her father loved. Need we
-wonder at an issue which may already be looming on the vision of those
-who know anything of human nature? The two young folks were thrown
-together. They were seldom out of each other’s company. Suffering is
-love’s opportunity, and Templeton had to plead for him not only his
-misfortune, but a tongue rendered subtle and winning by love’s action
-in the heart. As the days passed, Annie saw some new qualities in the
-martyr-prisoner which she had not seen before; nay, the pretty little
-domestic attentions had the usual reflex effect upon the heart which
-administered them, and all that the recurring image of Menelaws could
-do to fight against these rising predilections was so far unavailing,
-that that very image waxed dimmer and dimmer, while the present
-object was always working through the magic of sensation. Yes, Annie
-Yellowlees grew day by day fonder of her _protégé_, until at length
-she got, as the saying goes, “over head and ears.” Nay, was she not,
-in the long nights, busy working a pair of red slippers for the object
-of her new affections, and were not these so very suitable to one who,
-like Hercules, was reduced almost to the distaff, and who, unlike that
-woman-tamed hero, did not need them to be applied anywhere but to the
-feet?
-
-In the midst of all this secluded domesticity, there was all that
-comfort which is said to come from stolen waters. Then, was there not
-the prospect of the proscription being taken off, and the two would
-be made happy? Even in the meantime they made small escapades into
-free space. When the moon was just so far up as not to be a tell-tale,
-Templeton would, either with or without Annie, step out into the garden
-with these very red slippers on his feet. That bower by the loch,
-too, was favourable to the fondlings of a secret love; nor was it
-sometimes less to the prisoner a refuge from the eerieness which comes
-of _ennui_--if it is not the same thing--under the pressure of which
-strange feeling he would creep out at times when Annie could not be
-with him; nay, sometimes when the family had gone to bed.
-
-And now we come to a very wonderful turn in our strange story. One
-morning Templeton did not make his appearance in the breakfast-parlour,
-but of course he would when he got up and got his red slippers on.
-Yet he was so punctual, and Annie, who knew that her father had to
-go to the council-chamber, would see what was the cause of the young
-man’s delay. She went to his bed-room door. It was open, but where was
-Templeton? He was not there. He could not be out in the city; he could
-not be even in the garden with the full light of a bright morning sun
-shining on it. He was not in the house; he was not in the garden, as
-they could see from the windows. He was nowhere to be found, and what
-added to the wonder, he had taken with him his red slippers, wherever
-he had gone. The inmates were in wonderment and consternation, and,
-conduplicated evil! they could make no inquiry for one who lay under
-the ban of a bloody proscription.
-
-But wonders, as we all know, generally ensconce themselves in some snug
-theory, and die by a kind of pleasant euthanasia; and so it was with
-this wonder of ours. The councillor came, as the days passed, to the
-conclusion that Templeton, wearied out by his long confinement, had
-become desperate, and had gone abroad. As good a theory as could be
-got, seeing that he had not trusted himself in going near his friends;
-and Annie, whose grief was sharp and poignant, came also to settle
-down with a belief which still promised her her lover, though perhaps
-at a long date. But, somehow or another, Annie could not explain, why,
-even with all the fondness he had to the work of her hands, he should
-have elected to expose himself to damp feet by making the love-token
-slippers do the duty of the pair of good shoes he had left in the
-bed-room.
-
-Even this latter wonder wore away, and months and months passed on
-the revolving wheel which casts months, not less than moments, into
-that gulf we call eternity. The rigour of the Government prosecutions
-was relaxed, and timid sympathisers began to show their heads out of
-doors, but Richard Templeton never returned to claim either immunity
-or the woman of his affections. Nor within all this time did John
-Menelaws enter the house of the councillor; so that Annie’s days were
-renounced to sadness and her nights to reveries. But at last comes the
-eventful “one day” of the greatest of all storytellers, Time, whereon
-happen his startling discoveries. Verily one day Annie had wandered
-disconsolately into the garden, and seated herself on the wooden form
-in the summer-house, where in the moonlight she had often nestled
-in the arms of her proscribed lover, who was now gone, it might be,
-for ever. Objective thought cast her into a reverie, and the reverie
-brought up again the images of these objects, till her heart beat
-with an affection renewed through a dream. At length she started up,
-and wishing to hurry from a place which seemed filled with images at
-once lovable and terrible, she felt her foot caught by an impediment
-whereby she stumbled. On looking down she observed some object of a
-reddish-brown colour, and becoming alarmed lest it might be one of the
-toads with which the place was sometimes invaded, she started back. Yet
-curiosity forced her to a closer inspection. She applied her hand to
-the object, and brought away one of those very slippers which she had
-made for Templeton. All very strange; but what may be conceived to have
-been her feelings when she saw, sticking up from beneath the rushes,
-the white skeleton of a foot which had filled that very slipper! A
-terrible suspicion shot through her mind. She flew to her father, and,
-hurrying him to the spot, pointed out to him the grim object, and
-showed him the slipper which had covered it. Mr Yellowlees was a shrewd
-man, and soon saw that, the foot being there, the rest of the body was
-not far away. He saw, too, that his safety might be compromised either
-as having been concerned in a murder or the harbourage of a rebel; and
-so, making caution the better part of his policy, he repaired to a
-sympathiser, and, having told him the story, claimed his assistance.
-Nor was this refused. That same night, by the light of a lamp, they
-exhumed the body of Templeton, much reduced, but enveloped with his
-clothes; only they observed that the other red slipper was wanting.
-On examining the body, they could trace the evidence of a sword-stab
-through the heart. All this they kept to themselves, and that same
-night they contrived to get the sexton of the Canongate to inter the
-body as that of a rebel who had been killed and left where it was found.
-
-This wonder also passed away, and, as time sped, old things began to
-get again into their natural order. Menelaws began to come again about
-the house, and, as an old love, when the impediments are removed, is
-soon rekindled again, he and Annie became even all that which they
-had once been to each other. The old vows were repeated without the
-slightest reference being made by either party to the cause which had
-interfered to prevent them from having been fulfilled. It was not
-for Annie to proffer a reason, and it did not seem to be the wish of
-Menelaws to ask one. In a short time afterwards they were married.
-
-The new-married couple, apparently happy in the enjoyment of an
-affection which had continued so long, and had survived the crossing of
-a new love, at least on one side, removed to a separate house farther
-up in the Lawnmarket. Menelaws had previously graduated as a doctor,
-and he commenced to practise as such, not without an amount of success.
-Meanwhile, the councillor died, leaving Annie a considerable fortune.
-In the course of somewhere about ten years they had five children. They
-at length resolved on occupying the old house with the garden, for
-Annie’s reluctance became weakened by time. It was on the occasion of
-the flitting that Annie had to rummage an old trunk which Menelaws,
-long after the marriage, had brought from the house of his father, the
-dealer in pelts. There, at the bottom, covered over by a piece of brown
-paper, she found--what? The very slipper which matched the one she
-still secretly retained in her possession. _Verbum sapienti._ You may
-now see where the strange land lies; nor was Annie blind. She concluded
-in an instant, and with a horror that thrilled through her whole body,
-that Menelaws had murdered his rival. She had lain for ten years in
-the arms of a murderer. She had borne to him five children. Nay, she
-loved him with all the force of an ardent temperament. The thought was
-terrible, and she recoiled from the very possibility of living with him
-a moment longer. She took the fatal memorial and secreted it along with
-its neighbour, and having a friend at a little distance from Edinburgh,
-she hurried thither, taking with her her children. Her father had left
-in her own power a sufficiency for her support, and she afterwards
-returned to town. All the requests of her husband for an explanation
-she resisted, and indeed they were not long persisted in, for Menelaws
-no doubt gauged the reason of her obduracy--a conclusion the more
-likely that he subsequently left Scotland. I have reason to believe
-that some of the existing Menelaws are descended from this strange
-union.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Dead Seal.
-
-
-Among Lord Kames’s session papers there are two informations or written
-pleadings upon the competency of an action of damages. The law point
-was strange enough, but the facts set forth in explanation were much
-more so, amounting indeed to a story so unprecedented, that I cannot
-help being surprised how they have escaped the curiosity of those who
-love “to chronicle the strong beer” of human life and action. Mr John
-Dalrymple, merchant, had passed his honeymoon with his wife (whose
-maiden name was Jean Bisset) in his house in Warrender’s Close, and was
-about to proceed next morning to Glasgow, to execute some commission
-business. They had a cheerful supper; they were both young, both
-healthy, and both hopeful, and surely if under these conditions they
-could not extract some sweets out of the orange of life, they might
-have little chance afterwards, when the pulp would diminish to the
-bitter skin which is inevitable. But the truth is, they had both very
-good powers of suction, and will enough to use them; and if it were not
-that death and life play upon the same string, one might have said that
-the new-married couple stood no apparent risk of any fatal interruption
-to their happiness.
-
-It was accordingly in very good spirits that Mr Dalrymple set forth in
-the morning on his journey. We might perhaps say, that the inspiration
-of her love lent force to his mercantile enterprise, for somehow it
-would seem that all the actions of man beyond the purely selfish play
-round the great passion, just as the gaudy petals of the flowers are
-a kind of acted marriage-song round what is going on in the core of
-the plants; and so having arrived in Glasgow, he would be thinking
-about his Jean, to whom, when he got home again, he would recount the
-wonderful triumphs he had achieved over his competing worshippers in
-the Temple of Mammon. He was to be eight days away, and no doubt,
-according to a moderate calculation, they would appear as so many
-months, were it not that his business engagements would keep these
-days to their normal length. He was to write her every day, but as
-he did not know at what inn he might put up, she was not to write
-to him until she knew where to address him. On the day after his
-arrival he accordingly sent her a very loving letter, containing, we
-presume, as many of those kisses _à la distance_ as is usual in such
-cases, and which in our day would make some noise in the post-office
-receiving-box, if they were endowed with sound. Having performed this
-loving duty, he continued his exertions re-inspired with the hope of
-receiving an answer on the morning of the day following. Then--as happy
-people, like the other animals, are playful--he amused himself at
-intervals, by conjecturing as to what kind of a letter he would get,
-how endearingly expressed it would be, how many “dears” there would
-be in it, what warmth of feeling the words would convey, and how many
-sighs had already been wasted for his return. We might smile at such
-frivolities if we were not called to remember that the most of our
-pleasures, if looked at through the spectacle-glass of Reason, would
-appear to be ridiculous.
-
-The morning came; and, according to the statement of the waiter, the
-letter would arrive about breakfast time. He would thus have two
-or three pleasures rolled up in the same hour; he would sip coffee
-and nectar at the same time; his ham and egg would be sweetened by
-ambrosia; the pleasures of sense would be heightened by those of the
-fancy. All which were promises made by himself, and to himself, while
-he was dressing, and we cannot be sure that he did not make himself
-more sprightly, that he had to appear before the letter of his dear
-Jean. Did not Rousseau blush in presence of the great lady’s dog?
-Do what we may, we cannot get quit of the moral influence exercised
-over us by even inanimate things having the power of suggesting
-associations. But the breakfast was set, all the eatables and
-drinkables were on the table, and the last thing served by the waiter
-was the communication that the postman had passed and had left no
-letter.
-
-The circumstance was rendered more than awkward by his prior hopes and
-anticipations, and it had the effect, moreover, which it surely ought
-not to have had upon a sensible man, of taking away his appetite. That
-it was strange there could be no doubt, for where is the loving wife
-who at the end of the honeymoon would allow a post to pass without
-replying to a loving husband’s letter?--but then he contrived to
-make it more strange by his efforts to satisfy himself that it was
-not strange at all. His reasons did not satisfy him; the humming of
-a Scotch air carried no conviction and produced no appetite; and
-the result was increased anxiety, evidenced by the hanging head and
-heavy eye. Again the main argument was that his or her letter had
-miscarried,--how _could_ there be any other mode of accounting for
-it?--and then he hummed the air again--the breakfast standing all the
-time. All to be again counter-argued by the fact that during all the
-period he had corresponded with Glasgow, there had been no miscarriage
-of a letter, either to or from him. This was the doctrine of chances
-in the form of a stern logic, and the effect was apparent in another
-relapse into fear and anxiety. But Mr Dalrymple, though made a moral
-coward by the intensity of his affection, was withal a sensible man--a
-fact which he gave a good proof of, by placing more faith in brandy
-than logic, for having called for a little of that cordial, he put
-a glassful into his coffee, and thereupon felt, almost as soon as
-the liquor had got into his stomach, that there was really a great
-deal less to fear than he had thought, if the whole affair was not
-a mere bugbear; and what was not less remarkable, if not fortunate,
-the brandy, by dismissing his fears, brought back his appetite, and
-although he required a little longer time, he contrived to make nearly
-as good a breakfast as if he had been favoured with the ambrosial
-accompaniment which he had so hopefully promised himself.
-
-Nor was this a small matter, for the meal served as ballast to enable
-him to encounter something very different from the slight adverse wind
-he had experienced for the last hour. He was still sitting at the
-table, rather pleased that he had triumphed over morbid fears, and
-laying out his scheme for the day, when the words, coming from behind,
-“A letter, sir,” struck his ear as if by a slap. His hand nervously
-seized the proffered gift, his eyes “flew” as it were to meet the
-superscription. He did not know the handwriting. It was directed to the
-care of Messrs Robert Fleming & Co., one of the houses with which he
-had been doing business. So far he was relieved, even when disappointed
-by the absence of his wife’s hand on the address. He turned it with
-the view to break it open, and then stopped and trembled as his eye
-fixed itself on a large black seal, exhibiting the death’s head and
-cross-bones of a funeral letter. Even this he soon got over, under the
-supposition that it was an invitation to some acquaintance’s funeral
-sent through to him, likely, by the recommendation of his wife before
-she had received his true address. At length he broke it open, and read
-the following words:--
-
- “DEAR SIR,--I am sorry to be under the necessity of informing you
- that your wife died this afternoon, between three and four, from
- the bursting of a blood-vessel in the lungs. You will see the
- propriety of starting for home as soon as you receive this melancholy
- intelligence.--Yours,
-
- “A. MORGAN, F.R.C.S.”
-
-No sooner had he read this terrible communication than he was rendered
-as rigid as a statue. The only movement that could have been observed
-in him was in the fingers of the right hand, as it crumpled up the
-paper by the spasm of the muscles acting involuntarily. His eye was
-fixed without an object to claim it, and his teeth were clenched as if
-he had been seized by lockjaw. Conditions which we use strong words to
-describe, as we toil in vain after an expression which must always be
-inadequate, even though the words are furnished by the unhappy victim
-himself. We try a climax by using such expressions as “palsied brain”
-and so forth, all the while forgetting that we are essaying to convey
-a condition of inward feeling by external signs, the thing and the
-sign being in different categories. As he still sat under the stunning
-effect of the letter, the waiter entered to clear the table, but when
-he saw the letter in the clenched hand he retreated from the scene of
-a private grief, which a foreign interference would only have tended
-to irritate; but probably the noise of the closing door helped the
-reaction which comes sooner or later to all victims of moral assaults,
-and by and by he began to think--to see the whole details of the
-tragedy--to be conscious of the full extent of his misery. It was not
-yet time for the beginning of relief, for these conditions are subject
-to the law of recurrence. Like the attacks of an ague they exhaust
-themselves by repetition, and Nature’s way is at best but a cruel
-process of wearing out the sensibility of the palpitating nerve.
-
-How long these oscillations lasted before the unhappy victim was able
-to leave his seat, we cannot tell. But as all thought is motion, so is
-all motion action. He could not retreat from the inevitable destiny.
-He must move on in the maze of the puppets. He must face the dead body
-of his wife. He must bury her, if he should never be able to lay the
-haunting spirit of memory. All business must be suspended, to leave the
-soul to the energies necessary for encountering the ordeal. A certain
-hardness, which belongs to the last feelings of despair, enabled him,
-even with something like deliberation, to go through the preparations
-of departure; but in this he exhibited merely the regularity of a
-machine, which obeys the imposed power behind. At eleven o’clock he was
-seated in the coach, as one placed there to be moved on and on, mile
-by mile, to see the dead body of a wife, whose smiling face, as he had
-seen it last, was still busy with his fancy, and whose voice, as he had
-heard her sing at the parting supper, still rang in his ears.
-
-Nor were his feelings ameliorated by the journey, to remove the
-tediousness of which, at that slow time, the passengers were obliged
-to talk even against sheer Scotch taciturnity. He sat and heard,
-whether he would or not, the account of one who was going to bring home
-a wife; of another who had been away for ten years, and who was to be
-met at the coach-door by one who was dying to clasp him in her arms.
-All which were to him as sounds in another world wide apart from that
-one occupied by him, where he was, as he could not but think, the one
-solitary inhabitant, with one dead companion by his side. By and by, as
-the conversation flagged, he fell into that species of monomania where
-the brooding spirit, doomed to bear a shock, conjures up and holds
-before its view the principal feature of a tragedy. That feature was
-the image of his Jean’s face. It was paler than the palest of corpses,
-to suit the condition of the disease of which she had died. The lips
-were tinged with the blood of the fatal hemorrhage. The eyes were
-blank and staring, as if filled with the surprise and terror of the
-sudden attack. Over all, the fixedness of the muscles,--the contrast of
-death to the versatile movements, which were obedient to the laugh of
-pleasure when he last drew indescribable joy from the changes of her
-humour. No effort could relieve him from that one haunting image. The
-conversation of the party seemed to render it more steadfast--more
-bright--more harrowing. Nor when he tried to realise his feelings, in
-the personal encounter of facing the reality, could he find in himself
-any promise of a power to enable him to bear up against the terrible
-sight. It seemed to him, as the coach moved slowly on, as if he were
-being dragged towards a scaffold draped in black, where he was to
-suffer death.
-
-When the coach at length stopped in the High Street, he was roused as
-from a dream, but the consciousness was even worse than the monomaniac
-condition in which he had been for hours. It was twelve at night; the
-bell of St Giles’s sounded solemnly in the stillness of the sleeping
-city. Every one of the passengers hurried off each to his home or inn,
-all glad of the release. To him it was no release; he would have ridden
-on and on, for days and weeks, if for nothing else than to prolong the
-interval, at the end of which the ordeal he feared so much awaited
-him. Whither now? He stood in the middle of the dark and silent street
-with his portmanteau in his hand, for he was really uncertain whether
-to proceed to his sister’s house in Galloway’s Close, and get her to
-go with him to his own house, as a kind of medium, to break the effect
-of the vision--or to proceed homewards alone. He turned his steps
-towards Galloway’s Close, and soon found that the family had gone to
-bed; at least, all was dark yet. Might not his sister be at his house
-“sitting up” with the corpse? It was not unlikely, and so he turned and
-proceeded towards home, his steps being forced, as if his will had no
-part in his ambulation. Arriving at Warrender’s Close, he stood at the
-foot of his own stair, and, looking up to the windows, he found here,
-too, all dark; nor were there any neighbours astir who might address
-to him some human speech, if not sympathy. The silence was as complete
-as the darkness, and both seemed to derive the dull charm of their
-power from the chamber of death. At length he forced himself, step by
-step, up the stairs, every moment pausing, as well from the exhaustion
-produced by his moral cowardice, as to listen for a stray sound of the
-human voice. He had now got to the landing, and, entering the dark
-passage leading to the door of his own flat, he groped his way along
-by applying his unoccupied hand to the wall. He now felt his nerves
-fast giving way, his heart beat audibly, his limbs shook, and though he
-tried to correct this fear, he felt he had no power, though naturally a
-man of great physical courage.
-
-He must persevere, and a step or two more brought him to the door,
-which he found partially open,--a circumstance he thought strange,
-but could account for by supposing that there were neighbours
-inside--gossips who meet round death-beds to utter wise saws with dry
-eyes. Yet, though he listened, he heard no sounds. He now pushed open
-the door, and so quietly, as if he feared that a grating hinge would
-break the silence. The lobby was still darker than outside, and his
-first step was towards the kitchen, the door of which he pushed back.
-There was no one there,--a cruse which hung upon the wall was giving
-forth the smallest glimmer of a dying light. There was a red peat in
-the grate, smouldering into white ashes. Turning to the servant’s bed,
-he found it unoccupied, with the clothes neatly folded down, no doubt
-by Peggy’s careful hands, and no doubt, too, Peggy had solemn work to
-do “ben the house.” He next crossed the lobby, partly by groping, and
-reached a parlour, the door of which he opened gently. Dark too, and no
-one within. The same process was gone through with the dining-room, and
-with the same negative result. The last door was that of the bed-room,
-where he was to encounter what he feared. It was partially open. He
-placed his ear to the chink and listened, but he heard nothing. There
-was no living voice there, and death speaks none. He pushed the door
-open, and looked fearfully in. A small rushlight on the side-table
-opposite the bed threw some flickering beams around the room, bringing
-out indistinctly the white curtains of the bed. He approached a little,
-and could discover vaguely the form of his wife lying there. Would he
-take up the rushlight, and, with the necessary courage, go forward and
-examine the features? He had arrived at the spot, and at the moment,
-portrayed prospectively in his waking dream during his journey, and
-a few steps, with the rushlight in his hand, would realise the image
-he had brooded over so long. He struggled with himself, but without
-avail. Any little courage he had been for the last few minutes trying
-to summon up utterly gave way. There rushed into his mind vague fancies
-and fears,--creatures of the darkness and the death-like stillness
-around him, which he could neither analyse nor stay. He even thought he
-heard some sound from the bed where the corpse lay,--the consequence of
-all which was total loss of self-possession, approaching to something
-like a panic, and the effect of this, again, was a retreat. He sought
-the door, groped his way again through the inside lobby, got to the
-outer door, along the outer passage, down the stair to the street.
-
-Nor when he got there did he pull up and begin to think of the extreme
-pusillanimity, if not folly, of his conduct. Even if he had tried,
-he could only have wound up his self-crimination by the ordinary
-excuse--that he could not help it. The house, with its stretched
-corpse, deserted rooms, its darkness and silence, was frightful to
-him. He could not return until he found some one to accompany him; and
-he satisfied himself of the reasonableness of this condition by the
-fact that the servant herself had fled in fear from the dismal scene.
-He began to move, though almost involuntarily, down the Canongate,
-his step quick and hurried, after the manner of those who are pursued
-by some danger, the precise nature of which they do not stop to
-examine. He even found a slight relief in the muscular exertion, and
-thus hurrying on, he reached the Duke’s Walk, and came to the heap of
-stones called Muschet’s Cairn, from Nichol Muschet of Boghall, who
-there murdered his wife. With no object but movement to dispel his
-misery, it was indifferent to him whither he should go; and hurrying to
-Arthur’s Seat, he began to climb the hill, regardless of the dangerous
-characters often encountered there at night, any one of whom he had
-courage enough to have throttled at the moment he was flying from what
-was little more than a mere phantom.
-
-Meanwhile the moon had risen, and was illuminating at intervals the
-north-east side of the hill, leaving all in comparative darkness again
-as she got behind the thick clouds which hung heavily in the sky; but
-the light was of no value to one who was moved only by the impulse of
-a distraction. Yet, as he stood for a moment, and looked back upon the
-city, with that Warrender’s Close in the heart of it, and that house
-in the close, and that room with the rushlight within the house, and
-that bed in the room, and that figure so still and silent in the bed,
-he became conscious of a circumstance which had escaped him. He found
-that in his wild wandering, apparently without any other aim than
-to allay unbearable feelings by exertion, he had been unconsciously
-following, step by step, the very track which he and his now lost
-Jean had taken in a walk of the afternoon of the Sunday preceding his
-departure for Glasgow. The thought thus coming as a discovery was in
-itself a mystery, and he felt it to be a kind of duty--though with what
-sanction of a higher power he knew not--to continue that same track of
-the Sunday walk which had been consecrated by the sweet intercourse of
-two loving hearts. In execution of which purpose he kept moving towards
-the east shoulder of the hill, and such hold had this religious fancy
-taken of him, that he looked about for places in the track where some
-part of their conversation had occurred, which, from some peculiarity
-in it, had remained upon his memory. Nay, so weak did he become in his
-devotion, that he threw himself down on the cold grass at spots where
-Jean had required a rest, and had leant her head upon his shoulder,
-and had been repaid by some note of endearment. But in these reclining
-postures, which assumed the form of a species of worship, he remained
-only till the terrible thought of his privation again rose uppermost in
-his mind, forcing him to start to his feet by a sudden spring, and to
-go on again, and brush through the whins that grew on the hill-side, as
-if he courted their obstruction as a relief.
-
-It is said that our ideas produce time, and our feelings devour it;
-and this is true at least where the feelings are of apprehension and
-fear of some inevitable event to occur in the future. He had still the
-ordeal to pass through. The sun would rise, in the light of which he
-would be forced to look on the dead face, and in place of considering
-the time occupied by these wanderings to and fro long and weary, the
-moments, minutes, hours, passed with such rapidity that the moon had
-gone far on in her journey, and the gray streaks of dawn were opening
-up a view to the east, before he could realise the passage of the time
-which had been, as it were, swallowed up by his desire to postpone
-what, by the laws of nature and society, he was bound to endure. How
-many times he had gone round the hill and up to the top, and down to
-Duddingstone, and along by the village road, and in through the bog,
-to begin his rounds again, he could not have told. But at length the
-sun glared threateningly in his face. Time defied him, and at length
-he saw the smoke of the chimneys begin to rise from the city. The red
-peat he had seen in the grate of his own kitchen would at least yield
-none. The household gods had deserted his hearth. Death and silence now
-reigned there. He heard eight o’clock sound from St Giles’s. The people
-were beginning to move in all directions--all in search of pleasure,
-the ultimate end of all man’s exertions--and he could no longer find a
-refuge in darkness or distance; so he began to move in the direction
-of the town with the weariness and lassitude of exhaustion rendering
-his legs rigid and his feet heavy, in addition to the hopelessness of
-a stricken heart. When he got to the Watergate, he began to see faces
-of people whom he knew, and who knew him; but he felt no desire to
-speak, and they doubtless from delicacy passed, without showing any
-desire to stop him. At length he arrived at the head of Warrender’s
-Close, and now he felt as if he were more submissive to the necessity
-of what seemed to be fate, moving his limbs with more will--even with
-something like a wish on his mind to put an end to a long agony. Down
-and down step by step, the drooping head responsive in its nods to
-the movement of his body; up the stair step after step deliberately,
-resolutely; along the outer passage; now opposite his own door. That
-door was now closed, giving indication that the servant, or some friend
-or neighbour, had been in the house since he left. He tapped gently.
-The door was opened almost upon the instant, and Mr John Dalrymple
-was immediately encompassed by the arms of a woman screaming in the
-exultation of immoderate joy.
-
-“John, dear John, how delighted I am to see you,--for oh, we have been
-in such dreadful fear about you since Peggy found your portmanteau in
-the lobby; but, thank God, you are come at last, and just in time for a
-fine warm breakfast.”
-
-The ejaculation, or rather screaming of which words was very easy,
-because very natural, to Mrs Jean Dalrymple, in the happy circumstances
-in which she found herself after so much apprehension produced by the
-mystery connected with the portmanteau, but as for Mr John Dalrymple
-speaking even to the extent of a single syllable was out of the
-question, unless some angel other than she of the house had touched his
-lips with the fire of inspiration, in place of his receiving the kisses
-of his wife. And this was so far well, for he certainly would have
-made a bungle of any attempt at the moment to express his feelings,
-besides laying himself open to a heavier charge of folly than that
-which already stood at the wrong side of his account of wisdom, or
-even common sense. So quietly taking off his hat he led the way into
-the breakfast-parlour, where he saw the breakfast things all neatly
-laid, beside a glowing fire, before which lay his brindled cat, not the
-least happy of the three; whilst Peggy, who had some forgotten thing to
-put on the table, had a pleasant smile on her face, just modified in
-a slight degree with a little apprehension which probably neither the
-master nor mistress could comprehend.
-
-“I will tell you, Jeannie, all about the portmanteau, and perhaps
-something more, when we sit down to breakfast,” words which in the
-meantime were satisfactory to Mrs Jean; and the event they conditioned
-for soon arrived, for the wife was all curiosity and despatch, and
-Peggy all duty and attention.
-
-The story was very soon told, nor did Mrs Jean interrupt the narrative
-by a single word as she sat with staring eyes and open mouth listening
-to the strange tale.
-
-“There is the letter with the dead seal,” said he, as he handed it over
-to her.
-
-Mrs Jean read it, and then began to examine it as if she was
-scrutinising the form of the written words.
-
-“That is the handwriting of Bob Balfour, my old admirer,” said she, at
-length, with animation. “I know his hand as well as I know yours, and
-he has done this in revenge for your having taken me from him. I will
-show you proof.”
-
-And going to a cabinet she took therefrom some letters, which she
-handed to her husband. These proved two things: first, that the letter
-with the black seal, purporting to be signed by Surgeon Morgan, was
-in the handwriting of Balfour, though considerably disguised; and
-secondly, that he had been an ardent lover of Jean, and, perhaps, on
-that account an enemy to the man who had been fortunate enough to
-secure her affections and her hand.
-
-“All clear enough; but I shall have my revenge, too!” cried the
-husband. “In the meantime there are some things to be explained. Why
-did you not write?”
-
-“I wrote to you last night,” said Jean. “You had posted your letter too
-late.”
-
-“And why was not Peggy in the house last night at twelve, when I came
-home?”
-
-“Peggy must answer that herself,” answered Mrs Jean, smiling, and
-looking from her husband to Peggy, and from Peggy to her husband, as
-she spoke; “but I think I know what her answer will be.”
-
-And that answer was indeed very simple, amounting to no more than the
-very natural fact that Peggy, after her mistress had retired to rest,
-had gone up the common stair to Widow Henderson’s, whose son Jock
-was courting Peggy at the time with all commendable assiduity, and
-considerable chance of success.
-
-But our story, though thus so satisfactorily explained, is not yet
-done. Nay, as we have said, its termination was in the court, where
-Mr Dalrymple sued Balfour for damages and _solatium_ for his cowardly
-and cruel act. Nor was this action itself an ordinary matter, for it
-interested the lawyers of the day, not by the romantic facts which
-led to it, but the legal principles which flowed out of it. Balfour’s
-counsel objected to the relevancy, that is, denied there was in a
-lie or practical joke any cause of action. This defence gave rise to
-the informations we have mentioned, for the point raised was new and
-difficult. It was argued by Balfour that lies in the form of hoaxes
-are told every day, some good and some bad. Men know this, and ought
-to be upon their guard, which can be their only security,--for if
-such lies were actionable, one-half of society would be at law with
-the other. And as for any injury inflicted on Mr Dalrymple, it was
-doubtful whether the pleasure he experienced that morning when enclosed
-in the arms of his wife, did not more than compensate for his prior
-sufferings. On the other hand the pursuer argued, that by the law of
-Scotland there is no wrong without a legal remedy, and that having
-suffered by the cruel deceit both in his feelings and in his purse,
-(for he left his business unfinished,) he was entitled to recover. We
-have been unable to find the judgment.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Mrs Halliday.
-
-
-There are little bits of romance spread here and there in the routine
-of ordinary life, but for which we should be like the fairy Aline,
-somewhat weary of always the same flowers blooming, and the same
-birds singing, and the same play of human motives and passions. They
-are something of the nature of episodes which, as in the case of
-epic poems, are often the most touching and beautiful in the whole
-work. Yet the beauty is seldom felt by the actors themselves, who are
-frequently unfortunate; and so it is that they suffer that we may enjoy
-the pathos of their suffering, after it has gone through the hands
-of art. We are led to say this as a kind of prelude to one of those
-episodical dramas which occurred some eighty years ago, and for twenty
-of them formed a household story, as well from the singularity of the
-principal circumstances as from the devotion of the personages. But
-we must go back a little from the main incidents to introduce to the
-reader a certain Patrick Halliday, a general agent for the sale of
-English broadcloth, whose place of business was in the Lawnmarket, and
-dwelling-house in a tenement long called Peddie’s Land, situated near
-the Old Assembly Close. It belongs not much to our story to say that
-Mr Halliday was pretty well-to-do in the world, though probably even
-with youth and fair looks, if he had been a poor man, he would not have
-secured as he did the hand of a certain young lady, at that time more
-remarkable than he. Her name was Julia Vallance. We know no more of her
-except one particular, which many people would rather be known by than
-by wealth, or even family honours, and that was personal beauty--not
-of that kind which catches the eye of the common people, and which is
-of ordinary occurrence, but of that superior order which, addressing
-itself to a cultivated taste, secures an admiration which can be
-justified by principles. And so it came to pass that Julia had before
-her marriage attained to the reputation--probably not a matter of great
-ambition to herself, certainly not at all times very enviable--of being
-the belle of the old city. Nor is this saying little, when we claim it
-in the face of the world as a truth that Edinburgh, in spite of its
-smoke, has at all times been remarkable for many varieties, dark and
-fair, of fine women. A result this which, perhaps, we owe to a more
-equal mixture of the two fine races, the Celt and Saxon, than ever
-took place in England. But Julia had brought her price, and her market
-having been made, she could afford to renounce the admiration of a
-gaping public in consideration of the love of a husband who was as kind
-to her as he was true. As regards their happiness as man and wife, we
-will take that in the meantime as admitted, the more by reason that in
-due time after the marriage they had a child; and, no doubt, they would
-have had many in succession had it not been for the strange occurrence
-which forms the fulcrum of our tale.
-
-Apart from the family in Peddie’s Land, and in no manner connected with
-it, either by blood or favour, was that of Mr Archibald Blair, a young
-man living in Writers’ Court, of whom we can say little more than that
-he was connected with the Borgue family in the Stewartry, an advocate,
-and also married. We are not informed of either the name or lineage of
-his young wife, and far less can we say aught of the perfections or
-imperfections she derived from nature. We are only left to presume that
-if there had been no love, there would probably have been no marriage,
-and in this case, also, we have the fact of a child having been born
-to help the presumption of that which, naturally enough, may be taken
-as granted.
-
-The two families, far asunder in point of grade, and equally far from
-any chance of acquaintanceship, went on in their several walks; nor are
-we entitled to say, from anything previously known of them, that they
-even knew of each other’s existence--unless, to be sure, the reputation
-of Julia for her personal perfections might have come to Blair’s ears
-as it did to many who had perhaps never seen her; but, then, the
-marriage of a beauty is generally the end of her fame, as it is of her
-maiden career; and those who, before that event, are entitled to look
-and admire, and, perhaps, wish to whisper their aspirations, not less
-than to gaze on her beauty, leave the fair one to the happy man to whom
-the gods have assigned her.
-
-We must now allow four years to have passed, during all which time
-Patrick Halliday and his wife--still, we presume, retaining her beauty,
-at least in the matronly form--were happy as the day is long, or,
-rather we should say, as the day is short, for night is more propitious
-to love than day. Nothing was known to have occurred to break the
-harmony which had begun in love, and surely when we have, as there
-appeared to be here, the three requisites of happiness mentioned by
-the ancients--health, beauty, and wealth, there was no room for any
-suspicion that the good deities repented of their gifts. But all this
-only tended to deepen the shadows of a mystery which we are about to
-revive at this late period.
-
-One day, when Patrick Halliday returned from a journey to Carlisle,
-he was thunderstruck by the intelligence communicated to him by his
-servant, that his wife had disappeared two days before, and no one
-could tell whither she had gone. The servant, by her own report,
-had been sent to Leith on a message, and had taken the daughter,
-little Julia, with her; and when she came back, she found the door
-unlocked, and her mistress gone. She had made inquiries among the
-neighbours, she had gone to the acquaintances of the family, she had
-had recourse to every one and every place where it was likely she would
-get intelligence of her--all to no effect. Not a single individual
-could even say so much as that he or she had seen her that day, and
-at length, wearied out by her inquiries, she had had recourse to the
-supposition that she had followed her husband to Carlisle.
-
-The effect of this strange intelligence was simply stupifying. Halliday
-dropt into a chair, and, compressing his temples with his trembling
-hands, seemed to try to retain his consciousness against the echoes of
-words which threatened to take it away. For a time he had no power of
-thought, and even when the ideas began again to resume their train,
-their efforts were broken and wild, tending to nothing but confusion.
-
-He put question after question to the servant, every answer throwing
-him back upon new suppositions, all equally fruitless. The only
-notion that seemed to give him any relief was, that she had gone to a
-distance, to some of her friends--wild enough, yet better than blank
-despair; and as for infidelity, the thought never once occurred to him,
-where there was no ground on which to rear even a doubt.
-
-At length, on regaining something like composure, he rose from his
-seat, and began to walk drearily through the house. He opened his
-desk and found that a considerable sum of money he had left there was
-untouched. He next opened the press in the wall, where she kept her
-clothes. He could not see anything wanting--the gown was there which
-latterly she had been in the habit of putting on when she went out to
-walk with little Julia; her two bonnets, the good and the better--the
-one for everyday and the one for Sunday--hung upon their pegs. Her
-jewels, too, which were in a drawer of her cabinet, were all there,
-with the exception of the marriage-ring she was in the habit of wearing
-every day. There was nothing wanting, save her ordinary body clothes,
-including the fringed yellow wrapper in which, during the forenoon,
-she used to perform her domestic duties, and which he had often thought
-became her better than even her silks. Wherever she had gone, she must
-have departed in her undress and bareheaded--nay, her slippers must
-have been on her feet, for not only were they away, but the high-heeled
-shoes by which she replaced them when she went to walk were in the
-place where they usually lay.
-
-In the midst of all this mystery, the relations and others, who had
-been quickened into a high-wrought curiosity by the inquiries made by
-the servant, dropt in one after another in the expectation that the
-missing wife would have returned with her husband, but they went away
-more astonished than before, and leaving the almost frantic husband to
-an increase of his apprehension and fears.
-
-The dark night came on, and he retired to bed, there to have the
-horrors of a roused fancy added to the deductions of a hapless and
-demented reason.
-
-In the morning he rose after a sleepless and miserable night, tried to
-eat a little breakfast with the playful little Julia, the image of her
-mother, by his side, asking him every now and then, in the midst of
-her prattle, what had become of mammy, rose and went forth, scarcely
-knowing whither to go. Directing his steps almost mechanically towards
-his place of business, he ascertained that his clerk knew no more of
-the missing wife than the others. On emerging again from his office,
-he was doomed to run the ordinary gauntlet of inquiries, and not less
-of strange looks where the inquirers seemed afraid to put the question.
-Others tried to read him by a furtive glance, and went away with their
-construction. No one could give him a word of comfort, if, indeed, he
-had not sometimes reason to suspect that there were of his anxious
-friends some who were not ill pleased that he had lost, no doubt by
-elopement, a wife who outshone theirs.
-
-At length he found his way to the bailie’s office, where he got some of
-the town constables to institute a secret search among the closes, and
-thus the day passed resultless and weary, leaving him to another night
-of misery.
-
-Next day brought scarcely any change, except in the wider spread
-throughout the city of the news, which, in the circumstances,
-degenerated into the ordinary scandal. Nor did the husband make any
-endeavour to check this, by stating to any one the part of the mystery
-connected with the clothes--a secret which he kept to himself, and
-brooded over with a morbid feeling he perhaps could not have explained
-to himself. And that day passed also, leaving at its close an increased
-curiosity on the part of the public, but with no change in the
-conviction that the lady had merely played her husband false.
-
-The next day was not so barren--nay, it was pregnant with a fact
-calculated to increase the excitement without ameliorating the scandal.
-On going up the High Street, Halliday met one of the officers who had
-been engaged in the search, and who told him that another citizen had
-disappeared in a not less mysterious way. The question, “Who is it?”
-was put, but not answered, except by another question.
-
-“Was Mrs Halliday acquainted with Mr Archibald Blair, advocate, in
-Writers’ Court?”
-
-“No,” was the answer of the husband; “and why do you put the question?”
-
-“Because Mrs Blair requested me,” replied the officer. “She is in great
-distress about her husband, and I think you had better see her.”
-
-And so thought Patrick Halliday, as he hurried away to Writers’ Court,
-much in the condition of one who would rush into the flames to avoid
-the waves; for, dreadful as the death of his beloved wife would be
-to him, more dreadful still was the thought that she had eloped with
-another man, and that man might be Archibald Blair. On reaching the
-house, where he was admitted upon the instant, he found a counterpart
-of his own domestic tragedy--everything telling the tale of weariness,
-anxiety, and fear; comers and goers with lugubrious countenances; and
-Mrs Blair herself in a chair the picture of that very misery he had
-himself endured, and was at that very moment enduring.
-
-“Who are you?” she cried, as he approached her. “Are you come with good
-news or bad?”
-
-“My name is Halliday, madam,” replied he. “I understand you wish to see
-me.”
-
-“As much as you may perhaps wish to see me,” answered the lady.
-“The town has been ringing for days with the news of the sudden
-disappearance of your wife, who is said to be----,” and she faltered
-at the word, “very beautiful. Is it true, and on what day did she
-disappear?”
-
-“Too true, madam,” groaned the unhappy man. “Tuesday was the day on
-which she was found amissing.”
-
-“Tuesday! Oh, unfortunate day!” rejoined she. “The very one, sir,
-when my Archibald left me, perhaps never to return. Can you tell me,”
-she continued, as she sobbed hysterically, “whether your wife and my
-husband were ever at any time acquainted? Oh, I fear your answer, but I
-must hear it.”
-
-“I don’t think,” replied he, “that my wife ever knew of the existence
-of your husband. Even _I_ never heard of his name, though I now
-understand he was a promising advocate. I can, therefore, give you
-small satisfaction; and, I presume, I can get as little from you when I
-ask you, what I presume is unnecessary, whether you ever heard that my
-wife was in any way acquainted with Mr Blair?”
-
-“No,” replied she; “neither he nor I ever mentioned her name, nor did
-it once come to my ears that Archibald was ever seen in the company of
-any woman answering to the description of your wife.”
-
-“Most wonderful circumstance, madam,” replied Halliday, into whose mind
-a thought at the moment came, suggested by the mystery of the left
-clothes. “Pray, madam,” he continued, “can you draw no conclusion from
-Mr Blair’s desk or wardrobe whether or not he had provided himself for
-the necessities of a journey?”
-
-“That is the very wonder of all the wonders about this strange case,
-sir,” she answered. “I have made a careful search, knowing the money
-that was in the house, and having sent and inquired whether he had
-drawn any from the bank, I am satisfied that he had not a penny of
-money upon him. As for his wardrobe, every article is there, with the
-exception of what he used when he went to take a walk in the morning--a
-light dress, with a round felt hat in place of the square one. Even his
-cane stands there in the lobby. Where could he have gone in such an
-undress, and without money?”
-
-A pertinent question, which was just the counterpart of that which
-Patrick Halliday had put to himself. The resemblance between the two
-cases struck him as wonderful, and no doubt if he had stated to Mrs
-Blair the analogous facts connected with his wife’s wardrobe, the
-untouched money, and the missing slippers, that lady would have shared
-in his wonder; but he felt disinclined to add to her apprehensions
-by acquainting her with facts which could lead to no practical use.
-There was sufficient community of feeling between them without going
-into further minutiæ, and the conversation ended with looks of fearful
-foreboding.
-
-Patrick Halliday left the house of the advocate only to saunter like
-one broke loose from Bedlam, going hither and thither without aim;
-learning, as he went, that the absence of Mr Blair had got abroad
-abreast of his own evil, and that the public had adopted the theory
-that his wife and the advocate had gone off together. The conclusion
-was only too natural, nor would it in all likelihood have been much
-modified even though all the facts inferring some other solution had
-come to be known. Even he himself was coming gradually to see that the
-disappearance of the two occurring at the same time, almost at the
-same hour, could not be countervailed by the other facts. But behind
-all this there was the apparent difficulty to be overcome that two
-individuals so well known in a news-loving city should have been in the
-habit of meeting, wherever the place might be, without any one having
-ever seen them--nay, the almost impossible thing that a woman without
-a bonnet, arrayed in a yellow wrapper, and with coloured slippers on
-her feet, could have passed through any of the streets without being
-recognised, and that the same immunity from all observation should have
-been enjoyed by a public man so well known--dressed, too, in a manner
-calculated to attract notice. There was certainly another theory, and
-some people entertained the possibility, if not the reasonableness of
-it, that the two clandestine lovers might have concealed themselves
-for an obvious purpose in some of those houses whose keepers have an
-interest in the concealment of their guilty lodgers. But this theory
-must have appeared a very dubious one, for it involved a degree of
-imprudence, if not recklessness, amounting to voluntary ruin, where
-a little foresight might have secured their object without further
-sacrifice than the care required in the preservation of their guilty
-secret. But, unlikely as this theory was, it was not left untested, for
-special visits and inquiries were made in all places known as likely to
-offer refuge to persons in their circumstances and condition.
-
-All was still in vain; another day passed, and another, till the
-entire week proved the inutility of both search and inquiry. The
-ordinary age of a wonder was attained, with the usual consequence of
-the beginning of that decay which is inherent in all things. Yet it is
-with these moral organisms as with the physical--they cast their seeds
-to come up again as memories. A month elapsed, and then another, and
-another, till these periods carried the mere diluted interest of the
-early days. So it is that the big animal, the world, on which man is
-one of the small parasites, supplies the sap as the desires require,
-and changes it as the appetite changes, with that variety which is
-the law of nature. Even as regarded Patrick Halliday and Mrs Blair,
-the moral granulation began gradually and silently to fill up the
-excavated sores in their hearts, and by and by it ought by rule to have
-come about that the cicatrices would follow, and then the smoothing
-of the covering, even to the pellucid skin. And as for the public,
-new wonders, from the ever-discharging womb of events, were rising up
-every day, so that the story of the once famed Julia Halliday and the
-advocate Blair was at length assuming the sombre colours of one of the
-acted romances of life. But it takes long to make a complete romance.
-There is a vitality in moral events as in some physical ones which
-revives in overt symptoms, and so it was in the case we are concerned
-with. A whole year had at length passed, and brooding silence had waxed
-thick over the now comparatively-old event; but the silence was to be
-broken by the speaking of an inanimate thing as strange in itself as
-the old mystery.
-
-One day, when Patrick Halliday had returned from his office in the
-upper part of the city to Peddie’s Land for the purpose of getting a
-letter which he had by mistake left on the table in the morning, he
-found that the servant had gone out as usual for the purpose of taking
-little Julia for an airing; but, getting entrance by his own key, he
-proceeded along the lobby to the parlour, on opening the door of which,
-and entering, his eye was attracted to something on the floor. The
-room was at the time shaded by the hangings drawn together to keep out
-the rays of the sun, and, not distinguishing the object very well, he
-thought it was some plaything of Julia’s. On taking it up he found, to
-his amazement, that it was one of the slippers of his wife. It had a
-damp musty smell, which he found so unpleasant that he threw it down on
-the floor again, and then began to think where in the world it had come
-from, or how it came to be there. The servant might explain it when she
-came in; but why she should have gone out with that remaining to be
-explained he could not understand. Meanwhile his only conclusion was,
-that sufficient search had not been made for the slippers, and that the
-dog, which was out with the maid, had dragged the article from some
-nook or corner which had escaped observation. Under this impression
-he felt inclined to seek for the neighbour of that which had been so
-strangely found, altogether oblivious of the fact that, if the slipper
-had been left by the runaway, she must have departed either bare-footed
-or in her stocking-soles; for her shoes, so far as he could know, had
-been accounted for.
-
-But he was not to be called upon to make this search; something else
-awaited him; for, as he sat enveloped in the darkness of this new
-mystery, his eye, wandering about in the shaded room, was attracted by
-another object. Rising, as if by a start, he proceeded to the spot, and
-took up, to his further amazement, a man’s shoe. He at first supposed
-that it was one of his own; but on looking at the silver buckle, on
-which were engraved--not an uncommon thing at the time--two initial
-letters, (these were “A. B.,”) he was at no loss for the name. It
-was that of the missing advocate. This shoe, like the slipper, was
-covered with white mould, and smelt of an odour different from and
-more disagreeable than mere must. He was now in more perplexity than
-ever, nor could he bring his mind to a supposition of how these things
-came to be there. It was the time of popular superstitions, when
-intelligences in the shape of ghosts and hobgoblins, and all forms
-of good and devilish beings, seemed to have nothing else to do than
-to entertain themselves with the fancies, feelings, and passions of
-men, and we might not be surprised to find that Patrick Halliday was
-brought under the feeling of an indescribable awe--nay, it is doubtful
-if even the veritable spirits of his wife and her paramour, if they
-had then and there appeared in that shaded room before him, would have
-produced a stronger impression upon him than did those speechless yet
-eloquent things. A moral vertigo was on him; he threw himself again
-into a chair, and felt his knees knocking against each other, as if the
-nerves, paralysed by the deep impression upon the brain, were no longer
-under the influence of the will.
-
-After sitting for a time in this state of perplexity and awe, from
-which he could not extricate himself, the servant, with his daughter,
-returned. He called her to his presence, and asked her, pointing to the
-shoe and the slipper, “how those things came to be there?”
-
-The girl was seized with as great wonder as he himself had been, and
-there was even a greater cause for astonishment on her part, insomuch
-as, according to her declaration, she had cleaned out and dusted the
-parlour within half an hour of going forth, and these articles were
-certainly not in the room then. As for the outer door, she had left it
-fastened in the usual way, and the windows were carefully drawn down
-before her departure. Where _could_ they have come from, she questioned
-both her master and herself, with an equal chance of a satisfactory
-answer from either. Then she would not have been a woman if she could
-have resisted the claims of superstition in a case so inexplicable, so
-extraordinary, so unparalleled even in winter fireside stories. And
-so she looked at her master, and he looked at her, in blank wonder,
-without either of them having the power of venturing even a surmise as
-to how or by what earthly or unearthly means those ominous things, so
-terrible in the associations by which they were linked to their owners,
-came to be where they were.
-
-After some longer time uselessly occupied, Patrick Halliday bethought
-himself of going to Writers’ Court, so taking up the silver-buckled
-shoe, and putting it into his large coat pocket, he proceeded to Mrs
-Blair’s. He found her in that state of reconciled despondency to which
-she had been reduced for more than two months; but the moment she saw
-Patrick Halliday enter, she sprang up as if she had been quickened
-by the impulse of a new-born hope rising amidst the clouds of a
-long-settled despair. The movement was soon stayed when her keenness
-scanned the face of the man; but a new feeling took possession of her
-when she saw him draw out of his pocket the silver-buckled shoe with
-which she had been as familiar as with her own.
-
-“Where, in the Lord’s name!--” she cried, without being able to say
-more, while she seized spasmodically the strange object, still covered
-as it was with the mould, and with the silver obscured by the passage
-of time. And, gazing at it, she heard Halliday’s account of how he came
-to be in possession of it, along with the slipper.
-
-“Have you the neighbour in the house?” he inquired.
-
-“No, no,” said she; “but I am certain that that is one of the shoes
-Archibald had on the day he disappeared. Oh, sir, I can scarcely look
-at these initials; and there is such a death-like odour about it that
-it sickens me.”
-
-“It is the same with the slipper,” said he. “It would seem that both of
-them had been taken off the feet of corpses.”
-
-“Strange mystery altogether,” added she, with a deep sigh. “Oh, I could
-have wished I had not seen these--it only serves to renew my care,
-without satisfying my natural desire to know the fate of one I loved so
-dearly.”
-
-“It is so with me as well, madam,” rejoined Mr Patrick; “but the
-finding of this shoe and slipper may satisfy us of the connexion
-between your husband and my wife.”
-
-“Yes, yes,” ejaculated she; “but oh, merciful God! what a wretched
-satisfaction to the bereaved wife and the deserted child. You are a
-man, and can bear up. A poor woman must sit in solitude and mourn,
-while the flesh wastes day by day under the weary spirit.”
-
-“And you can suggest nothing to help me to an explanation of this new
-mystery?” said he.
-
-“Nothing; all is darker than ever,” replied she. “But, sir, you have
-got the only trace that for a long year has been found of this most
-unfortunate--I fear, unhappy pair, and it will be for you to improve it
-in some way. Something more will follow. I will go over with you myself
-to your house. A woman’s eyes are sharper than a man’s. I would like to
-examine the house, and judge for myself.”
-
-And the lady, rising, went and dressed herself. In a few minutes more
-they were on the way to Peddie’s Land; probably, as they went along,
-objects of speculation to those who knew the strange link by which
-their fortunes were joined. Nor was it unlikely that evil tongues might
-suggest that as their partners had played them false, they intended to
-make amends by a kind of poetical retribution. Alas! how different from
-their thoughts, how unlike their feelings, how far distant from their
-object!
-
-On arriving at the house, a new wonder was to meet them, almost upon
-the threshold. The servant ran forward to Halliday, holding in her hand
-the partner of the silver-buckled shoe which her master had in his
-pocket. She was utterly unable to say a word, her eyes were strained
-not less in width than in intensity, her mouth was open like that
-of an idiot, and motioning and muttering, “Come, come,” she led her
-master and Mrs Blair on through two or three rooms till she came to a
-small closet, at the back of which there was a door, now for the first
-time in Patrick Halliday’s experience found open. In explanation of
-which peculiarity we require to suspend our narrative for a minute or
-two, to enable us to inform the reader, that the house then occupied
-by Halliday had, five years before, and immediately preceding his
-marriage, been in possession of George Morgan, a wool-dealer.
-
-Morgan’s warehouse, where he stored his wool, entered from a close to
-the west, through a pend, between Peddie’s Land and the large tenement
-adjoining. The run of the warehouse was thus at right angles to that
-of the dwelling-house, and Morgan was thereby enabled to knock out a
-small door at the back of a press, through which he could conveniently
-pass to his place of business without being at the trouble of going
-down the close to the main entry. After Morgan’s death, the house and
-warehouse went to his heirs, from whom Halliday rented the former,
-the other having been let to some other person for three years, after
-which it had been without a tenant. We may state also that Halliday
-was at first quite aware of the existence of the door at the back of
-the press, and had even taken the precaution of getting it locked; but
-as no requisition had been made by the tenant of the warehouse to have
-the communication more securely barred, the door had been left in the
-condition we have described.
-
-Resuming our story: the servant, when she came to the point where we
-left her, stopped and trembled; but by this time Halliday had begun to
-see whither these pointings tended, and pushing the girl aside with
-a view to examine the door, he was astonished to find that it opened
-to his touch--a fact better known by Nettle, his dog, who had, as the
-shoes testified, been there before.
-
-On entering the warehouse, all the windows of which were shut except
-one, through which a ray of light struggled to illuminate merely a
-part of the room, the party beheld a sight which in all likelihood
-would retain a vividness in their memories after all other images of
-earthly things had passed away. Right in the middle of the partial
-light admitted by the solitary window lay the bodies of two persons--a
-man and a woman. The latter had on her a yellow morning gown trimmed
-with green. One slipper was on, the other off; her head, which was
-uncovered, was surmounted by the high toupee of the times, which
-consisted of the collected hair brushed up and supported by a concealed
-cushion. The man had on a morning dress, with a round felt hat, which
-still retained its place on his head. There was no corruption in the
-bodies of that kind called moist. They were nearly shrivelled, but that
-to an extent which reduced them to little other than skeletons covered
-with a brown skin--a state of the bodies which probably resulted
-from the dry air of the wareroom, heated as it was by a smithy being
-immediately below it, the smoke of which was conveyed by a flue up the
-side of the tenement. The two bodies lay clasped in each other’s arms,
-the faces were so close that the noses almost met; the eyes were open,
-and though the balls were shrunk so much that they could not be seen,
-the lids, which had shrunk also, were considerably apart. These were
-the bodies of Julia Halliday and Archibald Blair.
-
-There was not a word spoken by the searchers. Their eyes told them all
-that was necessary to convince them of the identity of those who lay
-before them. Nor, when Halliday took up a paper which lay at the head
-of Blair, did he think it necessary to make any observation of surprise
-at what was in keeping with what they saw.
-
-“Oh, read,” said Mrs Blair, as she gasped in the midst of her agony.
-
-Halliday, holding up the paper so as to receive the light, read as
-follows:--
-
- “Whoever you may be, man or woman, who first discovers the bodies of
- me and her who lies by my side will please, as he or she hopes for
- mercy, deliver this paper either to Mr Patrick Halliday of Peddie’s
- Land, or Mrs Archibald Blair in Writers’ Court, that they may take
- the means of getting us decently interred. Julia Halliday and I,
- Archibald Blair, met and looked and loved. These few words contain
- the secret of our misfortune, and must be the excuse of our crime
- in taking away our lives. Our love was too strong to be quelled by
- resolution, too sacred to be corrupted by coarse enjoyment of the
- senses, too hopeless to be borne amidst the impediments of our mutual
- obligations to our spouses. We felt and believed that it was only
- our mortal bodies that belonged to our partners, our spirits were
- ours and ours alone by that decree which made the soul, with its
- sympathies and its elections, before ever the world was, or marriage,
- which is only a convention of man’s making. We loved, we sinned not,
- yet we were unhappy, because we could not fulfil the obligations of
- affection to those we had sworn at the altar to love and honour.
- Often have we torn ourselves from each other with vows on our lips
- of mutual avoidance, but these efforts were vain. We could not live
- estranged, and we flew again to each other’s arms, again to vow,
- again to meet, again to be blessed, again to be tortured. This life
- was unendurable; and, left to the alternative of parting or dying,
- we selected the latter. The poison was bought by me in two separate
- vials. As I write, Julia holds hers in her hands, and smiles as she
- is about to swallow the drug. We have resolved to lie down face to
- face, so as to be able to look into each other’s eyes and watch
- jealously Death as he drags us slowly from each other. I have now
- swallowed my draft, smiling the while in Julia’s face. She does the
- same. The pen trembles in my hand. Farewell, my wife: Julia mutters,
- ‘Farewell, my husband.’ Against neither have we ever sinned.
-
- “ARCHIBALD BLAIR.”
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Mary Brown.
-
-
-If the reader of what I am going to relate for his or her edification,
-or for perhaps a greater luxury, viz., wonder, should be so
-unreasonable as to ask for my authority, I shall be tempted, because
-a little piqued, to say that no one should be too particular about
-the source of pleasure, inasmuch as, if you will enjoy nothing but
-what you can prove to be a reality, you will, under good philosophical
-leadership, have no great faith in the sun--a thing which you never
-saw, the existence of which you are only assured of by a round
-figure of light on the back of your eye, and which may be likened to
-tradition; so all you have to do is to believe like a good Catholic,
-and be contented, even though I begin so poorly as to try to interest
-you in two very humble beings who have been dead for many years, and
-whose lives were like a steeple without a bell in it, the intention
-of which you cannot understand till your eye reaches the weathercock
-upon the top, and then you wonder at so great an erection for so small
-an object. The one bore the name of William Halket, a young man, who,
-eight or nine years before he became of much interest either to himself
-or any other body, was what in our day is called an Arab of the City--a
-poor street boy, who didn’t know who his father was, though, as for his
-mother, he knew her by a pretty sharp experience, insomuch as she took
-from him every penny he made by holding horses, and gave him more cuffs
-than cakes in return. But Bill got out of this bondage by the mere
-chance of having been taken a fancy to by Mr Peter Ramsay, innkeeper
-and stabler, in St Mary’s Wynd, (an ancestor, we suspect, of the
-Ramsays of Barnton,) who thought he saw in the City Arab that love of
-horse-flesh which belongs to the Bedouin, and who accordingly elevated
-him to the position of a stable-boy, with board and as many shillings a
-week as there are days in that subdivision of time.
-
-Nor did William Halket--to whom for his merits we accord the full
-Christian name--do any discredit to the perspicacity of his master,
-if it was not that he rather exceeded the hopes of his benefactor,
-for he was attentive to the horses, civil to the farmers, and handy
-at anything that came in his way. Then, to render the connexion
-reciprocal, William was gratefully alive to the conviction that if he
-had not been, as it were, taken from the street, the street might have
-been taken from him, by his being locked up some day in the Heart of
-Midlothian. So things went on in St Mary’s Wynd for five or six years,
-and might have gone on for twice that period, had it not been that at
-a certain hour of a certain day William fell in love with a certain
-Mary Brown, who had come on that very day to be an under-housemaid in
-the inn; and strange enough, it was a case of “love at first sight,”
-the more by token that it took effect the moment that Mary entered the
-stable with a glass of whisky in her hand sent to him by Mrs Ramsay. No
-doubt it is seldom that a fine blooming young girl, with very pretty
-brown hair and very blue eyes, appears to a young man with such a
-recommendation in her hand, but we are free to say that the whisky had
-nothing to do with an effect which is well known to be the pure result
-of the physical attributes of the individual. Nay, our statement might
-have been proved by the counterpart effect produced upon Mary herself,
-for she was struck by William at the same moment when she handed him
-the glass; and we are not to assume that the giving of a pleasant boon
-is always attended with the same effect as the receiving of it.
-
-But, as our story requires, it is the love itself between these two
-young persons whose fates were so remarkable we have to do with--not
-the causes, which are a mystery in all cases. Sure it is, humble in
-position as they were, they could love as strongly, as fervently,
-perhaps as ecstatically, as great people--nay, probably more so,
-for education has a greater chance of moderating the passion than
-increasing it; and so, notwithstanding of what Plutarch says of
-the awfully consuming love between Phrygius and Picrea, and also
-what Shakespeare has sung or said about a certain Romeo and a lady
-called Juliet, we are certain that the affection between these grand
-personages was not _more_ genuine, tender, and true than that which
-bound the simple and unsophisticated hearts of Will Halket and Mary
-Brown. But at best we merely play on the surface of a deep subject when
-we try with a pen to describe feelings, and especially the feelings
-of love. We doubt, if even the said pen were plucked from Cupid’s
-wing, it would help us much. We are at best only left to a choice of
-expressions, and perhaps the strongest we could use are those which
-have already been used a thousand times--the two were all the world
-to each other, the world outside nothing at all to them; so that
-they could have been as happy on the top of Mount Ararat, or on the
-island of Juan Fernandez, provided they should be always in each
-other’s company, as they were in St Mary’s Wynd. And as for whispered
-protestations and chaste kisses--for really their love had a touch of
-romance about it you could hardly have expected, but which yet kept
-it pure, if not in some degree elevated above the loves of common
-people--these were repeated so often about the quiet parts of Arthur’s
-Seat and the Queen’s Park, and the fields about the Dumbiedykes and
-Duddingstone Loch, that they were the very moral aliments on which
-they lived. In short, to Mary Brown the great Duke of Buccleuch was as
-nothing compared to Willie Halket, and to Willie Halket the beautiful
-Duchess of Grammont would have been as nothing compared to simple Mary
-Brown. All which is very amiable and very necessary, for if it had been
-so ordained that people should feel the exquisite sensations of love
-in proportion as they were beautiful, or rich, or endowed with talent,
-(according to a standard,) our world would have been even more queer
-than that kingdom described by Gulliver, where the ugliest individual
-is made king or queen.
-
-Things continued in this very comfortable state at the old inn in
-St Mary’s Wynd for about a year, and it had come to enter into the
-contemplation of Will that upon getting an increase of his wages
-he would marry Mary and send her to live with her mother, a poor
-hard-working washerwoman, in Big Lochend Close; whereunto Mary was
-so much inclined, that she looked forward to the day as the one that
-promised to be the happiest that she had yet seen, or would ever see.
-But, as an ancient saying runs, the good hour is in no man’s choice;
-and about this time it so happened that Mr Peter Ramsay, having had a
-commission from an old city man, a Mr Dreghorn, located as a planter
-in Virginia, to send him out a number of Scottish horses, suggested
-to William that he would do well to act as supercargo and groom. Mr
-Dreghorn had offered to pay a good sum to the man who should bring them
-out safe, besides paying his passage over and home. And Mr Ramsay would
-be ready to receive Will into his old place again on his return. As for
-Mary, with regard to whom the master knew his man’s intentions, she
-would remain where she was, safe from all temptation, and true to the
-choice of her heart. This offer pleased William, because he saw that
-he could make some money out of the adventure, whereby he would be the
-better able to marry, and make a home for the object of his affections;
-but he was by no means sure that Mary would consent; for women, by some
-natural divining of the heart, look upon delays in affairs of love as
-ominous and dangerous. And so it turned out that one Sabbath evening,
-when they were seated beneath a tree in the King’s Park, and William
-had cautiously introduced the subject to her, she was like other women.
-
-“The bird that gets into the bush,” she said, as the tears fell upon
-her cheeks, “sometimes forgets to come back to the cage again. I would
-rather hae the lean lintie in the hand than the fat finch on the wand.”
-
-“But you forget, Mary, love,” was the answer of Will, “that you can
-feed the lean bird, but you can’t feed me. It is I who must support
-you. It is to enable me to do that which induces me to go. I will come
-with guineas in my pocket where there are now only pennies and placks,
-and you know, Mary, the Scotch saying, ‘A heavy purse makes a light
-heart.’”
-
-“And an unsteady one,” rejoined Mary. “And you may bring something else
-wi’ you besides the guineas; may be, a wife.”
-
-“One of Mr Dreghorn’s black beauties,” said Will, laughing. “No, no,
-Mary, I am too fond of the flaxen ringlets, the rosy cheeks, and the
-blue eyes, and you know, Mary, you have all these, so you have me in
-your power. But to calm your fears and stop your tears I’ll tell you
-what I’ll do.”
-
-“Stay at hame, Will, and we’ll live and dee thegither.”
-
-“No,” replied Will, “but, like the genteel lover I have read of, I will
-swear on your Bible that I will return to you within the year, and
-marry you at the Tron Kirk, and throw my guineas into the lap of your
-marriage-gown, and live with you until I die.”
-
-For all which and some more we may draw upon our fancy, but certain
-it is, as the strange story goes, that Will did actually then and
-there--for Mary had been at the Tron Kirk and had her Bible in her
-pocket, (an article the want of which is not well supplied by the
-scent-bottle of our modern Marys,)--swear to do all he had said,
-whereupon Mary was so far satisfied that she gave up murmuring--perhaps
-no more than that. Certain also it is that before the month was done,
-Will, with his living kicking charges, and after more of these said
-tears from Mary than either of them had arithmetic enough to enable
-them to count, embarked at Leith for Richmond, at which place the
-sugar-planter had undertaken to meet him.
-
-We need say nothing of the voyage across the Atlantic--somewhat arduous
-at that period--nor need we pick up Will again till we find him in
-Richmond with his horses all safe, and as fat and sleek as if they
-had been fed by Neptune’s wife, and had drawn her across in place of
-her own steeds. There he found directions waiting from Mr Dreghorn
-to the effect that he was to proceed with the horses to Peach Grove,
-his plantation, a place far into the heart of the country; but Will
-was content, for had he not time and to spare within the year, and he
-would see some more of the new world, which, so far as his experience
-yet went, seemed to him to be a good place for a freeman to live in. So
-off he went, putting up at inns by the way as well supplied with food
-and fodder as Mr Peter Ramsay’s, in St Mary’s Wynd, and showing off his
-nags to the planters, who wondered at their bone and muscle, the more
-by reason they had never seen Scotch horses before. As he progressed,
-the country seemed to Will more and more beautiful, and by the time
-he reached Peach Grove he had come to the unpatriotic conclusion that
-all it needed was Mary Brown, with her roses, and ringlets, and eyes,
-passing like an angel--lovers will be poets--among these ebon beauties,
-to make it the finest country in the world.
-
-Nor when the Scotsman reached Peach Grove did the rosy side of matters
-recede into the shady, for he was received in a great house by Mr
-Dreghorn with so much kindness, that, if the horses rejoiced in maize
-and oats, Will found himself, as the saying goes, in five-bladed
-clover. But more awaited him, even thus much more, that the planter,
-and his fine lady of a wife as well, urged him to remain on the
-plantation, where he would be well paid and well fed; and when Will
-pleaded his engagement to return to Scotland within the year, the
-answer was ready that he might spend eight months in Virginia at least,
-which would enable him to take home more money--an answer that seemed
-so very reasonable, if not prudent, that “Sawny” saw the advantage
-thereof and agreed. But we need hardly say that this was conceded upon
-the condition made with himself, that he would write to Mary all the
-particulars, and also upon the condition acceded to by Mr Dreghorn,
-that he would take the charge of getting the letter sent to Scotland.
-
-All which having been arranged, Mr Halket--for we cannot now continue
-to take the liberty of calling him Will--was forthwith elevated to the
-position of driving negroes in place of horses, an occupation which he
-did not much relish, insomuch that he was expected to use the lash,
-an instrument of which he had been very chary in his treatment of
-four-legged chattels, and which he could not bring himself to apply
-with anything but a sham force in reference to the two-legged species.
-But this objection he thought to get over by using the sharp crack of
-his Jehu-voice, as a substitute for that of the whip; and in this he
-persevered, in spite of the jeers of the other drivers, who told him
-the thing had been tried often, but that the self-conceit of the negro
-met the stimulant and choked it at the very entrance to the ear; and
-this he soon found to be true. So he began to do as others did, and he
-was the sooner reconciled to the strange life into which he had been
-precipitated by the happy condition of the slaves themselves, who,
-when their work was over, and at all holiday hours, dressed themselves
-in the brightest colours of red and blue and white, danced, sang, ate
-corn-cakes and bacon, and drank coffee with a zest which would have
-done a Scotch mechanic, with his liberty to produce a lock-out, much
-good to see. True, indeed, the white element of the population was
-at a discount at Peach Grove. But in addition to the above source
-of reconciliation, Halket became day by day more captivated by the
-beauty of the country, with its undulating surface, its wooded clumps,
-its magnolias, tulip-trees, camellias, laurels, passion-flowers, and
-palms, its bright-coloured birds, and all the rest of the beauties for
-which it is famous all over the world. But nature might charm as it
-might--Mary Brown was three thousand miles away.
-
-Meanwhile the time passed pleasantly, for he was accumulating money,
-Mary’s letter would be on the way, and the hope of seeing her within
-the appointed time was dominant over all the fascinations which
-charmed the senses. But when the month came in which he ought to have
-received a letter, no letter came--not much this to be thought of,
-though Mr Dreghorn tried to impress him with the idea that there must
-be some change of sentiment in the person from whom he expected the
-much-desired answer. So Halket wrote again, giving the letter, as
-before, to his master, who assured him it was sent carefully away,
-and while it was crossing the Atlantic he was busy in improving his
-penmanship and arithmetic, under the hope held out to him by his master
-that he would, if he remained, be raised to a book-keeper’s desk; for
-the planter had seen early that he had got hold of a long-headed,
-honest, sagacious “Sawny,” who would be of use to him. On with still
-lighter wing the intermediate time sped again, but with no better
-result in the shape of an answer from her who was still the object
-of his day fancies and his midnight dreams. Nor did all this kill
-his hope. A third letter was despatched, but the returning period
-was equally a blank. We have been counting by months, which, as they
-sped, soon brought round the termination of his year, and with growing
-changes too in himself, for as the notion began to worm itself into
-his mind that his beloved Mary was either dead or faithless, another
-power was quietly assailing him from within, no other than ambition
-in the most captivating of all shapes, Mammon. We all know the manner
-in which the golden deity acquires his authority, nor do we need to
-have recourse to the conceit of the old writer who tells us that the
-reason why gold has such an influence upon man lies in the fact that
-it is of the colour of the sun, which is the fountain of light, and
-life, and joy. Certain it is, at least, that Halket having been taken
-into the counting-house on a raised salary, began “to lay by,” as the
-Scotch call it, and by and by, with the help of a little money lent to
-him by his master, he began by purchasing produce from the neighbouring
-plantations, and selling it where he might, all which he did with
-advantage, yet with the ordinary result to a Scotsman, that while he
-turned to so good account the king’s head, the king’s head began to
-turn his own.
-
-And now in place of months we must begin to count by lustrums, and
-the first five years, even with all the thoughts of his dead, or, at
-least, lost Mary, proved in Halket’s case the truth of the book written
-by a Frenchman, to prove that a man is a plant, for he had already
-thrown out from his head or heart so many roots in the Virginian soil
-that he was bidding fair to be as firmly fixed in his new sphere as a
-magnolia, and if that bore golden blossoms, so did he; yet, true to
-his first love, there was not among all these flowers one so fair as
-the fair-haired Mary. Nay, with all hope not yet extinguished, he had
-even at the end of the period resolved upon a visit to Scotland, when
-strangely enough, and sadly too, he was told by Mr Dreghorn that having
-had occasion to hear from Mr Peter Ramsay on the subject of some more
-horse dealings, that person had reported to him that Mary Brown, the
-lover of his old stable-boy, was dead. A communication this which, if
-it had been made at an earlier period, would have prostrated Halket
-altogether, but it was softened by his long foreign anticipations, and
-he was thereby the more easily inclined to resign his saddened soul
-to the further dominion of the said god, Mammon, for as to the notion
-of putting any of those beautiful half-castes he sometimes saw about
-the planter’s house at Peach Grove, in the place of her of the golden
-ringlets, it was nothing better than the desecration of a holy temple.
-Then the power of the god increased with the offerings, one of which
-was his large salary as manager, a station to which he was elevated
-shortly after he had received the doleful tidings of Mary’s death.
-Another lustrum is added, and we arrive at ten years, and yet another,
-and we come to fifteen; at the end of which time Mr Dreghorn died,
-leaving Halket as one of his trustees, for behoof of his wife, in whom
-the great plantation vested. If we add yet another lustrum, we find
-the Scot--fortunate, save for one misfortune that made him a joyless
-worshipper of gold--purchasing from the widow, who wished to return to
-England, the entire plantation under the condition of an annuity.
-
-And Halket was now rich, even beyond what he had ever wished, but the
-chariot-wheels of Time would not go any slower--nay, they moved faster,
-and every year more silently, as if the old Father had intended to
-cheat the votary of Mammon into a belief that he would live for ever.
-The lustrums still passed: another five, another, and another, till
-there was scope for all the world being changed, and a new generation
-taking the place of that with which William Halket and Mary Brown
-began; and he was changed too, for he began to take on those signs of
-age which make the old man a painted character; but in one thing he
-was not changed, and that was the worshipful steadfastness, the sacred
-fidelity, with which he still treasured in his mind the form and face,
-the words and the smiles, the nice and refined peculiarities that feed
-love as with nectared sweets, which once belonged to Mary Brown, the
-first creature that had moved his affections, and the last to hold
-them, as the object of a cherished memory for ever. Nor with time so
-deceptive, need we be so sparing in dealing out those periods of five
-years, but say at once that at last William Halket could count twelve
-of them since first he set his foot on Virginian soil: yea, he had been
-there for sixty summers, and he had now been a denizen of the world for
-seventy-eight years. In all which our narrative has been strange, but
-we have still the stranger fact to set forth, that at this late period
-he was seized with that moral disease (becoming physical in time)
-which the French call _mal du pays_, the love of the country where one
-was born and first enjoyed the fresh springs that gush from the young
-heart. Nor was it the mere love of country, as such, for he was seized
-with a particular wish to be where Mary lay in the churchyard of the
-Canongate, to erect a tombstone over her, to seek out her relations and
-enrich them, to make a worship out of a disappointed love, to dedicate
-the last of his thoughts to the small souvenirs of her humble life.
-Within a month this old man was on his way to Scotland, having sold the
-plantation, and taken bills with him to an amount of little less than a
-hundred thousand pounds.
-
-In the course of five weeks William Halket put his foot on the old
-pier of Leith, on which some very old men were standing, who had been
-urchins when he went away. The look of the old harbour revived the
-image which had been imprinted on his mind when he sailed, and the
-running of the one image into the other produced the ordinary illusion
-of all that long interval appearing as a day; but there was no illusion
-in the change, that Mary Brown was there when he departed, and there
-was no Mary Brown there now. Having called a coach he told the driver
-to proceed up Leith Walk, and take him to Peter Ramsay’s Inn, in St
-Mary’s Wynd; but the man told him there was no inn there, nor had been
-in his memory. The man added that he would take him to the White Horse
-in the Canongate, and thither accordingly he drove him. On arriving at
-the inn he required the assistance of the waiter to enable him to get
-out of the coach, nor probably did the latter think this any marvel,
-after looking into a face so furrowed with years, so pale with the
-weakness of a languid circulation, so saddened with care. The rich man
-had only an inn for a home, nor in all his native country was there one
-friend whom he hoped to find alive. Neither would a search help him,
-as he found on the succeeding day, when, by the help of his staff, he
-essayed an infirm walk in the great thoroughfare of the old city. The
-houses were not much altered, but the signboards had got new names and
-figures, and as for the faces, they were to him even as those in Crete
-to the Cretan, after he awoke from a sleep of forty-seven years--a
-similitude only true in this change, for Epimenidas was still as young
-when he awoke as when he went to sleep, but William Halket was old
-among the young and the grown, who were unknown to him as he was indeed
-strange to them. True, too, as the coachman said, Peter Ramsay’s Inn,
-where he had heard Mary singing at her work, and the stable where he
-had whistled blithely among his favourite horses, were no longer to
-be seen--_etiam cineres perierunt_--their very sites were occupied by
-modern dwellings. What of that small half-sunk lodging in Big Lochend
-Close, where Mary’s mother lived, and where Mary had been brought up,
-where perhaps Mary had died. Would it not be a kind of pilgrimage to
-hobble down the Canongate to that little lodging, and might there
-not be for him a sad pleasure even to enter and sit down by the same
-fireplace where he had seen the dearly-beloved face, and listened to
-her voice, to him more musical than the melody of angels?
-
-And so after he had walked about till he was wearied, and his steps
-became more unsteady and slow, and as yet without having seen a face
-which he knew, he proceeded in the direction of the Big Close. There
-was, as regards stone and lime, little change here; he soon recognised
-the half-sunk window where, on the Sunday evenings, he had sometimes
-tapped as a humorous sign that he was about to enter, which had often
-been responded to by Mary’s finger on the glass, as a token that he
-would be welcome. It was sixty years since then. A small corb would now
-hold all that remained of both mother and daughter. He turned away his
-head as if sick, and was about to retrace his steps. Yet the wish to
-enter that house rose again like a yearning, and what more in the world
-than some souvenir of the only being on earth he ever loved was there
-for him to yearn for? All his hundred thousand pounds were now, dear as
-money had been to him, nothing in comparison of the gratification of
-seeing the room where she was born--yea, where probably she had died.
-In as short a time as his trembling limbs would carry him down the
-stair, which, in the ardour of his young blood he had often taken at a
-bound, he was at the foot of it; there was there the old familiar dark
-passage, with doors on either side, but it was the farthest door that
-was of any interest to him. Arrived at it he stood in doubt. He would
-knock, and he would not; the mystery of an undefined fear was over him,
-and yet, what had he to fear, for half a century the inmates had been
-changed, no doubt, over and over again, and he would be as unknowing
-as unknown? At length the trembling finger achieves the furtive tap,
-and the door was opened by a woman, whose figure could only be seen by
-him in coming between him and the obscure light that came in by the
-half-sunk window in front; nor could she, even if she had had the power
-of vision, see more of him, for the lobby was still darker.
-
-“Who may live here?” said he, in the expectation of hearing some name
-unknown to him.
-
-The answer, in a broken cracked voice, was not slow--
-
-“Mary Brown; and what may you want of her?”
-
-“Mary Brown!” but not a word more could he say, and he stood as still
-as a post, not a movement of any kind did he show for so long a time
-that the woman might have been justified in her fear of a very spirit.
-
-“And can ye say nae mair, sir?” rejoined she. “Is my name a bogle to
-terrify human beings?”
-
-But still he was silent, for the reason that he could not think--far
-less speak, nor even for some minutes could he achieve more than the
-repetition of the words, “Mary Brown.”
-
-“But hadna ye better come in, good sir?” said she. “Ye may ken our auld
-saying: ‘They that speak in the dark may miss their mark;’ for words
-carry nae light in their een ony mair than me, for, to say the truth, I
-am old and blind.”
-
-And, moving more as an automaton than as one under a will, Halket was
-seated on a chair with this said old and blind woman by his side, who
-sat silent and with blank eyes waiting for the stranger to explain
-what he wanted. Nor was the opportunity lost by Halket, who, unable to
-understand how she should have called herself Mary Brown, began, in
-the obscure light of the room, to scrutinise her form and features,
-and in doing this he went upon the presumption that this second Mary
-Brown only carried the name of the first; but as he looked he began
-to detect features which riveted his eyes; where the re-agent was so
-sharp and penetrating, the analysis was rapid--it was also hopeful--it
-was also fearful. Yes, it was true that that woman was _his_ Mary
-Brown. The light-brown ringlets were reduced to a white stratum of thin
-hair; the blue eyes were gray, without light and without speculation;
-the roses on the cheeks were replaced by a pallor, the forerunner of
-the colour of death; the lithe and sprightly form was a thin spectral
-body, where the sinews appeared as strong cords, and the skin seemed
-only to cover a skeleton. Yet withal he saw in her that identical Mary
-Brown. That wreck was dear to him; it was a relic of the idol he had
-worshipped through life; it was the only remnant in the world which had
-any interest for him; and he could on the instant have clasped her to
-his breast, and covered her pale face with his tears. But how was he to
-act? A sudden announcement might startle and distress her.
-
-“There was a Mary Brown,” said he, “who was once a housemaid in Mr
-Peter Ramsay’s Inn in St Mary’s Wynd.”
-
-“And who can it be that can recollect that?” was the answer, as she
-turned the sightless orbs on the speaker. “Ye maun be full o’ years.
-Yes, that was my happy time, even the only happy time I ever had in
-this world.”
-
-“And there was one William Halket there at that time also,” he
-continued.
-
-Words which, as they fell upon the ear, seemed to be a stimulant so
-powerful as to produce a jerk in the organ; the dulness of the eyes
-seemed penetrated with something like light, and a tremor passed over
-her entire frame.
-
-“That name is no to be mentioned, sir,” she said, nervously, “except
-aince, and nae mair; he was my ruin; for he pledged his troth to me,
-and promised to come back and marry me, but he never came.”
-
-“Nor wrote you?” said Halket.
-
-“No, never,” replied she; “I would hae gien the world for a scrape o’
-the pen o’ Will Halket; but it’s a’ past now, and I fancy he is dead
-and gone to whaur there is neither plighted troth, nor marriage, nor
-giving in marriage; and my time, too, will be short.”
-
-A light broke in upon the mind of Halket, carrying the suspicion that
-Mr Dreghorn had, for the sake of keeping him at Peach Grove, never
-forwarded the letters, whereto many circumstances tended.
-
-“And what did you do when you found Will had proved false?” inquired
-Halket. “Why should that have been your ruin?”
-
-“Because my puir heart was bound up in him,” said she, “and I never
-could look upon another man. Then what could a puir woman do? My mother
-died, and I came here to work as she wrought: ay, fifty years ago, and
-my reward has been the puir boon o’ the parish bread; ay, and, waur
-than a’ the rest, blindness.”
-
-“Mary,” said Halket, as he took her emaciated hand into his, scarcely
-less emaciated, and divested of the genial warmth of life.
-
-The words carried the old sound, and she started and shook.
-
-“Mary!” he continued, “Will Halket still lives. He was betrayed, as you
-have been betrayed. He wrote three letters to you, all of which were
-kept back by his master, for fear of losing one who he saw would be
-useful to him; and, to complete the conspiracy, he reported you dead
-upon the authority of Peter Ramsay. Whereupon Will betook himself to
-the making of money, but he never forgot his Mary, whose name has been
-heard as often as the song of the birds in the groves of Virginia.”
-
-“Ah, you are Will himself!” cried she. “I ken now the sound o’ your
-voice in the word ‘Mary,’ even as you used to whisper it in my ear in
-the fields at St Leonard’s. Let me put my hand upon your head, and move
-my fingers ower your face. Yes, yes; oh, mercy, merciful God, how can
-my poor worn heart bear a’ this!”
-
-“Mary, my dear Mary!” ejaculated the moved man, “come to my bosom and
-let me press you to my heart; for this is the only blissful moment I
-have enjoyed for sixty years.”
-
-Nor was Mary deaf to his entreaties, for she resigned herself as in
-a swoon to an embrace, which an excess of emotion, working on the
-shrivelled heart and the wasted form, probably prevented her from
-feeling.
-
-“But, O Willie!” she cried, “a life’s love lost; a lost life on both
-our sides.”
-
-“Not altogether,” rejoined he, in the midst of their mutual sobs. “It
-may be--nay, it is--that our sands are nearly run. Yea, a rude shake
-would empty the glass, so weak and wasted are both of us; but still
-there are a few grains to pass, and they shall be made golden. You
-are the only living creature in all this world I have any care for.
-More thousands of pounds than you ever dreamt of are mine, and will
-be yours. We will be married even yet, not as the young marry, but as
-those marry who may look to their knowing each other as husband and
-wife in heaven, where there are no cruel interested men to keep them
-asunder; and for the short time we are here you shall ride in your
-carriage as a lady, and be attended by servants; nor shall a rude
-breath of wind blow upon you which it is in the power of man to save
-you from.”
-
-“Ower late, Willie; ower late,” sighed the exhausted woman, as she
-still lay in his arms. “But if all this should please my Will--I canna
-use another name, though you are now a gentleman--I will do even as you
-list, and that which has been by a cruel fate denied us here we may
-share in heaven.”
-
-“And who shall witness this strange marriage?” said he. “There is no
-one in Edinburgh now that I know or knows me. Has any one ever been
-kind to you?”
-
-“Few, few indeed,” answered she. “I can count only three.”
-
-“I must know these wonderful exceptions,” said he, as he made an
-attempt at a grim smile; “for those who have done a service to Mary
-Brown have done a double service to me. I will make every shilling they
-have given you a hundred pounds. Tell me their names.”
-
-“There is John Gilmour, my landlord,” continued she, “who, though he
-needed a’ his rents for a big family, passed me many a term, and forbye
-brought me often, when I was ill and couldna work, many a bottle o’
-wine; there is Mrs Paterson o’ the Watergate, too, who aince when I
-gaed to her in sair need gave me a shilling out o’ three that she
-needed for her bairns; and Mrs Galloway o’ Little Lochend, slipt in to
-me a peck o’ meal ae morning when I had naething for breakfast.”
-
-“And these shall be at our marriage, Mary,” said he. “They shall be
-dressed to make their eyes doubtful if they are themselves. John
-Gilmour will wonder how these pounds of his rent he passed you from
-have grown to hundreds. Mrs Paterson’s shilling will have grown as
-the widow’s mite never grew, even in heaven; and Mrs Galloway’s peck
-of meal will be made like the widow’s cruse of oil--it will never be
-finished while she is on earth.”
-
-Whereupon Mary raised her head. The blank eyes were turned upon him,
-and something like a smile played over the thin and wasted face. At the
-same moment a fair-haired girl of twelve years came jumping into the
-room, and only stopped when she saw a stranger.
-
-“That is Helen Kemp,” said Mary, who knew her movements. “I forgot
-Helen; she lights my fire, and when I was able to gae out used to lead
-me to the park.”
-
-“And she shall be one of the favoured ones of the earth,” said he, as
-he took by the hand the girl, whom the few words from Mary had made
-sacred to him, adding, “Helen, dear, you are to be kinder to Mary than
-you have ever been;” and, slipping into the girl’s hand a guinea, he
-whispered, “You shall have as many of these as will be a bigger tocher
-to you than you ever dreamed of, for what you have done for Mary Brown.”
-
-And thus progressed to a termination a scene perhaps more extraordinary
-than ever entered into the head of a writer of natural things
-and events not beyond the sphere of the probable. Nor did what
-afterwards took place fall short of the intentions of a man whose
-intense yearnings to make up for what had been lost led him into the
-extravagance of a vain fancy. He next day took a great house and
-forthwith furnished it in proportion to his wealth. He hired servants
-in accordance, and made all the necessary arrangements for the
-marriage. Time which had been so cruel to him and his sacred Mary was
-put under the obligation of retribution. John Gilmour, Mrs Paterson,
-Mrs Galloway, and Helen Kemp were those, and those alone, privileged
-to witness the ceremony. We would not like to describe how they were
-decked out, nor shall we try to describe the ceremony itself. But vain
-are the aspirations of man when he tries to cope with the Fates! The
-changed fortune was too much for the frail and wasted bride to bear.
-She swooned at the conclusion of the ceremony, and was put into a
-silk-curtained bed. Even the first glimpse of grandeur was too much for
-the spirit whose sigh was vanity, all is vanity, and, with the words on
-her lips, “A life’s love lost,” she died.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Merrillygoes.
-
-
-The world has been compared to many things,--a playhouse, a madhouse,
-a penitentiary, a caravanserai, and so forth; but I think a show-box
-wherein all, including man, is turned by machinery, is better than any
-of them. And every one looks through his own little round hole at all
-the rest, he being both object and subject. How the scenes shift too!
-the belief of one age being the laughing-stock of the next. Witches and
-brownies and fairies and ghosts and bogles have lost their quiddity,
-and given birth to quips and laughs; but I have here, as a simple
-storyteller, to do with one example of these vanished beliefs, what was
-in folk-lore called the “Merrillygoes,” sometimes in the old Scotch
-dictionaries spelled “Mirrligoes.” It was a supposed affection of the
-eyes, in which the victim or patient, as you suppose the visitation
-brought on by natural or supernatural powers, fancied he saw men and
-women and inanimate things which were not at the time before him.
-I think the affection was different from the “glamour” which was
-generally attributed to the wrath of fairies; and both indeed might,
-after all, be resolved into the pseudoblepsy of the old, and the
-monomania of the new nosologies. But dismissing all learning--which,
-however potent to puff up man’s pride, and then prick the bladder of
-his conceit, has no concern with a story--I at once introduce to you Mr
-David Tweedie. He was one of those Davids who, for some Scotch reason,
-are called Dauvit; and, like other simple men, he had a wife, whose
-name, I think, was Semple, Robina Semple, certainly not Simple. These
-worthies figured in Berenger’s Close of Edinburgh some time about the
-provostship of the unfortunate Alexander Wilson; and were not only man
-and wife by holy Kirk, but a copartnership, insomuch as, Dauvit being
-a tailor, she after marriage, and having no children to “fash her,”
-became a tailor also, sitting on the same board with him, using the
-same goose, yea, pricking the same flea with emulous needle.
-
-Yet our couple were in some respects the most unlike each other in the
-world; Robina being a sharp, clear-witted, nay, ingenious woman--Dauvit
-a mere big boy. I do not know if I could give the reader a better
-explanation of the expression I have used than by referring him to the
-notion he might form of Holbein’s picture of his son, whom he quaintly
-and humorously painted as a man, but retaining all the features, except
-size, of a boy: the chubby cheeks, small snub nose, pinking eyes, and
-delicate colours. Nor was Dauvit a big chubby man merely as respected
-the body, for he was also little better than chubby in mind; at least
-in so far as regards credulity, passiveness, and softness. He had
-a marvellous appetite for worldly wonders, the belief being in the
-direct ratio of the wonderfulness, and he gave credit to the last thing
-he heard, for no other reason than that it was the last thing; one
-impression thus effacing another, so that the soft round lump remained
-always much the same. All which peculiarities were, it may easily be
-supposed, not only known to, but very well appreciated by, his loving,
-but perhaps not over-faithful, Binny.
-
-If you keep these things in your mind, you will be able the better
-to estimate the value of the facts as I proceed to tell you that one
-morning Dauvit was a little later in getting out of bed than was usual
-with him, by reason that he had on the previous night been occupied
-with a suit of those sacredly-imperative things called in Scotland
-“blacks,” that is, mourning. But then the time was not lost; for Robina
-was up and active, very busily engaged in preparing breakfast. Not
-that Dauvit condescended to take much notice of these domestic duties
-of Binny, because he had ample faith not only in her housewifery, but
-the wonderful extent of her understanding; only it just happened,
-as indeed anything _may_ happen in a world where we do not know why
-anything _does_ happen, that as he lay very comfortably under the
-welcome pressure of the soft blankets, with his eyes looking as it
-were out of a hole, he heard a tap at the door, which tap was just as
-like that of the letter-carrier as any two blunts of exactly the same
-length could possibly be. Nor did his observation stop here; for he saw
-with these same eyes, as if confirming his ears, Binny go to the door
-and open it; then came the words of doubtless the said letter-carrier,
-“That’s for Dauvit;” and at the same instant a letter was put into his
-wife’s hands, and thereafter disappeared at the hole of her pocket,
-where there were many things that David knew nothing about.
-
-Strange as this seemed to Mr Tweedie, even the last act of pocketing
-would not have appeared to him so very curious if at the moment of
-secreting the letter she had not very boldly, and even with a kind of
-smile upon her face, looked fully into the open eyes of her husband.
-But more still, this sagacious and honest woman immediately thereafter
-retired into the inner room, where, no doubt, she made herself
-acquainted with the contents of the communication, whatever it might
-be, and from which she came again to resume, as she did resume, her
-preparations for breakfast just as if nothing had happened beyond what
-was common. Of course I need not say that Dauvit was astonished; but
-his astonishment was an increasing quantity in proportion to the time
-that now passed without her going forward to the bedside and reading
-the letter to him, as she had often done before; and if we might be
-entitled to wonder why he didn’t at once put the question, “What letter
-was that, Binny?” perhaps the answer which would have been given by
-David himself might have been that his very wonder prevented him from
-asking for an explanation of the wonder--just as miracles shut people’s
-mouths at the same moment that they make them open their eyes.
-
-However this might be--and who knows but that David might have a pawky
-curiosity to try Binny?--the never a word did he say; but, rising
-slowly and quietly, he dressed himself, in that loose way in which
-of all tradesmen the tailors most excel, for a reason of which I am
-entirely ignorant. He then sat down by the fire; and Binny having
-seated herself on the other side, the operation of breakfast began
-without a word being said on either part, but with mutual looks, which
-on the one side, viz., Robina’s, were very well understood, but on the
-other not at all. A piece of pantomime all this which could not last
-very long, for the good reason that impatience is the handmaiden of
-curiosity; and David at length, in spite of a bit of bread which almost
-closed up his mouth, got out the words--
-
-“What letter was that, Binny, which the letter-carrier handed in this
-mornin’?”
-
-“Letter! there was nae letter, man,” was the answer of Binny,
-accompanied with a look of surprise, which might in vain compete with
-the wonder immediately called up in the eyes of her simple husband.
-
-“Did I no see it with my ain een?” was the very natural ejaculation.
-
-“No, you didn’t; you only thought ye saw it,” said the wife; “and thae
-twa things have a gey difference between them.”
-
-“What _do_ ye mean, Robina, woman?”
-
-“The merrillygoes!”
-
-“The merrillygoes,” rejoined the wondering David; “my een niver were in
-that condition.”
-
-“_You_ may think sae, Dauvit,” rejoined Binny; “but I happen to ken
-better. On Wednesday night, when we were in bed, and the moon shining
-in at the window, did I no hear you say, ‘Binny, woman, what are ye
-doing up at this eery hour?’ It was just about twelve; and upon
-lifting my head and looking ower at ye, I saw your een staring out as
-gleg as a hawk’s after a sparrow. It had begun then.”
-
-“Ou, I had been dreaming,” said David.
-
-“Dreaming with your een open!”
-
-“That is indeed strange enough,” rejoined David. “Did ye really see my
-een open?”
-
-“Did ye ever hear me tell ye a lee, man? Am I no as true as the Bible?
-and think ye I dinna ken the strange light o’ the merrillygoes, when I
-have seen it in the een o’ my ain father?”
-
-“Is that really true, Binny? I’m beginnin’ to get fear’d. But what o’
-your father, lass?”
-
-“Ye may weel ask,” said the wife. “He had been awa’ at Falkirk Tryst
-with his ewes, and it was about seven o’clock when he cam’ hame. We
-were then in the farm o’ Kimmergame. Weel, he was coming up the lang
-loan, and it was gloaming; and just when he was about twenty yards from
-his ain door, he saw twa men hurrying along with a coffin a’ studded
-with white nails. They were only a yard or twa before him, and the
-moment he saw them he stopped till he saw where they were going; and
-yet where could they be going but to his ain house; and nae doubt his
-wife would be dead, for the lang coffin couldna have fitted any other
-person in the house; but he was soon made sure enough, for he saw the
-men with the coffin enter into his ain door, and there he stood in a
-swither o’ fear; but he was a brave man, and in he went, never stopping
-till he got into his ain parlour, where my mother was sitting at her
-tea, and nae sooner did she see him than she broke out in a laugh o’
-perfect joy at his hamecome. But the never a word he ever said about
-the coffin, because he didn’t wish to terrify his wife with evil omens;
-and besides, he understood the vision perfectly. And, Dauvit, if ye’re
-a wise man ye will submit to the hand o’ God, wha sees fit to bring
-thae visitations upon us for some wise end.”
-
-“Very true,” said David, to whom the affair of the letter was rather
-much even for _his_ credulity; “but still, Binny, lass, I canna just
-come to it that I was deceived.”
-
-“Weel, weel, stick to it, my man, and mak me, your ain wife, a leear.”
-
-“That canna be either,” rejoined David; “and by my faith, I’m at a loss
-what to think or what to do; for if it really be that the infliction’s
-upon me, how, in the Lord’s name, am I to ken the real thing from the
-fause? My head rins right round at the very thought o’t. And then I
-fancy there’s nae remedy in the power o’ man.”
-
-“I fear no,” replied Binny. “Ye maun just pray; but I have heard
-my father say that it came on him after he had been confined with
-an ill-working stomach to the house, and exercise drove it away.
-Ye’ve been sitting ower close. Take scouth for a day. Awa’ ower to
-Burntisland, and get payment from John Sprunt o’ the three pounds he
-owes for his last suit. Stay ower the night. I say nothing about the
-jolly boose ye’ll have thegither, but it may drive thae fumes and
-fancies out o’ your head. Come ower with the first boat in the morning,
-and I will have your breakfast ready for you.”
-
-The prudence of this advice David was not slow to see, though he had,
-maugre his simplicity, considerable misgivings about the affair of the
-letter; nor did he altogether feel the absolute conviction that he was
-under the influence of the foresaid mysterious power. But independently
-of the prudence of her counsel, he felt it as a command, and therefore
-behoved to obey. For we may as well admit that David might doubt of
-the eternal obligation of a certain decalogue by reason of its being
-abrogated; but as for the commands of Mrs Robina, they were subject
-to no abrogation, and certainly no denial whatever. So David went and
-dressed himself in his “second-best”--a particular mentioned here with
-an after-view--and having got from the hands of her, who was thus both
-wife and medical adviser, a drop of spirits to help him _on_, and the
-merrillygoes _off_, he set forth on his journey.
-
-Proceeding down Leith Wynd, he found himself in Leith Walk; but however
-active his limbs, thus relieved on so short a warning from “the
-board,” and however keen and far-sighted his eyes, as they scanned
-all the people he met, he could not shake off certain doubts whether
-the individuals he met were in reality creatures of flesh and blood,
-or mere visions. The sacred words of Mrs Robina were a kind of winged
-beliefs, which, by merely striking on the ear, performed for him what
-many a man has much trouble in doing for himself--that is, thinking;
-so that upon the whole the tendency of his thoughts was in a great
-degree favourable to sadness and terror. The sigh was heaved again and
-again; being sometimes for a longer period delayed, as the hope of a
-jolly boose with his friend Sprunt held a partial sway in his troubled
-mind. But by and by the activity required by his search for a boat, the
-getting on board, the novelty of the sail, the undulating movements,
-and all the interests which belong to a “traveller by sea and land,”
-drove away the cobwebs that hung about the brain; and by the time he
-got to Burntisland he was much as he used to be. But, alas, he little
-knew that this journey, propitious as it appeared, was not calculated
-to produce the wonderful effects expected from it.
-
-No sooner had he landed on the pier than he made straight for the house
-of his friend, which stood by the roadside, a little removed from the
-village. He saw it in the distance; and quickening his steps, came to
-an angle which enabled him to see into Mr Sprunt’s garden; and we may,
-considering how much the three pounds, the boose, the fun, the cure was
-associated with the figure of that individual, imagine the satisfaction
-felt by Mr Tweedie when he saw the true body of John Sprunt in that
-very garden, busily engaged, too, in the delightful occupation of
-garden-work, and animated, we may add of our own supposition, with a
-mind totally oblivious of the three pounds he owed to the Edinburgh
-tailor. But well and truly may we speak of the uncertainty of mundane
-things. David had only turned away his eyes for an instant, and yet
-in that short period, as he found when he again turned his head, the
-well-known figure of his old friend, pot-companion, and debtor in
-three pounds, had totally disappeared. The thing looked like what
-learned people call a phenomenon. How could Sprunt have disappeared
-so soon? Where could he have gone to be invisible, where there was no
-summer-house to receive him, and where the time did not permit of a
-retreat into his own dwelling? David stood, and began to think of the
-words of Robina. There could be no doubt that his eyes had been at
-fault again; it was not John Sprunt he had seen--merely a lying image.
-And so even on the instant the old sadness came over him again, with
-more than one long sigh; nor in his depression and simplicity was he
-able to bring up any such recondite thing as a thought suggesting the
-connexion between John’s disappearance and the fact that he owed Mr
-David Tweedie--whom he could have seen in the road--the sum of three
-pounds.
-
-In which depressed and surely uncomfortable condition our traveller
-proceeded towards the house, more anxious, indeed, to disprove his
-terrors than to get his money. He knocked at the door, which, by the
-by, was at the end of the house; and his knock was answered by Mrs
-Sprunt herself, a woman who could have acted Bellona in an old Greek
-piece.
-
-“I am glad John is at hame,” were David’s first words.
-
-“And I would be glad if that were true, Mr Dauvit,” replied she; “but
-it just happens no to be true. John went off to Kirkaldy at six o’clock
-this morning to try and get some siller that’s due him there.”
-
-“Let me in to sit down,” muttered David, with a kind of choking in his
-voice.
-
-And following the good dame into the parlour, Mr Tweedie threw himself
-into the arm-chair in a condition of great fear and perturbation.
-Having sat mute for a minute or two, probably to the wonderment of the
-dame, he began to rub his brow with his handkerchief, as if taking off
-a little perspiration could help him in his distress.
-
-“Mrs Sprunt,” said he, “I could have sworn that I saw John working in
-the yard.”
-
-Whereat Mrs Sprunt broke out into a loud laugh, which somehow or
-another seemed to David as ghostly as his visions; and when she had
-finished she added, “Something wrong, Dauvit, with your een.”
-
-“Gudeness gracious and ungracious!” said David. “Is this possible? Can
-it really be? Whaur, in the name o’ Heeven, am I to look for a real
-flesh-and-blood certainty?”
-
-“And yet ye seem to be sober, Dauvit.”
-
-“As a judge,” replied he. But, after a pause, “Can I be sure even o’
-_you_?” he cried, as he started up; the while his eyes rolled in a
-manner altogether very unlike the douce quiet character he bore. “Let
-me satisfy mysel that you are really Mrs Janet Sprunt in the real body.”
-
-And making a sudden movement, with his arms extended towards the
-woman, he tried to grip her; but it was a mere futile effort. Mrs
-Sprunt was gone through the open door in an instant, and David was left
-alone with another confirmation of his dreaded suspicion, muttering
-to himself, “There too, there too,--a’ alike; may the Lord have mercy
-upon His afflicted servant! Robina Tweedie, ye were right after a’, and
-that letter was a delusion like the rest--a mere eemage--a’ eemages
-thegither.”
-
-After which soliloquy he again sat down in the easy-chair, held his
-hands to his face, and groaned in the pain of a wounded spirit. But
-even in the midst of this solemn conviction that the Lord had laid His
-hand upon him, he could see that sitting there could do him no good;
-and, rising up, he made for the kitchen. There was no one there; he
-tried another room, which he also found empty; and issuing forth from
-the unlucky house, he encountered an old witch-looking woman who was
-turning the corner, as if going in the direction of another dwelling.
-
-“Did you see Mrs Sprunt even now?” said he.
-
-“No likely,” answered the woman; “when she tauld me this mornin’ she
-was going to Petticur. She has a daughter there, ye ken.”
-
-Melancholy intelligence which seemed to have a logical consistency
-with the other parts of that day’s remarkable experiences; nor did
-David seem to think that anything more was necessary for the entire
-satisfaction of even a man considerably sceptical, and then who in
-those days doubted the merrillygoes?
-
-“What poor creatures we are!” said he. “I came here for a perfect cure,
-and I gae hame with a heavy care.”
-
-And with these words, which were in reality an articulated groan, Mr
-David Tweedie made his way back towards the pier, under an apprehension
-that as he went along he would meet with some verification of a
-suspicion which, having already become a conviction, not only required
-no more proof, but was strong enough to battle all opposing facts and
-arguments; so he went along with his chin upon his breast, and his
-eyes fixed upon the ground, as if he were afraid to trust them with a
-survey of living beings, lest they might cheat him as they had already
-done. It was about half-past twelve when he got to the boat; and he was
-further disconcerted by finding that the wind, which had brought him
-so cleverly over, would repay itself, like over-generous givers, who
-take back by one hand what they give by the other. And so it turned
-out; for he was fully two hours on the passage, all of which time
-was occupied by a reverie as to the extraordinary calamity that had
-befallen him. And how much more dreary his cogitations as he thought
-of the increased unhappiness of Robina, when she ascertained not only
-the failure of getting payment of his debt, but the total wreck of her
-means of cure!
-
-At length he got to Leith pier; but his landing gave him no pleasure:
-he was still haunted with the notion that he would encounter more
-mischances; and he hurried up Leith Walk, passing old friends whom he
-was afraid to speak to. Arrived at the foot of Leith Wynd, he made a
-detour which brought him to the foot of Halkerston’s Wynd, up which he
-ascended, debouching into the High Street. And here our story becomes
-so incredible, that we are almost afraid to trust our faithful pen to
-write what David Tweedie saw on his emerging from the entry. There,
-coming up the High Street, was Mrs Robina Tweedie herself, marching
-along steadily, dressed in David’s best suit. He stood and stared with
-goggle eyes, as if he felt some strange pleasure in the fascination.
-The vision was so concrete, that he could identify his own green coat
-made by his own artistic fingers. There were the white metal buttons,
-the broadest he could get in the whole city--nay, one of them on the
-back had been scarcely a match, and he recognised the defect; his
-knee-breeches too, so easily detected by their having been made out of
-a large remnant of a colour (purple) whereof there was not another bit
-either to be bought or “cabbaged,”--nay, the very brass knee-buckles of
-which he was so proud; the “rig-and-fur” stockings of dark brown; the
-shoe-buckles furbished up the last Sunday; the square hat he had bought
-from Pringle; and, to crown all, his walking-stick with the ivory top.
-So perfect indeed was the “get-up” of his lying eyes, that, if he
-had not been under the saddening impression of his great visitation,
-he would have been well amused by the wonderful delusion. Even as it
-was, he could not help following the phantom, as it went so proudly
-and jantily along the street. And what was still more extraordinary,
-he saw Mucklewham, the city guardsman, meet her and speak to her in
-a private kind of way, and then go away with her. But David had a
-trace of sense in his soft nature. He saw that it was vain as well
-as hurtful to gratify what was so clearly a delusion; it would only
-deepen the false images in eyes already sufficiently “glamoured;” and
-so he stopped suddenly short and let them go--that is, he would cease
-_to look_,--and they, the visions, would cease _to be_. In all which
-how little did he know that he was prefiguring a philosophy which was
-some time afterwards to become so famous! Nay, are we not all under the
-merrillygoes in this world of phantoms?
-
- “You say you see the things that be:
- I say you only think you see.
- Not even that. It seems to me
- You only think you think you see.
- Then thinking weaves so many a lie,
- Methinks this world is ‘all my eye.’”
-
-But even in his grief and sacred fear he could not help saying to
-himself, “Gude Lord! if that eemage werena frightfu’, would it no be
-funny? And what will Robina say? Nae doubt she is at this very moment
-sitting at her tea in Berenger’s Close, thinking upon my calamity.
-What _will_ she say when I tell her that I saw her in the High Street
-dressed in my Sunday suit, walking just as if she were Provost Wilson
-himsel? I wouldna wonder if she should get into ane o’ her laughing
-fits, even in very spite o’ her grief for the awful condition of her
-loving husband. At any rate, it’s time I were hame, when I canna tell
-what I am to see next, nor can even say which end o’ me is uppermost.”
-
-Nor scarcely had he finished his characteristic soliloquy, when a
-hand was laid on his shoulder. It was that of the corporal; but how
-was David to know that? Why, he felt Bill’s hand; and to make things
-more certain, he even laid his own hand upon the solid shoulder of the
-sturdy city guardsman; adding, for still greater proof--
-
-“Did you meet and speak to any one up the street there?”
-
-“The niver a living soul,” said the corporal, “as I’m a sinner; but
-come along, man, to the Prophet Amos’s,” (a well-known tavern in
-the Canongate,) “and let us have a jolly jug, for I’m to be on duty
-to-night, and need something to cheer me up; and the colour of ale will
-sit better on your cheeks when you go home to Robina than that saffron.
-Are you well enough, David? I think I might as well ask the question of
-a half-hanged dog.”
-
-“Half or hale hanged,” replied David, as he eyed his friend
-suspiciously, “I canna be the waur o’ a jug o’ ale.”
-
-An answer which was perhaps the result of sheer despair, for the
-conviction of the “real unreality” of what he had seen was now so
-much beyond doubt that he began to submit to it as a doom; and what
-is irremediable becomes, like death, to be bearable, nay, even
-accommodating to the routine of life; and so the two jogged along till
-they came to the Prophet’s, where they sat down to their liquor and,
-we may add, loquacity, of which latter Mucklewham was so profuse, that
-any other less simple person than David might have thought that the
-guardsman wanted to speak against time. But David suspected nothing,
-and he was the more inclined to be patient that his friend had promised
-to pay the score.
-
-“And when saw ye Robina?” said David.
-
-“Not for a good round year, my bairn,” said the big corporal.
-
-“Gude Lord, did ye no see her and speak to her even this day?”
-
-Whereupon the big guardsman laughed a horse (guardsman’s) laugh;
-and pointing his finger to his eye he twirled the same, that is the
-finger, merrily round. A movement which David too well understood; and
-after heaving a deep sigh, he took a deep pull at the ale, as if in a
-paroxysm of despair.
-
-And so they drank on, till David having risen and left the room for a
-breath of fresh air, found on his return that his generous friend had
-vanished. Very wonderful, no doubt. But, then, had he not taken his jug
-with him?--no doubt to get it replenished--and he would return with a
-filled tankard. Vain expectation! Mucklewham was only another Sprunt,
-another lie of the visual sense. Did David Tweedie really need this
-new proof? David knew he didn’t; neither did he require the additional
-certainty of his calamity by having to pay only for his own “shot.” The
-Prophet did not ask for more, nor did he think it necessary to say why;
-perhaps he would make the corporal pay his own share afterwards. The
-whole thing was as clear as noon: David had been drinking with one who
-had no stomach wherein to put his liquor, and for the good reason that
-he had no body to hold that stomach.
-
-“Waur than the case o’ the letter, or Sprunt, (hiccup,) or Robina
-dressed in my claes,” said he lugubriously, “for I only _saw_ them, but
-I handled the corporal, sat with him, drank with him, heard him speak;
-yet baith he and the pewter jug were off in a moment, and I hae paid
-(hic) only for ae man’s drink. But is it no a’ a dream thegither? I
-wouldna wonder I am at this very moment in my bed wi’ Robina lying at
-my back.”
-
-And rising up, he discovered that he was not very well able to keep
-his legs, the more by reason that he had poured the ale into an empty
-stomach; there was, besides, a new confusion in his brain, as if that
-organ had not already enough to do with any small powers of maintaining
-itself in equilibrium which it possessed. But he behoved to get
-home; and to Berenger’s Close he accordingly went, making sure as he
-progressed of at least one truth in nature, amidst all the dubieties
-and delusions of that most eventful day: that the shortest way between
-two points is the deflecting one. And what was Binny about when he
-entered his own house? Working the button-holes of a vest which had
-been left by David unfinished. No sooner did she see David staggering
-in than she threw the work aside.
-
-“Hame already? and in that state too!” she cried. “You must have been
-seeing strange ferlies in the High Street, while I was sitting here
-busy at my wark.”
-
-“Strange enough, lass; but if you can tell me whether or no I am Dauvit
-Tweedie, your lawfu’ husband or the Prophet Moses, or the Apostle
-Aaron, or (hic) the disciple Deuteronomy, or the deevil, it’s mair than
-I can.”
-
-Whereupon David dropt his uncertain body in a chair, doubting perhaps
-if even the chair was really a chair.
-
-“And it wasna just enough,” rejoined she, “that you had an attack of
-the merrillygoes, but you must add pints o’ ale to make your poor wits
-mair confounded.”
-
-A remark which Robina thought herself entitled to make, irrespective of
-the question which for a hundred years has been disputed, viz., whether
-she had sent the corporal to take David to Prophet Amos’s and fill him
-drunk with ale, and then shirk the score?
-
-“But haste ye to bed, my man,” she added, “that’s the place for you,
-where you may snore awa’ the fumes o’ Prophet Amos’s ale, and the
-whimwhams o’ your addled brain.”
-
-An advice which David took kindly, though he did not need it; for,
-educated as he may be said to have been by the clever Robina, he was
-fortunately one of those favoured beings pointed at in the wise saying
-that the power of education is seldom effectual except in those happy
-cases where it is superfluous. So it was the ale that sent him to bed
-and to sleep as well--a condition into which he sunk very soon. And it
-was kindly granted to him, insomuch as it was a kind of recompense for
-what he had suffered during that day of wonders: it saved him from the
-possibility of hearing a conversation in the other room between Robina
-and the corporal, in the course of which it was asked and answered
-whether David had recognised Robina in her male decorations; and
-whether he had any suspicions as to the true character of the deep plot
-they were engaged in working out.
-
-What further took place in the house of Mr Tweedie that night we have
-not been able, notwithstanding adequate inquiry, to ascertain; but of
-this important fact we are well assured, that next morning David awoke
-in a much improved condition. To account for this we must remember his
-peculiar nature, for to him “the yesterday,” whatever yesterday it
-might be, was always a _dies non_; it had done its duty and was gone,
-and it had no business here any more than an impudent fellow who tries
-to live too long after the world is sick of him. Indeed, we know that
-he ate such a breakfast, and with such satisfaction, that no ideas of
-a yesterday had any chance of resisting the feelings of the moment; and
-once gone, they had too much difficulty to get into the dark chamber
-again to think of trying it. He was “on the board” by ten o’clock. For
-he had work to do, and as Robina’s purpose was in the meantime served,
-she said no more of the merrillygoes. She had perhaps something else
-to do; for shortly after eleven she went out, perhaps to report to
-the corporal the sequel to that which he already knew. But whatever
-her object, her absence was not destined to be so fruitful of good to
-her as her presence wherever she might go; for it so happened that as
-David was sitting working, and sometimes with his face overcast with
-a passing terror of a return of his calamity, he found he required a
-piece of cloth of a size and colour whereof there were some specimens
-in an old trunk. To that repository of cabbage, as it is vulgarly
-called, he went; and in rummaging through the piebald contents he
-came upon a parcel in a corner. On opening it, he found to his great
-wonderment no fewer than a hundred guineas of pure gold. The rays from
-the shiny pieces seemed to enter his eyes like spikes, and fix the
-balls in the sockets; if he felt a kind of fascination yesterday as he
-looked at his wife in male attire, though a mere vision, he experienced
-the influence now even more, however doubtful he was of the reality of
-the glittering objects. He seized, he clutched them, he shut his eyes,
-and opened them again as he opened his hands; they did _not_ disappear;
-but then Robina herself might appear, and under this apprehension,
-which put to flight his doubts, he carried them off, and secreted
-them in a private drawer of which he had the key; whereupon he betook
-himself again to the board. By and by Robina returned; but the never
-a word David said of the guineas, because he had still doubts of the
-veracity of his eyes.
-
-And so the day passed without anything occurring to suggest either
-inquiry or answer. During the night David slept so soundly that he was
-even oblivious of his prize; and it was not till eleven next forenoon,
-when his wife went out, that he ventured to look into the drawer; but
-now the terrible truth was revealed to him: the guineas were gone, and
-he had been again under delusion. The merrillygoes once more! and how
-was he to admit the fact to Robina, after his attempted appropriation!
-
-But, happily, there was no necessity for admitting his own shame, for
-about four o’clock John Jardine the letter-carrier called and told
-him that his wife had eloped with the corporal. The intelligence was
-no doubt very dreadful to David, who loved his wife so dearly that
-he could have subscribed to the saying “that the husband will always
-be deceived when the wife condescends to dissemble;” but Mrs Robina
-Tweedie did not so condescend; and David now began to see certain
-things and to recollect certain circumstances which, when put together,
-appeared even to his mind more strange than the merrillygoes. And his
-eyes were opened still further by a letter from Kirkcudbright from a Mr
-Gordon, wishing to be informed why he had not acknowledged the receipt
-of the hundred guineas left him by his uncle, and which had been sent
-in a prior letter in the form of a draft on the Bank of Scotland. Mr
-David Tweedie now went to the bank, and was told that the money had
-been paid to a man in a green coat and white metal buttons, square hat,
-and walking-stick, who represented himself as David Tweedie.
-
-Our story, it will be seen, has pretty nearly explained itself; yet
-something remains to be told. A whole year elapsed, when one morning
-Mrs Robina Tweedie appeared before honest David, with a lugubrious face
-and a lugubrious tale, to the effect that although she had been tempted
-to run away with the corporal, she had almost immediately left him--a
-pure, bright, unsullied wife; but during all this intermediate time
-she had felt so ashamed and conscience-stricken, that she could not
-return and ask forgiveness. All which David heard, and to all which he
-answered--
-
-“Robina--nae mair Tweedie, lass--ye ken I was afflicted with a strange
-calamity when ye left me. I thought I saw what wasna to be seen. It
-comes aye back upon me now and then; and I ken it’s on me this mornin’.
-I may think I see you there standin’ before me, even as I saw you in
-my broad-tailed coat that day in the High Street; but I ken it’s a’
-a delusion. In fact, my dear Robina, _I dinna see you, I dinna even
-feel your body_,” (pushing her out by the cuff of the neck;) “the
-merrillygoes, lass! the merrillygoes!”
-
-And David shut the door on the ejected Robina--thereafter living a very
-quiet and comparatively happy life, free from all glamour or any other
-affection of the eyes, and seeing just as other people see. Yea, with
-his old friend Sprunt and his wife he had many a joke on the subject,
-forgiving John for running away that morning to shirk his creditor,
-as well as Mrs Janet for being terrified out of the house by the wild
-rolling eyes of the unhappy David.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Six Toes.
-
-
-A man who makes a will generally knows pretty well the person to whom
-he leaves a legacy, but it does not follow that other people are to
-have the same enlightenment as to the identity of the legatee. I make
-the remark in reference to a common story connected with the will of
-honest Andrew Gebbie, who officiated once as a ruling elder in the
-Church of Trinity College, Edinburgh, and was supposed to have done so
-much good to the people by his prayers, exhortations and psalm-singing,
-that it was utterly unnecessary for his getting to heaven, where he had
-sent so many others, that he should bequeath a single plack or bawbee
-to the poor when he died. Yet whether it was that the good man Andrew
-determined to make sure work of his salvation, or that he had any less
-ambitious object in view, certain it is that some time before he died
-he made a will by his own hand, and without the help of a man of the
-law, in spite of the Scotch adage--
-
- “Who saves a fee and writes his will
- Is friendly to the lawyers still;
- For these take all the will contains,
- And give the heir all that remains.”
-
-And by this said will honest Andrew bequeathed the sum of three hundred
-pounds sterling money to “Mistress Helen Grey, residing in that street
-of the old town called Leith Wynd,” without any further identification
-or particularisation whatsoever, nor did he say a single word about the
-cause of making this somewhat generous bequest, or anything about the
-merits or services of the legatee. A strange circumstance, seeing that
-the individual being a “Nelly Grey” had long been a favourite of the
-poets, (and, therefore, rather indefinite,) as she indeed still figures
-in more than one very popular song, wherein she is even called bonny
-Nelly Grey.
-
-Then, to keep all matters in harmony, he appointed three clergymen--the
-minister of his own church, the minister of the Tolbooth, and the
-minister of the Tron--as his executors for carrying his said will into
-execution, probably thinking that Nelly Grey’s three hundred, and her
-soul to boot, could not be in better hands than those of such godly
-men. So, after living three weeks longer in a very bad world, the
-worthy testator was gathered to his fathers, and it might perhaps have
-been as well that his said will had been gathered along with him,--as
-indeed happened in a recent case, where a sensible man, probably in
-fear of the lawyers, got his will placed in the same coffin with
-him,--though no doubt he forgot that worms, if not moths, do corrupt
-there also, and sometimes thieves, in the shape of body-snatchers, do
-break through and steal. Passing all which we proceed to say that the
-executors entered upon their duties. As regards the other legatees
-they found no difficulty whatever, most probably because legatees are
-a kind of persons who are seldom out of the way when they are wanted.
-They accordingly made their appearance, and without a smile, which
-would have been unbecoming, got payment of their legacies. But as
-for this Helen Grey, with so large a sum standing at her credit, she
-made no token of any kind, nor did any of the relations know aught
-concerning her, though they wondered exceedingly who she could be, and
-how she came to be in so strange a place as their kinsman’s testament.
-Not that the three executors, the ministers, shared very deeply in
-this wondering, because they knew that their elder, honest Andrew,
-was a good and godly man, and had had good and godly, and therefore
-sufficient reasons, (probably in the poverty and piety of Helen,) for
-doing what he had done.
-
-If indeed these gentlemen wondered at all, it was simply that any poor
-person living in such a place as Leith Wynd should be so regardless
-of money, as to fail to make her appearance among the grave and happy
-legatees. The question, who can she be, passed from the one to the
-other like a bad shilling. Not one of them could answer. Father Tron,
-and Father Tolbooth, and Father Trinity, were all at fault; the noses
-of their ingenuity could not smell out the object of their wish. But
-then they had been trusting so far as yet to the relatives, and had not
-made personal inquiry in Leith Wynd, which, if they had been men of
-business, they would have done at once.
-
-“Oh,” said Father Trinity at length, “I think I have it now when I
-recollect there was an honest woman of that name who was a member of
-my congregation some years ago, and, if I am not mistaken, she was in
-honest Andrew Gebbie’s visiting district, and he took an interest in
-her soul.”
-
-“The thing is patent,” rejoined Father Tron. “Our lamented elder hath
-done this good thing out of the holy charity that cometh of piety.”
-
-“And a most beautiful example of the fruits of godliness,” added Father
-Tolbooth.
-
-“Beautiful indeed!” said Trinity. “For we have here to keep in view
-that Elder Andrew had many poor friends, but he hath chosen to prefer
-the relationship of the spirit to that of mere earthly connexion. And
-his reward will verily be reaped in heaven.”
-
-“We must give the good man a paragraph in the _Mercury_,” resumed
-Father Tolbooth. “And now, brother of Trinity, it will be for you to
-find Helen Grey out, and carry to her the glad tidings.”
-
-“A pleasant commission,” rejoined Father Trinity, as he rose to depart.
-
-And taking his way to Leith Wynd, he soon reached that celebrated
-street, nor was it long till he passed “The Happy Land,” that dreaded
-den of burglars, thieves, and profligate women, which the Scotch,
-according to their peculiar humour, had so named. That large building
-he behoved to pass with a sigh as the great forlorn hope of the city,
-and coming to some of the brokers whose shops were farther down, he
-procured some information which sent him up a dark close, to the end
-of which having got, he ascended to a garret in a back tenement, and,
-knocking at the door, was answered by an aged woman.
-
-“Does Helen Grey live here?”
-
-“Ay, sir!” replied she. “If ye ca’ living the breathing awa o’ the
-breath o’ life. It’s a sad thing when auld age and poverty come
-thegither.”
-
-“An old saying, Helen,” replied the father. “Yet there is a third one
-which sanctifieth the other two, and bringeth all into harmony, peace,
-and love, and that is religion. But do you not know your old minister?”
-
-“Brawly, brawly, sir,” replied she; “but the truth is, I didna like to
-speak first; and now, sir, I’m as proud as if I had got a fortune.”
-
-“And so perhaps you have,” added the father. “But come, sit down. I’ve
-got something to say;” and having seated himself he continued. “Was
-Maister Andrew Gebbie, our worthy elder, in the habit of visiting you?”
-
-“Indeed, and he did aince or twice come and see me; but never mair,”
-replied she. “Yet he was sae kind as to bring me the last time this
-book o’ psalms and paraphrases, and there’s some writing in’t which I
-couldna read.”
-
-“Let me see it,” he said.
-
-And the woman having handed him the book--
-
-“To Mrs Janet Grey,” said the minister, as he read the inscription.
-
-“A mistake, for my name is Helen,” said she. “But it was weel meant in
-Mr Gebbie, and it’s a’ the same.”
-
-“A staff to help her on to the happy land,” continued the reverend
-doctor, reading.
-
-“No ‘The Happy Land’ near bye?” interjected Helen.
-
-“Not likely,” continued the doctor with a smile. “But I have good news
-for you, Helen.”
-
-“Good news for me!” said the woman. “That must come frae an airth no
-within the four quarters o’ the earthly compass. I thought a’ gude news
-for _me_ had ta’en wings, and floun awa to the young and the happy.”
-
-“It seems not,” said he; “for Elder Andrew has left you a legacy of
-three hundred pounds.”
-
-“Stop, stop, sir!” ejaculated the frightened legatee. “It canna be, and
-though it was sae, I couldna bear the grandeur. It would put out the
-sma’ spark o’ life that’s left in my auld heart.”
-
-“No, no!” said he. “It is only an earthly inheritance, Helen, to keep
-you in ease and comfort in your declining years, till you succeed to
-that inheritance which knoweth no decay, and fadeth not away.”
-
-“But is it really possible, good sir?” she continued, a little
-reconciled to that whereunto there is a pretty natural predisposition
-in human nature. “But I havena blessed Elder Andrew yet. May the Lord
-receive Andrew Gebbie’s soul into endless glory!”
-
-“Amen!” said the reverend doctor. “I will speak of this again to you,
-Helen.”
-
-And with these words he left the still confused woman, who would very
-likely still feel a difficulty in comprehending the length and breadth
-of the goodness of a man who had seen her only a few times, and given
-her a psalm-book, and called her Janet in place of Helen--a mistake he
-must have rectified before he made his will.
-
-Next day the reverend doctor of Trinity had another meeting in the
-office of the law-agent to the trust, Mr George Crawford, whereat he
-recounted how he had found out the legatee; how strange it was that
-the poor woman was entirely ignorant of her good fortune; how grateful
-she was; and, above all, how strange that the saintly elder had only
-seen her a few times, and knew so little of her that he had made
-the foresaid mistake in her name. All which did seem strange to the
-brethren, not any one of whom would even have thought of giving more
-than perhaps a pound to such a person. But as the motives of men are
-hidden from the eyes of their fellows, and are indeed like the skins of
-onions, placed one above another, so they considered that all they had
-to do was to walk by the will.
-
-“We have no alternative,” said Father Tron; “nor should we wish any,
-seeing that the money could not be better applied; for has not the son
-of Sirach said, ‘Give unto a godly man, and not unto a sinner.’”
-
-“And,” added Tolbooth, “we are also commanded to give of our substance
-to the poor, and ‘do well unto those that are lowly.’”
-
-“Yes,” said Father Trinity. “Mr Gebbie’s object was clear enough; it
-was sufficient for him that the woman was poor; therein lay his reward;
-and I presume we have nothing to do but to authorise Mr Crawford to pay
-the money.”
-
-“Which I will do, gentlemen,” said the writer, “if you authorise me;
-but I frankly confess to you that I am not altogether satisfied,
-because I knew Mr Andrew Gebbie intimately, and, godly as he was, I can
-hardly think he was the man to make a comparative stranger the medium
-of the accumulation of compound interest to be got back in heaven.
-Besides, Helen Grey is so common a name, that I believe I could get
-several in Edinburgh; and if we were to pay to the wrong woman, you
-might be bound to refund out of your own stipends, which would not be a
-very pleasant thing.”
-
-A speech which, touching the word stipend, brought a very grave look
-into the faces of the brethren.
-
-“A most serious, yea, a momentous consideration,” said Tron, followed
-by the two others.
-
-Nor had the groan got time to die away when the door opened, and there
-stood before them a woman of somewhere about forty, a little shabby
-in her apparel, though with a decayed flush of gaudy colour in it here
-and there; somewhat blowsy too--the tendency to the tint of the peony
-being more evident about the region of the nose, where there was a spot
-or two very clearly predisposed to the sending forth, under favourable
-circumstances, of a pimple; rather bold-looking in addition, even in
-presence of holy men who wielded the Calvinistic thunders of the day,
-and followed them up with the refreshing showers of grace and love.
-
-“I understand,” said she, “that Elder Andrew Gebbie has left me a
-legacy o’ three hundred pounds, and I will thank you for the siller.”
-
-On hearing which the three fathers looked at each other in amazement,
-and it was clear they did not like the appearance of the new claimant.
-
-“Who are you?” said Trinity.
-
-“Helen Grey!” replied she. “I live in Leith Wynd. Mr Andrew Gebbie and
-me were man and wife.”
-
-“Where are your marriage lines?” asked Tron.
-
-“I hae nane,” replied she. “It was a marriage by giving and taking
-between ourselves--a gude marriage by the law.”
-
-“And no witnesses?” said Tron.
-
-“The deil ane but the Lord.”
-
-“Wh-e-w!” whistled Father Tron, not audibly, only as it were within the
-mouth.
-
-“It is very true,” said Father Trinity, as he looked askance at the
-claimant, and contrasted her in his mind with the other Nelly, who he
-was satisfied was the real Nelly Pure, “that Mr Andrew Gebbie left that
-sum of money to a certain Helen Grey, but we have no evidence to show
-that you are the right woman.”
-
-“The right woman!” ejaculated she, with a bold laugh; “and how could I
-be the wrong ane, when I cut Andrew Gebbie’s corns for ten years?”
-
-“Oh, a chiropodist!” said Father Tron.
-
-“I’m nae corn-doctor, sir,” replied she, with something like offended
-pride: “I never cut another man’s corns in my life.”
-
-“We are nearly getting into that lightness of speech which betokeneth
-vanity,” said another of the brethren. “It is a serious matter; and we
-must require of you, Mrs Grey--seeing that the marriage cannot, even
-by your own statement, be taken into account, for want of evidence--to
-prove that you were upon such terms of friendship with Mr Gebbie as to
-make it probable that he would leave you this large sum of money.”
-
-“Friendship!” cried the woman again. “Ay, for ten years, and wha can
-tell where the flee may stang? It was nae mair than he should have
-dune. I am Helen Grey, and I insist upon my rights.”
-
-“But,” said Father Trinity, “there is another Helen Grey in Leith Wynd,
-with whom Mr Gebbie was acquainted, and to whom he made a present of a
-psalm-book.”
-
-“And did he no gie me a psalm-book too!” quoth the woman. “I have it at
-hame, and you are welcome to see my name on’t written by the elder’s
-ain hand. But did this second Helen Grey cut the good elder’s corns for
-ten lang years, I wonder? Tell me that, gentlemen, and I’ll tell you
-something mair that will make your ears ring as they never did at a
-psalm.”
-
-“Still this irreverend nonsense about corns: woman, are you mad?”
-said Tron. “Give us the names of respectable people who knew of this
-asserted friendship between you and the deceased elder.”
-
-“The deil ane kent o’t, sir, but ourselves!” was the sharp answer of
-the woman. “And if it comes to that, I can prove naething; but I tell
-you there’s mair in the corns than ye wot.”
-
-“Oh! she wants to prove the _footing_ she was on with Mr Gebbie,”
-punned Mr Crawford with a laugh, and the grave brethren could not
-help joining in what Tron called a fine example of the figure called
-_paronomasia_.
-
-“That’s just it,” said the woman. “I will prove that I knew the length
-o’ his big tae, and may be mair.”
-
-“And what more?” asked Father Tron.
-
-“That Mr Gebbie had six toes on his left foot!” answered she.
-
-“And what of that?” inquired the agent, as he pricked up his ears at
-what might turn out a more special means of knowledge than they were
-dreaming of.
-
-“A great deal,” continued the woman. “Sae muckle that I need nae mair,
-for be it kenned to ye that Mr Gebbie was aye ashamed o’ what he
-thought a deformity, and concealed it from a’ living mortals except
-me. If ye’ll prove that there’s anither person in a’ Edinburgh, in
-Scotland, or in the hail world, wha kens that Elder Andrew had six toes
-on his left foot, I’ll give up a’ right to the three hundred pounds!”
-
-“So there is something in the corns after all,” whispered Mr Crawford
-to Trinity, and the others hearing the remark began to think, and
-think, and look at each other, as if they felt that the woman had
-fairly shut them up to a test of her truthfulness easily applied. So
-telling her to call back next day at the same hour, they requested
-her to leave them. And after she was gone, the four gentlemen began
-gradually to relax from their gravity as they saw the ingenuity of the
-woman, for it was quite apparent that if it should turn out that no
-one--servant, relative, or doctor--could tell this wonderful fact about
-the six toes of their own knowledge, however derived, and that this
-Helen Grey was the sole confidential custodier thereof--the conclusion
-was all but certain that she knew it by being intrusted with the
-cutting of the holy man’s corns, as she had asserted. And a confidence
-of this kind, (setting aside the irregular marriage,) implied a
-friendship so close as to justify the legacy. What in the meantime
-remained to be done was for the agent to see any persons connected with
-the elder’s household who were likely to know the fact, and being an
-honourable man he behoved to do this without what is called a leading
-question.
-
-Accordingly, that same afternoon Mr Crawford busied himself to the
-effect of having seen the good elder’s housekeeper, as well as the
-doctor who had attended him upon his last illness, with perhaps a dozen
-of other likely people, such as the other legatees and relations, all
-of whom were entirely ignorant of the fact set forth by the woman,
-viz., that Mr Gebbie had six toes on his left foot. And next day the
-trustees met again, when Mr Crawford told them, before touching on the
-corns, that an agent had called upon him from the other Helen first
-seen, demanding payment to her. He then told the trustees the result
-of his inquiries--that not a single person of all he had seen knew
-anything of the abnormal foot. At this the clergymen wondered more and
-more, and how long they might have sat there and wondered it might have
-been difficult to say, had it not been for an ingenious idea started by
-Tron, and suggested by the old story about King Charles and the fish in
-the bucket of water.
-
-“The woman is laughing at us,” said he, “and we are inquiring whether
-certain people knew a fact without making ourselves acquainted with
-the prior fact, whether that prior fact had ever any existence except
-in the brain of this bad woman, whose evidence goes to traduce the
-character of a holy elder of the Church of Scotland.”
-
-The brethren again laughed at this ingenious discovery of Father
-Tron’s, and thereupon began to veer round in favour of good Nelly
-_prima_. In a few minutes more entered Blowsabel again, holding in
-her hand a psalm-book with some words of an inscription on it in the
-handwriting of the elder, but subscribed “a friend,” whereas, as
-the reader may recollect, the inscription in the book given to the
-first Helen, (with the misnomer of Janet,) was in the name of Andrew
-Gebbie--a fact rather in favour of Nelly _secunda_, insomuch as it
-harmonised with her statement that the friendship between the elder
-and her had been kept a secret known only to themselves.
-
-“That goes for what it’s worth,” said she, as she received back the
-book. “And now,” she continued, addressing Mr Crawford, “you can tell
-me whether you were able to find, within the hail o’ Edinburgh, a
-single person who knew that Elder Andrew had six taes on his left foot.”
-
-“I have found no one,” was the answer, “for the good reason that Andrew
-Gebbie had no more toes on his left foot than you yourself have on
-yours.”
-
-Whereupon Helen _secunda_ burst out into a laugh. After which, said
-she, “I will prove it, as sure as I am a living woman!”
-
-“The man is dead and buried!” replied Mr Crawford, with a voice of
-triumph.
-
-“That makes nae difference,” said she; “unless it be that the worms
-have eaten awa the sixth tae; and, by my faith, I’ll see to it!”
-
-And with these words she went away, leaving the trustees in as great a
-difficulty as ever. Nor had she been long gone when a man of the name
-of Marshall, the procurator who had taken up the case of the first
-Helen, entered and said, “he had got evidence to show that a neighbour,
-who had been present at the last interview between the elder and his
-client, had heard the worthy man declare, that he had been moved to
-pity by her age and poverty, and had promised to do something for her,
-to enable her to pass her remaining years in comfort.”
-
-“But,” said the agent, “there is, I am sorry to say, another Helen in
-the field; and you must drive her off before we can pay your client the
-money.”
-
-“And I know who she is,” was the answer. “That woman’s word is not
-to be relied upon; for she is what she is.” And then he added, “I am
-determined to see justice done to my client--who, at least, is an
-honest woman.”
-
-“Now you see, gentlemen,” said Mr Crawford, after the first Helen’s
-agent had departed--“you see how this extraordinary affair stands. The
-two claimants are determined to fight it out: so that, if you pay the
-money to the good woman, you will, as I said before, run a risk of
-being obliged to pay the other one afterwards out of your stipends.”
-
-“Our stipends are the holy tenths, set apart to the work of the Lord
-from the beginning of the world,” answered the brethren, “and cannot be
-touched, except by sacrilegious hands!”
-
-“Then,” continued the agent, “there is only one thing we can do;
-and that is, to throw the case into court by what we call a
-multiplepoinding, and let the claimants fight against each other.”
-
-A proposition this to which the trustees felt themselves bound to
-agree, though with very much reluctance; for they saw that the case
-would become public, and there would be ill-disposed people that would
-be inclined to put a false construction upon the motives of the worthy
-elder of Trinity. But then, to comfort them, they felt assured that the
-story of the toes was a pure invention; and the elder being buried,
-there was no possibility of proving the same.
-
-Whereupon the meeting separated. Next day Mr Crawford commenced his
-law proceedings; and in due time, a record having been prepared, the
-advocates behoved to plead the causes of their respective clients.
-
-Then stood up Mr Anderson, the advocate of the first Helen, and said:--
-
-“Your lordships must see that--if you lay out of view as a mere
-invention, which it is, the story of the six toes--the preponderance
-of the evidence lies with my client. There is a psalm-book in each
-case; but mine has the name of the testator to the inscription: and you
-have, in addition, the testimony of one respectable person who heard Mr
-Gebbie declare his intention to enable this poor old woman to live. On
-the other side you have no evidence whatever that the elder ever set
-his foot--corns or no corns--on the floor of the Helen _secunda_. There
-was no such _footing_ of intimacy as that contended for on the other
-side; and that I am justified in calling the story of the six toes
-an invention will appear when I say that, according to the authority
-of learned men, a _lusus naturæ_ of this kind does not occur once in
-ten thousand births: so that it is ten thousand to one against the
-assumption. In addition, there is the character of the deceased, whose
-whole life and conversation are against the presumption that he would
-go to Leith Wynd, and get a woman of doubtful character to operate upon
-a foot of which he is said to have been ashamed. For all which reasons
-I claim the three hundred pounds for my client.”
-
-Then stood up Mr Sharp, the advocate of the second Helen, and said:--
-
-“It is no wonder at all why my learned friend has a difficulty about
-his _locus standi_, seeing he is so delicate about the feet. I feel
-no delicacy on that fundamental point. And it is because my corns of
-legal right and justice are pared that I stand here with so much ease,
-and assert that Mr Gebbie having imparted to my client a secret which
-he never communicated to living mortal besides, that secret could
-only have been the result of an intimacy and confidence sufficient to
-justify this legacy in her favour of three hundred pounds. My friend
-says, that there are many chances against such a freak of nature as
-six toes. That is true. But he confounds the thing with the assertion
-of the thing. And were there not a presumption in favour of a person
-speaking the truth rather than falsehood, what would become of that
-testimony which is the foundation of our holy religion, not less than
-of the decisions of our courts of justice? But it is in the power of
-this court to ascertain the truth of my assertion. The body of the
-worthy elder can be exhumed; and if it shall appear that it has six
-toes on the left foot, the presumption of the intimacy of friendship
-which will justify the legacy is complete. On the other side there is
-no such presumption. The elder only visited the first Helen once or
-twice, and what was to induce him to leave her so large a sum to the
-deprivation of his poor relations?”
-
-Then the President spoke as follows:--
-
-“It appears to the Court that, in this very extraordinary case, we
-never can get at the truth without testing, by proof, the statement
-made by the second Helen in regard to the six toes, because if it is
-really a fact that the testator carried this number on his left foot,
-and by parity that that number carried him, it is impossible to get
-quit of the presumption that the fact was communicated confidentially
-when the operation of paring was resorted to; and as confidence
-implies friendship, and friendship intimacy, we must assume that there
-must have been such an amount of mutual liking on the part of these
-individuals as would justify the legacy which is the subject-matter
-of this multiplepoinding. The Court will therefore issue an order
-for the exhumation of the body of Andrew Gebbie, for the purpose of
-ascertaining whether the testator’s foot was formed in the manner
-asserted by the claimant.”
-
-The commission was accordingly issued. The body of the elder was
-examined as it lay in the coffin, and the result of the examination, as
-stated in the report, was: “That the left foot was furnished with six
-toes, the sixth or supernumerary one being much smaller than the one
-next to it. It also appeared that the toes of this foot were supplied
-with a number of very hard corns, which bore the marks of having been
-often pared by some very careful hand.”
-
-Whereupon the case was again taken up, when judgment was given for the
-second Helen, who was thus remarkably well paid for her attention to
-the corns of the worthy elder. When the decision was reported to the
-reverend executors, Father Tron shook his head with great gravity,
-Tolbooth did the same, and so did Trinity: nay, they all shook their
-heads at the same time: but what they intended to signify thereby was
-never known, for the reason that it was never declared.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Mysie Craig.
-
-
-In detailing the curious circumstances of the following story, I am
-again only reporting a real law case to be found in the Court of
-Session Records, the turning-point of which was as invisible to the
-judges as to the parties themselves--that is, until the end came; a
-circumstance again which made the case a kind of developed romance. But
-as an end implies a beginning, and the one is certainly as necessary as
-the other, we request you to accompany us--taking care of your feet--up
-the narrow spiral staircase of a tenement called Corbet’s Land, in
-the same old town where so many wonderful things in the complicated
-drama--or dream, if you are a Marphurius--of human life have occurred.
-Up which spiral stair having got by the help of our hands, almost
-as indispensable as that of the feet--we find ourselves in a little
-human dovecot of two small rooms, occupied by two persons not unlike,
-in many respects, two doves--Widow Craig and her daughter, called
-May, euphuised by the Scotch into Mysie. The chief respects in which
-they might be likened, without much stress, to the harmless creatures
-we have mentioned, were their love for each other, together with
-their total inoffensiveness as regarded the outside world; and we are
-delighted to say this, for we see so many of the multitudinous sides of
-human nature dark and depraved, that we are apt to think there is no
-bright side at all. Nor shall we let slip the opportunity of saying,
-at the risk of being considered very simple, that of all the gifts of
-felicity bestowed, as the Pagan Homer tells, upon mankind by the gods,
-no one is so perfect and beautiful as the love that exists between a
-good mother and a good daughter.
-
-For so much we may be safe by having recourse to instinct, which is
-deeper than any secondary causes we poor mortals can see. But beyond
-this, there were special reasons tending to this same result of mutual
-affection, which come more within the scope of our observation. In
-explanation of which we may say that the mother, having something in
-her power during her husband’s life, had foreseen the advantages of
-using it in the instruction of her quick and intelligent daughter
-in an art of far more importance then than now--that of artistic
-needlework. Nay, of so much importance was this beautiful art, and
-to such perfection was it brought at a time when a lady’s petticoat,
-embroidered by the hand, with its profuse imitations of natural
-objects, flowers, and birds, and strange devices, would often cost
-twenty pounds Scots, that a sight of one of those operose achievements
-of genius would make us blush for our time and the labours of our
-women. Nor was the perfection in this ornamental industry a new thing,
-for the daughters of the Pictish kings confined in the castle were
-adepts in it; neither was it left altogether to paid sempstresses, for
-great ladies spent their time in it, and emulation quickened both the
-genius and the diligence. So we need hardly say it became to the mother
-a thing to be proud of, that her daughter Mysie proved herself so apt
-a scholar that she became an adept, and was soon known as one of the
-finest embroideresses in the great city. So, too, as a consequence,
-it came to pass that great ladies employed her, and often the narrow
-spiral staircase of Corbet’s Land was brushed on either side by the
-huge masses of quilted and emblazoned silk that, enveloping the belles
-of the day, were with difficulty forced up to, and down from, the small
-room of the industrious Mysie.
-
-But we are now speaking of art, while we should have more to say (for
-it concerns us more) of the character of the young woman who was
-destined to figure in a stranger way than in making beautiful figures
-on silk. Mysie was one of a class; few in number they are indeed, but
-on that account more to be prized. Her taste and fine manipulations
-were but counterparts of qualities of the heart--an organ to which the
-pale face, with its delicate lines, and the clear liquid eyes, was a
-suitable index. The refinement which enabled her to make her imitation
-of beautiful objects on the delicate material of her work was only
-another form of a sensibility which pervaded her whole nature--that
-gift which is only conceded to peculiar organisations, and is such a
-doubtful one, too, if we go, as we cannot help doing, with the poet,
-when he sings that “chords that vibrate sweetest pleasures,” often also
-“thrill the deepest notes of woe.” Nay, we might say that the creatures
-themselves seem to fear the gift, for they shrink from the touch of
-the rough world, and retire within themselves as if to avoid it, while
-they are only courting its effects in the play of an imagination much
-too ardent for the duties of life. And, as a consequence, how they
-seek secretly the support of stronger natures, clinging to them as do
-those strange plants called parasites, which, with their tender arms
-and something so like fingers, cling to the nearest stem of a stouter
-neighbour, and embracing it, even though hollow and rotten, cover it,
-and choke it with a flood of flowers. So true is it that woman, like
-the generous vine, lives by being supported and held up; yet equally
-true that the strength she gains is from the embrace she gives, and so
-it is also that goodness, as our Scottish poet Home says, often wounds
-itself, and affection proves the spring of sorrow.
-
-All which might truly be applied to Mysie Craig; but as yet the
-stronger stem to which she clung was her mother, and it was not
-likely, nor was it in reality, that that affection would prove to her
-anything but the spring of happiness, for it was ripened by love,
-and the earnings of the nimble fingers, moving often into the still
-hours of the night, not only kept the wolf from the door, but let in
-the lambs of domestic harmony and peace. Would that these things had
-so continued; but there are other wolves than those of poverty, and
-the “ae lamb o’ the fauld” cannot be always under the protection of
-the ewe; and so it happened on a certain night, not particularised
-in the calendar, that our Mysie, having finished one of these floral
-petticoats on which she had been engaged for many weeks, went forth
-with her precious burden to deliver the same to its impatient
-owner--no other than the then famous Anabella Gilroy, who resided in
-Advocate’s Close. Of which fine lady, by the way, we may say that
-of all the gay creatures who paraded between “the twa Bows,” no one
-displayed such ample folds of brocaded silk, nodded her pon-pons more
-jantily, or napped with a sharper crack her high-heeled shoes, all to
-approve herself to “the bucks” of the time, with their square coats
-brocaded with lace, their three-cornered hats on the top of their
-bob-wigs, their knee-buckles and shoe-buckles. And certainly not the
-least important of those, both in his own estimation and that of the
-sprightly Anabella, was George Balgarnie, a young man who had only a
-year before succeeded to the property of Balgruddery, somewhere in
-the north, and of whom we might say that in forming him Nature had
-taken so much pains with the building up of the body, that she had
-forgotten the mind, so that he had no more spiritual matter in him than
-sufficed to keep his blood hot, and enable his sensual organs to work
-out their own selfish gratifications; or, to perpetrate a metaphor,
-he was all the polished mahogany of a piano, without any more musical
-springs than might respond to one keynote of selfishness. And surely
-Anabella had approved herself to the fop to some purpose, for when our
-sempstress with her bundle had got into the parlour of the fine lady,
-she encountered no other than Balgarnie--a circumstance apparently of
-very small importance, but we know that a moment of time is sometimes
-like a small seed, which contains the nucleus of a great tree, perhaps
-a poisonous one. And so it turned out that while Anabella was gloating
-over the beautiful work of the timid embroideress, Balgarnie was
-busy admiring the artist, but not merely, perhaps not at all, as an
-artist--only as an object over whom he wished to exercise power.
-
-This circumstance was not unobserved by the little embroideress, but it
-was only observed to be shrunk from in her own timid way, and probably
-it would soon have passed from her mind, if it had not been followed
-up by something more direct and dangerous. And it was; for no sooner
-had Mysie got to the foot of the stairs than she encountered Balgarnie,
-who had gone out before her; and now began one of those romances in
-daily life of which the world is full, and of which the world is sick.
-Balgarnie, in short, commenced that kind of suit which is nearly as
-old as the serpent, and, therefore, not to be wondered at; neither are
-we to wonder that Mysie listened to it, because we have heard so much
-about “lovely woman stooping to folly,” that we are content to put
-it to the large account of natural miracles. And not very miraculous
-either, when we remember, that if the low-breathed accents of
-tenderness awaken the germ of love, they awaken at the same time faith
-and trust; and such was the beginning of the romance which was to go
-through the normal stages--the appointment to meet again--the meeting
-itself--the others that followed--the extension of the moonlight walks,
-sometimes to the Hunter’s Bog between Arthur’s Seat and Salisbury
-Crags, and sometimes to the song-famed “Wells o’ Weary.” All which were
-just as sun and shower to the germ of the plant: the love grew and
-grew, and the faith grew and grew also which saw in him that which it
-felt in itself. Nay, if any of those moonlight-loving elves that have
-left their foot-marks in the fairy rings to be seen near St Anthony’s
-Well had whispered in Mysie’s ear, “Balgarnie will never make you his
-wife,” she would have believed the words as readily as if they had
-impugned the sincerity of her own heart. In short, we have again the
-analogue of the parasitic plant: the very fragility and timidity of
-Mysie were at once the cause and consequence of her confidence. She
-would cling to him and cover him with the blossoms of her affection;
-nay, if there were unsoundness in the stem, these very blossoms would
-cover the rottenness.
-
-This change in the life of the little sempstress could not fail to
-produce some corresponding change at home. We read smoothly the play we
-have acted ourselves--and so the mother read love in the daughter’s
-eyes, and heard it, too, in her long sighs; nor did she fail to read
-the sign that the song which used to lighten her beautiful work was no
-longer heard; for love to creatures so formed as Mysie Craig is too
-serious an affair for poetical warbling. But she said nothing--for
-while she had faith in the good sense and virtue of her daughter, she
-knew also that there was forbearance due to one who was her support.
-Nor, as yet, had she reason to fear, for Mysie still plied her needle,
-and the roses and the lilies sprang up in all their varied colours
-out of the ground of the silk or satin as quickly and as beautifully
-as they were wont, though the lilies of her cheeks waxed paler as the
-days flitted. And why the latter should have been we must leave to the
-reader; for ourselves only hazarding the supposition that, perhaps, she
-already thought that Balgarnie should be setting about to make her his
-wife--an issue which behoved to be the result of their intimacy sooner
-or later, for that in her simple mind there should be any other issue
-was just about as impossible as that, in the event of the world lasting
-as long, the next moon would not, at her proper time, again shine in
-that green hollow, between the Lion’s Head and Samson’s Ribs, which
-had so often been the scene of their happiness. Nay, we might say that
-though a doubt on the subject had by any means got into her mind, it
-would not have remained there longer than it took a shudder to scare
-the wild thing away.
-
-Of course, all this was only a question of time; but certain it is
-that by and by the mother could see some connexion between Mysie’s
-being more seldom out on those moonlight nights than formerly, and a
-greater paleness in her thin face, as if the one had been the cause
-of the other; but still she said nothing, for she daily expected that
-Mysie would herself break the subject to her, and so she was left only
-to increasing fears that her daughter’s heart and affections had been
-tampered with, and perhaps she had fears that went farther. Still, so
-far as yet had gone, there was no remission in the labours of Mysie’s
-fingers, as if in the midst of all--whatever that all might be--she
-recognised the paramount necessity of bringing in by those fingers
-the required and usual amount of the means of their livelihood. Nay,
-somehow or other, there was at that very time when her cheek was at the
-palest, and her sighs were at their longest, and her disinclination
-to speak was at the strongest, that the work increased upon her; for
-was not there a grand tunic to embroider for Miss Anabella, which
-was wanted on a given day--and were there not other things for Miss
-Anabella’s friend, Miss Allardice, which were not to be delayed beyond
-that same day. And so she stitched and stitched on and on, till
-sometimes the little lamp seemed to go out for want of oil, while the
-true cause of her diminished light was really the intrusion of the
-morning sun, against which it had no chance. It might be, too, that her
-very anxiety to get these grand dresses finished helped to keep out of
-her mind ideas which could have done her small good, even if they had
-got in.
-
-But at length the eventful hour came when the gentle sempstress
-withdrew the shining needle, made clear by long use, from the last
-touch of the last rose; and, doubtless, if Mysie had not been under
-the cloud of sorrow we have mentioned, she would have been happier at
-the termination of so long a labour than she had ever been, for the
-finishing evening had always been a great occasion to both the inmates;
-nay, it had been always celebrated by a glass of strong Edinburgh
-ale--a drink which, as both a liquor and a liqueur, was as famous then
-as it is at this day. But of what avail was this work-termination to
-her now? Was it not certain that she had not seen Balgarnie for two
-moons, and though the impossibility of his not marrying her was just
-as impossible as ever, why were these two moons left to shine in the
-green hollow and on the rising hill without the privilege of throwing
-the shadows of Mysie Craig and George Balgarnie on the grass, where the
-fairies had left the traces of their dances? Questions these which
-she was unable to answer, if it were not even that she was afraid to
-put them to herself. Then, when was it that she felt herself unable
-to tie up her work in order to take it home, and that her mother,
-seeing the reacting effect of the prior sleepless nights in her languid
-frame, did this little duty for her, even as while she was doing it
-she looked through her tears at her changed daughter? But Mysie would
-do so much. While the mother should go to Miss Allardice, Mysie would
-proceed to Miss Anabella--and so it was arranged. They went forth
-together, parting at the Netherbow; and Mysie, in spite of a weakness
-which threatened to bring her with her burden to the ground, struggled
-on to her destination. At the top of Advocate’s Close she saw a man
-hurry out and increase his step even as her eye rested on him; and if
-it had not appeared to her to be among the ultimate impossibilities of
-things, natural as well as unnatural, she would have sworn that that
-man was George Balgarnie; but then, it just so happened that Mysie came
-to the conclusion that such a circumstance was among these ultimate
-impossibilities.
-
-This resolution was an effort which cost her more than the conviction
-would have done, though doubtless she did not feel this at the time,
-and so with a kind of forced step she mounted the stair, but when she
-got into the presence of Miss Gilroy she could scarcely pronounce the
-words--
-
-“I have brought you the dress, ma’am.”
-
-“And I am so delighted, Miss Craig, that I could almost take you into
-my arms,” said the lady; “but what ails ye, dear? You are as white as
-any snow I ever saw, whereas you ought to have been as blithe as a
-bridesmaid, for don’t you know that you have brought me home one of my
-marriage dresses? Come now, smile when I tell you that to-morrow is my
-wedding-day.”
-
-“Wedding-day,” muttered Mysie, as she thought of the aforesaid utter
-impossibility of herself not being soon married to George Balgarnie, an
-impossibility not rendered less impossible by the resolution she had
-formed not to believe that within five minutes he had flown away from
-her.
-
-“Yes, Miss Craig, and surely you must have heard who the gentleman is,
-for does not the town ring of it from the castle to the palace, from
-Kirk-o’-Field to the Calton?”
-
-“I have not been out,” said Mysie.
-
-“That accounts for it,” continued the lady; “and I am delighted at the
-reason, for wouldn’t it have been terrible to think that my marriage
-with George Balgarnie of Balgruddery was a thing of so small a note as
-not to be known everywhere?”
-
-If Mysie Craig had appeared shortly before to Miss Gilroy paler than
-any snow her ladyship had ever seen, she must now have been as pale
-as some other kind of snow that nobody ever saw. The dreadful words
-had, indeed, produced the adequate effect--but not in the most common
-way, for we are to keep in view that it is not the most shrinking and
-sensitive natures that are always the readiest to faint; and there was,
-besides, the aforesaid conviction of impossibility which, grasping
-the mind by a certain force, deadened the ear to words implying the
-contrary. Mysie stood fixed to the spot, as if she were trying to
-realise some certainty she dared not think was possible, her lips
-apart, her eyes riveted on the face of the lady--mute as that kind of
-picture which a certain ancient calls a silent poem, and motionless as
-a figure of marble.
-
-An attitude and appearance still more inexplicable to Anabella, perhaps
-irritating as an unlucky omen, and, therefore, not possessing any claim
-for sympathy--at least, it got none.
-
-“Are you the Mysie Craig,” she cried, as she looked at the girl, “who
-used to chat to me about the dresses you brought, and the flowers on
-them? Ah, jealous and envious, is that it? But, you forget, George
-Balgarnie never could have made _you_ his wife--a working needlewoman;
-he only fancied you as the plaything of an hour. He told me so himself
-when I charged him with having been seen in your company. So, Mysie,
-you may as well look cheerful. Your turn will come next, with some one
-in your own station.”
-
-There are words which stimulate and confirm--there are others that
-seem to kill the nerve and take away the sense, nor can we ever
-tell the effect till we see it produced; and so we could not have
-told beforehand--nay, we would have looked for something quite
-opposite--that Mysie, shrinking and irritable as she was by nature, was
-saved from a faint, (which had for some moments been threatening her,)
-by the cruel insult which thus had been added to her misfortune. She
-had even power to have recourse to that strange device of some natures,
-that of “affecting to be not affected;” and, casting a glance at the
-fine lady, she turned and went away without uttering a single word.
-But who knows the pain of the conventional concealment of pain, except
-those who have experienced the agony of the trial? Even at the moment
-when she heard that George Balgarnie was to be married, and that she
-came to know that she had been for weeks sewing the marriage dress of
-his bride, she was carrying under her heart the living burden which was
-the fruit of her love for that man. Yet not the burden of shame and
-dishonour, as our story will show, for she was justified by the law
-of her country--yea, by certain words once written by an apostle to
-the Corinthians, all which may as yet appear a great mystery; but, as
-regards Mysie Craig’s agony, as she staggered down Miss Gilroy’s stairs
-on her way home, there could be no doubt or mystery whatever.
-
-Nor, when she got home, was there any comfort there for the daughter
-who had been so undutiful as to depart from her mother’s precepts, and
-conceal from her not only her unfortunate connexion with a villain,
-but the condition into which that connexion had brought her. But she
-was, at least, saved from the pain of a part of the confession, for
-her mother had learned enough from Miss Allardice to satisfy her as to
-the cause of her daughter’s change from the happy creature she once
-was, singing in the long nights as she wrought unremittingly at her
-beautiful work, and the poor, sighing, pale, heart-broken thing she
-had been for months. Nor did she fail to see, with the quick eye of a
-mother, that as Mysie immediately on entering the house laid herself
-quietly on the bed, and sobbed in her great agony, that she had learned
-the terrible truth from Miss Gilroy that the robe she had embroidered
-was to deck the bride of her destroyer. Moreover, her discretion
-enabled her to perceive that this was not the time for explanation,
-for the hours of grief are sacred, and the heart must be left to do its
-work by opening the issues of Nature’s assuagement, or ceasing to beat.
-So the night passed, without question or answer; and the following
-day, that of the marriage, was one of silence, even as if death had
-touched the tongue that used to be the medium of cheerful words and
-tender sympathies--a strange contrast to the joy, if not revelry, in
-Advocate’s Close.
-
-It was not till after several days had passed that Mysie was able, as
-she still lay in bed, to whisper, amidst the recurring sobs, in the
-ear of her mother, as the latter bent over her, the real circumstances
-of her condition; and still, amidst the trembling words, came the
-vindication that she considered herself to be as much the wife of
-George Balgarnie as if they had been joined by “Holy Kirk;” a statement
-which the mother could not understand, if it was not to her a mystery,
-rendered even more mysterious by a reference which Mysie made to the
-law of the country, as she had heard the same from her cousin George
-Davidson, a writer’s clerk in the Lawnmarket. Much of which, as it came
-in broken syllables from the lips of the disconsolate daughter, the
-mother put to the account of the fond dreams of a mind put out of joint
-by the worst form of misery incident to young women. But what availed
-explanations, mysteries or no mysteries, where the fact was patent
-that Mysie Craig lay there, the poor heart-broken victim of man’s
-perfidy--her powers of industry broken and useless--the fine weaving
-genius of her fancy, whereby she wrought her embroidered devices to
-deck and adorn beauty, only engaged now on portraying all the evils of
-her future life; and, above all, was she not soon to become a mother?
-
-Meanwhile, and in the midst of all this misery, the laid-up earnings
-of Mysie’s industry wore away, where there was no work by those
-cunning fingers--now thin and emaciated; and before the days passed,
-and the critical day came whereon another burden would be imposed on
-the household, there was need for the sympathy of neighbours in that
-form which soon wears out--pecuniary help. That critical day at length
-came. Mysie Craig gave birth to a boy, and their necessities from that
-hour grew in quicker and greater proportion than the generosity of
-friends. There behoved something to be done, and that without delay.
-So when Mysie lay asleep, with the innocent evidence of her misfortune
-by her side, Mrs Craig put on her red plaid and went forth on a
-mother’s duty, and was soon in the presence of George Balgarnie and
-his young wife. She was under an impulse which made light of delicate
-conventionalities, and did not think it necessary to give the lady
-an opportunity of being absent; nay, she rather would have her to be
-present--for was she, who had been so far privy to the intercourse
-between her husband and Mysie, to be exempt from the consequences which
-she, in a sense, might have been said to have brought about?
-
-“Ye have ruined Mysie Craig, sir!” cried at once the roused mother. “Ye
-have ta’en awa her honour. Ye have ta’en awa her health. Ye have ta’en
-awa her bread. Ay, and ye have reduced three human creatures to want,
-it may be starvation; and I have come here in sair sorrow and necessity
-to ask when and whaur is to be the remeid?”
-
-“When and where you may find it, woman!” said the lady, as she cast a
-side-glance to her husband, probably by way of appeal for the truth
-of what she thought it right to say. “Mr Balgarnie never injured your
-daughter. Let him who did the deed yield the remeid!”
-
-“And do you stand by this?” said Mrs Craig.
-
-But the husband had been already claimed as free from blame by
-his wife, who kept her eye fixed upon him; and the obligation to
-conscience, said by sceptics to be an offspring of society, is
-sometimes weaker than what is due to a wife, in the estimation of whom
-a man may wish to stand in a certain degree of elevation.
-
-“You must seek another father to the child of your daughter,” said he,
-lightly. And, not content with the denial, he supplemented it by a
-laugh, as he added, “When birds go to the greenwood, they must take the
-chance of meeting the goshawk.”
-
-“And that is your answer?” said she.
-
-“It is; and you need never trouble either my wife or me more on this
-subject,” was the reply.
-
-“Then may the vengeance o’ the God of justice light on the heads o’
-baith o’ ye!” added Mrs Craig, as she went hurriedly away.
-
-Nor was her threat intended as an empty one, for she held on her way
-direct to the Lawnmarket, where she found George Davidson, to whom she
-related as much as she had been able to get out of Mysie, and also what
-had passed at the interview with Balgarnie and his lady. After hearing
-which, the young writer shook his head.
-
-“You will get a trifle of aliment,” said he; “perhaps half-a-crown
-a week, but no more; and Mysie could have made that in a day by her
-beautiful work.”
-
-“And she will never work mair,” said the mother, with a sigh.
-
-“For a hundred years,” rejoined he, more to himself than to her, and
-probably in congratulation of himself for his perspicacity, “and since
-ever there was a college of justice, there never was a case where a man
-pulled up on oath for a promise of marriage admitted the fact. It is a
-good Scotch law--only we want a people to obey it. But what,” he added
-again, “if we were to try it, though it were only as a grim joke and a
-revenge in so sad and terrible a case as that of poor Mysie Craig!”
-
-Words which the mother understood no more than she did law Latin; and
-so she was sent away as sorrowful as she had come, for Davidson did
-not want to raise hopes which there was no chance of being fulfilled;
-but he knew as a Scotchman that a man who trusts himself to “a strae
-rape” in the hope of its breaking, may possibly hang himself, and so
-it happened that the very next day a summons was served upon George
-Balgarnie, to have it found and declared by the Lords of Session that
-he had promised to marry Mysie Craig, whereupon a child had been born
-by her; or, in fault of that, he was bound to sustain the said child.
-Thereupon, without the ordinary law’s delay, certain proceedings went
-on, in the course of which Mysie herself was examined as the mother to
-afford what the lawyers call a _semiplena probatio_, or half proof, to
-be supplemented otherwise, and thereafter George Balgarnie stood before
-the august fifteen. He denied stoutly all intercourse with Mysie,
-except an occasional walk in the Hunter’s Bog; and this he would have
-denied also, but he knew that he had been seen, and that it would be
-sworn to by others; and then came the last question, which Mr Greerson,
-Mysie’s advocate, put in utter hopelessness. Nay, so futile did it seem
-to try to catch a Scotchman by advising him to put his head in a noose
-on the pretence of seeing how it fitted his neck, that he smiled even
-as the words came out of his mouth--
-
-“Did you ever promise to marry Mysie Craig?”
-
-Was prudence, the chief of the four cardinal virtues, ever yet
-consistent with vice? Balgarnie waxed clever--a dangerous trick in a
-witness. He stroked his beard with a smile on his face, and answered--
-
-“_Yes, once--when I was drunk!_”
-
-Words which were immediately followed by the crack of a single word in
-the dry mouth of one of the advocates--the word “NICKED.”
-
-And nicked he was; for the presiding judge, addressing the witness,
-said--
-
-“The drunkenness may be good enough in its own way, sir; but it
-does not take away the effect of your promise--nay, it is even an
-aggravation, insomuch as having enjoyed the drink, you wanted to enjoy
-with impunity what you could make of the promise also.”
-
-If Balgarnie had been a reader he might have remembered Waller’s verse--
-
- “That eagle’s fate and mine are one,
- Which on the shaft that made him die
- Espied a feather of his own,
- Wherewith he wont to soar so high.”
-
-So Mysie gained her plea, and the marriage with Anabella, for whom
-she had embroidered the marriage-gown, was dissolved. How matters
-progressed afterwards for a time we know not; but the Scotch know that
-there is wisdom in making the best of a bad bargain, and in this case
-it was a good one; for, as the Lady of Balgruddery, Mysie Craig did
-no dishonour to George Balgarnie, who, moreover, found her a faithful
-wife, and a good mother to the children that came of this strange
-marriage.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Pinched Tom.
-
-
-In searching again Lord Kilkerran’s Session Papers in the Advocates’
-Library, I observed a strange remark written on the margin of one of
-them--“Beware of pinched Tom”--the meaning of which I was at a loss
-to find. His lordship was known to be a very grave man, as well as an
-excellent lawyer, and all so unlike the Newtons and Harmands, who made
-the blind Lady Justice laugh by the antics of that other lady sung by
-Beranger--Dame Folly--that I was put to my wit’s end, although I admit
-that, by a reference to a part of the printed Session Papers opposite
-to which the remark was made, I thought I could catch a glimmering
-of his lordship’s intention. The law case occupying the papers
-comprehended a question of disputed succession, and that question
-involved the application of a curious law in Scotland, which still
-remains.
-
-I believe we borrowed it from that great repertory from which our
-forefathers took so much wisdom--the Roman code; but be that as it
-may, (and it’s no great matter in so far as regards my story,) certain
-it is that it is a part of our jurisprudence, that where a marriage
-is dissolved by the death of the wife within a year and a day of the
-celebration thereof, without leaving a living child, the tocher goes
-back to the wife’s friends. Of course nothing is more untrue than that
-bit of connubial wit: that while we hold, according to the Bible, that
-a man and his wife are _one_, we also very sensibly hold that the
-husband is _that one_. Then the child behoves to be a living child; but
-what constituted a living child often turned out to be as difficult
-a question as what constitutes a new birth of a living Christian,
-according to our good old sturdy Calvinism; for as all doctors know
-that a child will, on coming into the world, give a breath or two
-with a shiver, and then go off like a candle not properly lighted, it
-became a question whether, in such a case, the child could be said to
-have lived. Sometimes, too, the living symptom is less doubtful, as
-in the case, also very common, where the little stranger gives a tiny
-scream, the consequence of the filling of the lungs by the rushing in
-of the air, and having experienced a touch of the evils of life, makes
-up its mind to be off as quickly as possible from a wicked world. Now
-this last symptom our Scotch law accepts as the only evidence which
-can be received that the child had within it a living-spirit, or, as
-we call it, an immortal soul. It would be of no importance that it
-opened and shut its eyes, moved its hands, or kicked or sprawled in any
-way you please; all this is nothing but infantine pantomime, and the
-worst pantomime, too, that it has no possible meaning that any rational
-person could understand, and so, therefore, it goes for nothing. In
-short, our law holds that, unless “baby squeak,” there is no evidence
-that baby ever lived. Nor is any distinction made between the male
-and the female, although we know so well that the latter is much more
-inclined to make a noise than the other, were it for nothing else than
-to exhibit a first attempt to do that at which the sex are so good when
-they grow up and get husbands.
-
-To bring back the reader to Lord Kilkerran’s remark--“Beware of Pinched
-Tom”--the case to which the note applied comprehended the question
-whether the child had been heard to cry, and though the connexion might
-be merely imaginary on my part, I recollected in the instant having
-heard the story I now relate of Mr Thomas Whitelaw, a merchant burgess
-of Edinburgh, who figured somewhere between the middle and the end of
-last century, and took for wife a certain Janet Monypenny. In which
-union “the sufficient reason” which always exists, though we do not
-always know it, was on the part of the said Thomas the certainty that
-Janet’s name (defying Shakespeare’s question) was a real designative
-of a quality, that being that she possessed, in her own right, not
-merely many a penny, but so many thousand pennies, that they amounted
-to somewhere about two thousand merks, a large sum in those olden
-days. And this money was perhaps the more valuable, that the heiress
-had an unfortunate right by inheritance to consumption, whereby she
-ran a risk of being taken away, leaving her money unconsumed in the
-hands of her husband; an event, this latter, which our merchant burgess
-could certainly have turned to more certain account if he had provided
-against the law we have mentioned by entering into an antenuptial
-contract of marriage, wherein it might have been set forth that, though
-the marriage should be dissolved by the death of the wife before “year
-and day,” without a living child being born thereof, yet the husband’s
-right to the tocher would remain. But then Burgess Thomas did not know
-of any such law, while Mr George Monypenny, the brother of Mrs Janet,
-knew it perfectly, the more by token that he was a writer, that is, a
-legal practitioner, at the Luckenbooths. And though Mr George might
-have made a few pennies by writing out the contract, he never hinted
-to his intended brother-in-law of the propriety of any such act,
-because he knew that he had a chance of coming to more pennies, by the
-death of his sister, within the year and the day.
-
-So the marriage was entered into without more use of written paper than
-what we call the marriage lines, and Writer George was satisfied until
-he began to see that Mrs Whitelaw was likely to be a mother before the
-expiry of the year and the day; but then he had the consolation--for,
-alas! human nature was the same in those olden times that it is now--of
-seeing that, while poor Janet was increasing in one way, she was
-decreasing in another, so that it was not unlikely that there would be
-not only a dead child, but a dead mother; and then he would come in
-as nearest of kin for the tocher of two thousand merks, of all which
-speculations on the part of the unnatural brother, Burgess Thomas knew
-nothing. But it so happened that Mrs Euphan Lythgow, the most skilly
-howdie or midwife in Edinburgh at that time, was the woman who was to
-bring the child into the world, and she had seen indications enough to
-satisfy her that there was a probability that things would go on in the
-very way so cruelly hoped for by the man of the law; nay, she had her
-eyes--open enough at all times--more opened still by some questions put
-to her by the wily expectant, and so she held it to be her duty to go
-straight to Burgess Thomas.
-
-“I fear,” said she, “baith for the mother and the bairn, for she is
-worn awa to skin and bane, and if she bear the heir she will only get
-lighter, as we ca’ it, to tak on a heavier burden, even that o’ death.
-The bairn may live, but it’s only a chance.”
-
-Whereat Burgess Thomas looked sad, for he really loved his wife, but it
-might just happen that a thought came into his head that death had no
-power over the two thousand merks.
-
-“If baith the mother and the bairn dee,” continued Euphan, “the money
-you got by her will tak wing and flee awa to Mr George, her brother.”
-
-“What mean you, woman?” asked Mr Whitelaw, as he looked wistfully and
-fearfully into the face of the howdie.
-
-“Had ye no’ a contract o’ marriage?” continued she.
-
-“No,” was the answer.
-
-“Aweel, ye’re in danger, for ken ye na it is our auld Scotch law that
-when there’s nae contract, and the year and the day hasna passed, and
-when the mither dees and the bairn dees without a cry, the tocher flees
-back again? Heard ye never the auld rhyme--
-
- ‘Mither dead and bairn gane,
- Pay the tocher to her kin;
- But an ye hear the bairn squeal,
- Gudeman, grip the tocher weel.’”
-
-“God bless me, Mrs Lythgow! is that the law?” cried the husband, in a
-fright.
-
-“Indeed, and it is,” was the rejoinder. “You are muckle obliged to
-Writer George. If the bairn lives to be baptized, George is no the name
-it will bear.”
-
-“No,” replied he; “if a boy, it will be baptized Thomas.”
-
-“Tam!” ejaculated the howdie in a screechy voice, the reason of which
-might be that her son carrying that name had died during the year, and
-she was affected.
-
-But no sooner had the word Tam passed from her lips, than a large red
-cat came from the rug, and looking up in her face, mewed in so very
-expressive a way that the sadness which the recollection of her boy had
-inspired passed suddenly away, and was succeeded by a comical look;
-and rubbing Bawdrons “along of the hair,” as Mr Dickens would express
-it, the true way of treating either cats or cat-witted people, she
-continued addressing the favourite--
-
-“And you, Tam, and I will be better acquainted before the twa thousand
-merks are paid to Writer George.”
-
-“What does the woman mean?” said the burgess. “What connexion is there
-between that animal and my wife’s fortune?”
-
-“Ye’ll ken that when the time comes,” was the answer; “but coming
-nearer to the subject in hand, ye’ll take care to hae twa witnesses in
-the blue-painted parlour, next to your bed-room, when I’m untwining the
-mistress o’ her burden, whether it be a dead bairn or a living ane.”
-
-“And what good will that do me if both the mother and child should
-die?” inquired he.
-
-“Ye’ll ken that when Writer George comes and asks ye for the tocher,”
-was the answer.
-
-Nor did Mrs Euphan Lythgow wait to throw any further light upon a
-subject which appeared to the burgess to require more than the candle
-of his own mind could supply if he should snuff it again and again,
-and arn’t we, every one of us, always snuffing the candle so often
-that we can see nothing? But Mrs Lythgow was what the Scotch people
-call “a skilly woman.” She could see--to use an old and very common
-expression--as far into a millstone as any one, and it was especially
-clear to her that she would deliver Mrs Whitelaw of a dead child, that
-death would deliver the mother of her life, and Writer George would
-deliver Maister Whitelaw of two thousand good merks of Scotch money,
-unless, as a poor salvage out of all this loss, she could deliver the
-burgess out of the hands of the writer. And so the time passed till the
-eventful evening came, when the wasted invalid was seized with those
-premonitory pains which have come right down from old mother Eve to the
-fair daughters of men, as a consequence of her eating the too sweet
-paradise pippin. The indispensable Mrs Euphan Lythgow was sent for
-express and came on the instant, for she knew she had unusual duties
-to perform, nor did she forget as one of the chief of those to get
-Mrs Jean Gilchrist, a neighbouring gossip, and Robina Proudfoot, the
-servant, ensconsed in the said blue-painted parlour, for the sole end
-that they should hear what they could hear, but as for seeing anything
-that passed within the veil of the secret temple of Lucina, they were
-not to be permitted to get a glimpse until such time as might please
-the priestess of the mysteries herself.
-
-All which secrecy has been followed by the unfortunate consequence
-that history nowhere records what took place in that secret room for
-an hour or two after the two women took up their station in the said
-blue-painted chamber. But this much we know, that the house was so
-silent that our favourite Tom could not have chosen a more auspicious
-evening for mousing for prey in place of mewing for play, even if he
-had had all the sagacity of the famous cats of Tartesia. As for Mrs
-Gilchrist and Robina, they could not have listened more zealously, we
-might even say effectually, if they had been gifted with ears as long
-as those of certain animals in Trophonia; and surely we cannot be wrong
-in saying they were successful listeners, when we are able to report
-that Mrs Gilchrist nipped the bare fleshy arm of Robina, as a sign that
-she heard what she wanted to hear.
-
-“That’s the scream o’ the wean!” said she.
-
-“Ay, and may the Lord be praised!” was the answer of Robina, in spite
-of the nip.
-
-But neither the one nor the other knew that that cry was verily
-worth two thousand merks to Maister Burgess Whitelaw, the father,
-who in a back-room sat in the deep pit of anxiety and heard nothing,
-and perhaps it was better that he didn’t, for that cry might have
-raised hopes--never to be realised--of the birth of a living son
-or daughter, who would by and by lisp in his ear the charmed word
-“Father”--of a dead wife’s recovery, after so terrible a trial to one
-so much wasted--of the saving of his fortune from the ruthless hands
-of his brother-in-law. But there is always some consolation for the
-miserable, and didn’t Mrs Janet’s favourite, even Tom himself, with
-his bright scarlet collar, come to him and sit upon his knee and look
-up in his face and purr so audibly, that one might have thought he
-was expressing sympathy and hope? So it is: nature is always laughing
-at her own work. Even as this pantomime was acting, Mrs Lythgow opened
-the door of the blue-painted chamber, and presenting a bundle to Mrs
-Gilchrist--
-
-“The bairn is dead,” she whispered; “lay it on the table there out o’
-the sight o’ its mother, who will not live lang enough even to see its
-dead face.”
-
-“And yet we heard it cry,” said Robina. “Poor dear innocent,” she
-added, as she peered among the folds of the flannel, “ye have had a
-short life.”
-
-“And no’ a merry ane,” added the gossip.
-
-“Did ye expect the bairn to laugh, ye fule woman that ye are?” was the
-reply of the howdie. “Come and help me wi’ the deeing mither.”
-
-And straightway the three women were by the bedside of the patient,
-in whose throat Death was already sounding his rattle, after the last
-effort of exhausted nature to give to the world a life in exchange for
-her own; and Mr Whitelaw was there too to witness the dying throes
-of his wife, with perhaps the thought in his mind that the gods are
-pitiless as well as foolish, for what was the use of giving him a dead
-child in recompense for a dead mother, and taking away from him, at the
-very same moment, the said two thousand merks of good Scotch money.
-Wherein, so far, Mr Whitelaw was himself unjust to these much abused
-gods; but he did not know as yet that the child had cried, and who
-knows what consoling effect that circumstance might have had upon one
-who was what Pindar calls “a man of money.” At least, we will give to
-any man more than one of these merks who will show us out of the great
-“Treasury of Evils,” mentioned by the Greek poets, any one which cannot
-be ameliorated by money. And so Mr Whitelaw heard, in the last expiring
-breath of Mrs Janet Monypenny the departing sign of the loss of the
-three greatest good things of this world--a wife, a child, and a tocher.
-
-But the moral oscillation comes round as sure as that of the pendulum,
-and in accordance with that law Mr Whitelaw was, within a short time
-after the death of his wife, told by Mrs Gilchrist that the child had
-made the much-wished-for sign of life. A communication, this, very
-easily accounted for, but we do not undertake to explain why, when Mr
-Whitelaw heard it, he was scarcely equal to the task of preventing
-an expression upon his sorrowful countenance which an ill-natured
-person would call a smile. Nor, indeed, is there any way of explaining
-so inexplicable a phenomenon, except by having recourse to the fact
-mentioned by Burns, that “man is a riddle.” A solution which will also
-serve us when we further narrate that this small wail of the child
-lightened wonderfully Mr Whitelaw’s duty in getting all things arranged
-for the funeral, including the melancholy peculiarity of getting the
-coffin made that was to contain a mother and her first-born. Nay, it
-enabled him even at the funeral to meet the triumphant look of his
-brother-in-law, Writer George, as it clearly said, even in the midst of
-his tears, “You owe me two thousand merks;” for we are to remember that
-Mr Whitelaw, in exchange for the writer’s perfidy in not mentioning to
-him the necessity of a contract of marriage, had with a spice of malice
-concealed from him the fact of the child having been heard to cry, and
-then it was natural for the writer to suppose that the child had been
-born dead.
-
-As money ameliorates grief, business prevents grief from taking
-possession of the mind; and so we need not be surprised that within a
-week Mr Monypenny served Mr Whitelaw with a summons to appear before
-the fifteen Scotch lords who sat round a table in the form of a
-horse-shoe in the Parliament House of Edinburgh, or Court of Session,
-and there be ordered to pay to the pursuer or plaintiff the said two
-thousand merks, which devolved upon him, as the heir of his sister,
-in consequence of the dissolution of the marriage within a year and a
-day, without a living child being born thereof. Nor was Mr Whitelaw,
-angry as he was and withal confident of success, slow to give in his
-defence to the effect that the child had been born alive, and had been
-heard to scream--a defence which startled Writer George mightily;
-for it was the first intimation he had got of the important fact,
-and his experience told him how supple Scotch witnesses are--even to
-the extent that it took no fewer than fifteen learned judges to get
-the subtle thing called truth out of the subtle minds of “the canny
-people;” but he had no alternative than to consent to the commission to
-Maister Wylie, advocate, to take a proof of the defender’s averment and
-report. And so accordingly the proceedings went on. Mr Advocate Wylie
-sat in one of the rooms adjoining the court to take the depositions
-of the witnesses, and Mr Williamson was there for Mr Whitelaw, and
-Mr Hamilton for Mr Monypenny. The first witness called was Mrs Jean
-Gilchrist, who swore very honestly that she heard the child scream; and
-Robina Proudfoot swore as honestly to the same thing; nor could all
-the efforts of Mr Advocate Hamilton shake those sturdy witnesses, if
-it was not that, as so often happens with Scotch witnesses, the more
-the advocate wrestled with them, the more firm they waxed. Nor need
-we say that the philosophical axiom, that the intensity of belief is
-always inversely as the reason for it, never had weight with our Scotch
-judges. But then came the difficulty about the _causa scientiæ_; for
-neither of the two witnesses could swear that she _saw_ the child alive
-and after the scream, inasmuch as the child was certainly dead before
-they saw the body; so it was only at best a strong presumption that the
-cry actually did come from that child. The witnesses dispersed these
-quibbles, and insisted that, as there was no other child in that room,
-the cry could come from no other source than Mrs Whitelaw’s baby. But
-the crowning witness was to come--Mrs Euphan Lythgow herself, who would
-put an end to all doubts; and come she did. Asked whether she delivered
-Mrs Whitelaw of a child on the night in question, her answer was in the
-affirmative.
-
-“Was it a boy or a girl?”
-
-“A _callant_, sir,” was the answer; for Scotch witnesses _will_ use
-their own terms, let counsel do what they please. “And,” added Mrs
-Lythgow, “he was to be baptized after his father when the time came. He
-was to be called Tammas.”
-
-“Just so,” continued Mr Hamilton; “and was he dead or alive when he was
-born?”
-
-“Indeed, sir, little Tam wras as life-like as you are when I handled
-him wi’ thae hands.”
-
-“How do you know that?” was the next question.
-
-“Ken whether a bairn is dead or living?” responded the midwife, with an
-ironical laugh. “Do dead bairns scream, think ye, Maister Hamilton? Ay,
-sir, I heard little Tam cry just as plainly as I hear you speak. It’s
-God’s way wi’ mony a wean. They seem to ken it’s an ill warld they’re
-born into, wi’ so mony lawyers in’t, and they just gie a cry and gae
-awa back again.”
-
-And thus the evidence was concluded; nor did it ever occur to these
-hair-wigged and ear-wigged gentlemen to ask the astute howdie whether
-there was any other creature in the house (except Mr Thomas Whitelaw
-himself, who was out of the question) that bore the name of Tam;
-and Mrs Lythgow’s conscience, like many others, sat as easy on the
-equivocation as a hen does on an addled egg with a shell like the rest,
-which contain little chickens all alive. And the case was virtually
-saved, as subsequently appeared, when the fifteen, all ear-wigged too,
-pronounced sentence in favour of the defender, Mr Whitelaw. But it was
-not till some time afterwards the real truth came out. “The labourer is
-worthy of his hire,” and when Mrs Euphan called for fee, on Mr Whitelaw
-asking how much, the cunning howdie replied--
-
-“Just a hundred merks, Maister Whitelaw.”
-
-“A hundred merks for bringing a child into the world, which lived no
-longer than to give a scream?”
-
-“Ay, but you forget _pinched Tam_,” replied she.
-
-Whereupon Mr Whitelaw began to meditate, and thereupon ejaculated--“Oh!
-I see. Yes, yes; I did forget pinched Tam; and now I remember, he came
-into me that evening after you had ejected him from the bed-room.”
-
-“Surely, sir,” rejoined the woman; “think ye I was fule enough to keep
-him in the room to be seen by the women, after I had got out o’ him a’
-that I wanted?”
-
-And Mrs Lythgow got her hundred merks. How the incident came to the
-ears of Lord Kilkerran, history saith not; but if you are curious, you
-may see upon the margin of the said Session Paper the words--“Beware of
-pinched Tom!”
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Iron Press.
-
-
-The story of the Iron Press hung about my memory for years before I
-got it localised; nor do I know very well how it came to me, whether
-from the page of an old broad-sheet, or the tougher tongue of an old
-dame--the real vellum for the inscription of wonderful legends. However
-this may be, it is of small importance, inasmuch as I was subsequently
-so fortunate--and the word will be properly estimated by the real
-story-hunter--as to find myself in the very room where the recess of
-the press was still to be seen. How I did look at it, to be sure! nay,
-if it had been of gold--all my own, too--I question if I could have
-gazed into the dark recess with more interest; for gold, to people
-of my bias, is nothing in comparison with the enchantment that hangs
-about the real concrete _souvenir_ of an old wonder. But before going
-further, I must apprise the English reader that the word “press”--a
-Scotch word of somewhat doubtful derivation (_maugre_ Jamieson)--is
-convertible into the more modern designation “cupboard,” or rather
-“pantry;” with the qualification that our Scotch term more generally
-implies the adjunct of a door with lock and key.
-
-With which help you may be induced to represent to yourself, as
-vividly as the fervour of your imagination may enable you, the house
-in Hyndford’s Close, which, at the time wherein we are concerned, was
-occupied by a retired advocate called Mr George Plenderleith. You may
-see in it yet the signs of its old gentility. There are the panellings
-on the walls, the hooks whereon were suspended the flowered and figured
-draperies, the painted roofs, the peculiar enamelled sides of the
-chimneys having the appearance of china--all so very unlike our modern
-house fashions. It may not be that the iron press which was in the
-back bed-room, and the recess of which still remains, had anything to
-do with the fashion of the time; nor would it be easy to divine its
-use in a private gentleman’s house, who had no ledgers, journals, or
-cash-books to preserve from fire, lest certain creditors might say they
-were burnt to help concealment. Perhaps it was for the conservation of
-some great property rights, or title-deeds as we call them; perhaps
-state papers--anything you like, but not the least unlikely, it may
-have been for the purpose of concealing some unfortunate Covenanter,
-who could still boast, in his pathetic way, that he had verily
-nowhere to lay his head; for the cell was too small for a reclining
-posture--nay, he could scarcely have got upon his knees to offer his
-Ebenezer for the preservation of the solemn league and covenant, and
-give thanks that he had got out of “the bishop’s drag-net” and into an
-iron cage.
-
-Most certainly, at least, this iron cage was not intended to immure the
-delicate person of the beautiful Ailsie Plenderleith, the only daughter
-of the advocate--nay, the greatest belle you could have met, displaying
-her gown of mazerine and her petticoat of cramosie, from “the castle
-on the knowe to the palace in the howe;” or, as the saying went, from
-“the castle gate to the palace yett.” We don’t doubt that our Miss
-Ailsie deserved all this high-flown praise; only we are to keep in mind
-that no young lady that ever figured in a legend, from the time of
-the Fair Maid of Troy to her of Perth, was ever anything less than an
-angel without wings. And in the case of our Ailsie, she might well have
-passed for possessing these appendages too, when we consider that she
-would not be behind her sister-belles in the size of those heavy folds
-of braided silk they drew through their pocket-holes, and seemed to fly
-with. We need not say that such a creature, if amiable in her mind and
-affections, would be doated on by such a father as Mr Plenderleith, who
-had now no wife to console him, and who would expect from his child at
-least as much love as he was willing to bestow on her. And so, to be
-sure, it was; he loved his dear Ailsie to what may be called paternal
-distraction, but as for how much dutiful affection Ailsie bestowed on
-him, we cannot say.
-
-On another point we can be more sure, and that is, that although her
-father had many nice beaux in his eye who had a power to _dot_, and
-doubtless on so fine a subject no disinclination at all to _doat_, the
-never a one of them would the saucy Ailsie look upon except with that
-haughty disdain which, when it appears in a beautiful woman, is so
-apt to pique young admirers into greater adoration, mixed, it may be,
-sometimes with a little choler--a thing that is not so alien to love as
-you would imagine. Nor was the reason of all this cold _hauteur_ any
-wonder at all when we are given to know that Miss Plenderleith had one
-day, by the merest chance, taken into her eye, and even to the back
-or innermost recesses thereof, the figure of a young student of “old
-Embro’ College,” called Frederick Lind, a poor bursar of no family,
-but blessed with what was ten thousand times of more importance in
-the estimation of the tasteful Ailsie--a handsome person, and a fine
-ruddy, intelligent face, which was lighted up with an eye as likely to
-drink up the form of Ailsie as hers had been to receive his. And no
-doubt it may appear very wonderful that Cupid, who is, as they say,
-as blind as a bat, and so hits by chance, should have the power of
-imparting to the eyes of his victims the faculty not only of seeing
-each other more clearly than before, but also of reading each other’s
-eyes so plainly, that by a glance they know that they are mutually
-thinking of each other. But such, we all know very well, is the fact,
-and so Frederick Lind and Ailsie Plenderleith came to this state of
-knowledge, and not only so, they came to means of ascertaining, by
-actual conversation, whether such was really the case or not--the
-consequence of which was just the natural one, that the sympathy of
-this knowledge became the sympathy of love; and we suspect that if any
-one was to blame for this, it was Old Mother Nature herself, who is
-considerably stronger and more dogmatic in her opinions than either
-mother or father of earthly mould.
-
-The connexion thus formed--we are compelled, though sorry, to say,
-clandestinely--might not have entailed upon the young devotees any
-very formidable consequences, had they been prudent, and confined
-their meetings to St Leonard’s Double-dykes, St Anthony’s Well, the
-Giant’s Ribs, the Hunter’s Bog, or the Friar’s Walk. Nay, they might
-have adventured even less recondite walks; but they had some notions
-of comfort which would be gratified with nothing short of a roof over
-their very irrational heads, and probably a fire burning by their
-sides, as if love could not have kept itself in fuel without the
-assistance of so coarse and earthy a thing as Midlothian coal.
-
-While all this was going forward, and generating confidence in the
-ordinary ratio of successful immunity, our good and loving old Mr
-Advocate Plenderleith was just as busy with _his_ eyes in endeavouring
-to find out among the said beaux of Edinburgh, with their braided
-broad-tailed coats and ruffled wristbands, of which Mr Frederick Lind
-had nothing to boast, such a one as would be likely to form a suitable
-husband to his pretty but scornful, (to all save one,) daughter, and a
-promising son-in-law to himself; that is, one who would bring a sum to
-the mutual exchequer, and take care not only of Ailsie, but that fine
-property of his in Lanarkshire, called Threemarks, from its valuation
-in the land-roll being of that very considerable extent. And so he
-did his best to invite one or two of them to his house in Hyndford’s
-Close to drink a bottle of claret, and see Miss Ailsie through the
-charmed medium of the same, being satisfied that a young woman is
-seen to more advantage through that medium than through the roses of
-the Paphian groves where Venus dallies with her son. But all this
-paternal black-footing would not do, because the step went only in
-one direction, without a return. Our Ailsie scorned them all--a very
-unwise policy in the little rebel, for she might have seen that her
-father, who was a shrewd man, would be likely to suspect that the ship
-which rides at an anchor, however little seen, is just that very one
-which seems to defy most the blustering winds and the rolling waves.
-And accordingly Mr Plenderleith began to think that his daughter’s
-heart must be anchored somewhere--not so likely on golden sands as
-on some tough clay--and _that_ “where” he would have given his old
-Parliament-House wig, with all the meal in it to boot, to find out.
-Nay, he began to be angry before he could assure himself of the fact;
-and being as determined under a restrainer as he ever had been under a
-retainer, he was a dangerous man for even a loving daughter to tamper
-with.
-
-But old fathers, probably with spectacles, are not good watchers of
-their love-stricken daughters; and Mr Plenderleith, knowing this,
-placed confidence in his old servant or servitor, (as these domestic
-Balderstones were then called,) Andrew Crabbin, and got him to keep an
-eye upon the outgoings and incomings, and companionship and letters of
-the unsuspecting Ailsie. On the other hand, she was inclined to place
-faith in Andrew--not that she let him know the name or degree of her
-beloved Frederick, but that she bespoke his secrecy in the event of his
-seeing her with a highly respectable young man, of genteel connexions,
-whom her father would be delighted to receive as a son-in-law, but who
-was not just yet in a position to present himself in the drawing-room.
-Which two confidences Andrew received together, and found means in
-his canny Scotch head to entertain both kindly, but with a foregone
-conclusion that he would make more money out of the rents and fees of
-his master than the pin-money of poor Ailsie.
-
-Yet Miss Plenderleith was so dexterous in managing her intrigue, that
-Andrew had for a time nothing to reveal; but opportunity comes at
-the end to patience, and this was the case one night when Andrew was
-busy cleaning his master’s long boots in an outhouse at the back of
-the dwelling-house; for as he was straining to get the article in his
-hand as bright as the “Day and Martin” of the time would make it, his
-attention was directed to a sound from the red-tiled roof. Whereupon,
-pricking up his ears, Andrew put his head out at the door, and what in
-all this wide earth does he see but two boots disappearing at Ailsie’s
-bed-room window! He had never seen any of the two or three pairs his
-master possessed going into the house in that way, and probably he did
-not need that fact to explain to him the wonderful apparition. Nor was
-it any question with him what to do. The hour was late, but his master
-was not gone to bed, if he was not yet engaged over his mulled claret,
-with a bit of toast done pretty brown in it.
-
-Having accordingly got, unobserved from above, into the back-door--the
-more by reason that he waited till the window-sash came down with all
-prudential softness of sound--Andrew made his way up-stairs to the room
-where Mr Plenderleith was regaling himself, and probably thinking of
-the scornful Ailsie, who would not accord to his matrimonial wishes.
-“There’s a young man gone in this minute at Miss Ailsie’s bed-room
-window,” said he, in a mysterious way, to his master; whereupon Mr
-Plenderleith started up in a great rage, and rushing to a closet
-brought forth a long rapier of formidable sharpness. “I will slay him
-on the spot,” said he, “for it is hamesucken and a deuced deal more,
-and I have law on my side. Come with me, Andrew Crabbin.” But Andrew’s
-intermediate views did not accord with the slaughter of Ailsie’s lover.
-“Wait,” says he, “till I listen;” and hastening to Miss Plenderleith’s
-room, he tirled at the door, so that it might be heard inside, but not
-by his enraged master, whose spirit was more in his fiery eye than
-his ear; and coming back more slowly than comported with his master’s
-fury--“Now’s your time,” said he, “for I heard him inside.” Nor was
-there now any time lost, for the infuriated father rushed along the
-lobby to his daughter’s chamber door, which, to his surprise, he found
-unfastened; and, having entered, he found Ailsie all very much at her
-ease, nor was there anything to rouse his suspicions at all except the
-condition of the blind, which was drawn up. No more was needed--that
-was enough; the angry father accused his daughter with having had a
-man in her bed-room. Ailsie denied the charge, but it was of no avail.
-Orders were upon the instant issued to get the carriage ready, and in
-the course of an hour afterwards Mr Plenderleith and his daughter, with
-Andrew and the two female servants in a hired carriage, were on their
-way to his house at Threemarks. The house in Hyndford’s Close was shut
-up. Mr Plenderleith had in so short a period made up his mind, and
-executed a purpose which he considered necessary to his own honour and
-his daughter’s preservation.
-
-Time passed on, and in the meantime Andrew kept his secret, delighted
-in his own mind that he had saved the life of the young man. About a
-month afterwards Mr Plenderleith came to town alone, and having entered
-the house found everything precisely as he left it. But he had an
-object--no other than to discover whether Ailsie had left any letters
-whereby he might discover the name of the clandestine lover. So far he
-succeeded, and having returned to Threemarks, he some time afterwards
-despatched Andrew to Edinburgh to make inquiries as to a student of the
-name of Frederick Lind. This commission Andrew executed with fidelity,
-but all his efforts were vain; no tidings could be heard of the youth.
-The landlady with whom he had lodged said that he had gone out one
-night and had never returned; and the opinion of his relations, to whom
-she had communicated the fact of his absence, was, that he had gone to
-England, where he also had relations. With this account Mr Plenderleith
-was so far pleased, but he continued from time to time to repeat his
-inquiries with no better, or rather to him worse, success. Yet such was
-his apprehension lest his daughter should again have it in her power to
-deceive him, that he remained at Threemarks for the full space of three
-years and more.
-
-Meanwhile Ailsie, having come to the conclusion that she would not see
-her lover again, renounced all thoughts of him except what perhaps at
-night would rise up to her fancy, when the internal lights play false
-with the reason. The young heart requires only time to renounce the
-strongest passion, though a cherished memory will still hang suspended
-over the sacred tomb of its affections. And so it was. More time
-passed, till at length Ailsie Plenderleith agreed to give her hand to
-a young advocate of the name of George Graham, who had good prospects
-at the bar. The couple were to be married in Hyndford’s Close, and
-the house was put in order to receive them. Ailsie came in a bride.
-The ceremony was performed with great _éclat_ and rejoicings. And now
-comes that part of the legend which always fits so well to some great
-occasion, such as a marriage; but we must take these things as we find
-them. The new-married couple were to sleep in the room which had been
-the scene of so strange a play three or four years ago. On returning to
-take off her bride’s dress, her eye became fixed upon the door of the
-iron press. A wild thought seized her brain: she applied her finger to
-the well-known spring. The door opened, and the skeleton of Frederick
-Lind fell out against her, rattling in the clothes that hung about it,
-and striking her as it fell with a loud crash on the floor.
-
-The explanation of our legend is not difficult. Lind had been pushed
-into the press on previous occasions, without the door being closed
-entirely upon him. Ailsie, on the fatal evening, had no doubt thought
-that she had left the door as she used to do; but in the hurry
-consequent on the coming of her father, she had committed the terrible
-mistake of imparting to it too much impulse, whereby the lock had
-caught; and as the spring was not available inside, the prisoner was
-immured beyond the chance of escape. So narrow, too, was the recess,
-that the skeleton form had stood upright in the clothes, and it thus
-fell out when relieved of the support of the door.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Girl Forger.
-
-
-It is a common thing for writers of a certain class, when they want
-to produce the feeling of wonder in their readers, to introduce some
-frantic action, and then to account for it by letting out the secret
-that the actor was mad. The trick is not so necessary as it seems,
-for the strength of human passions is a potentiality only limited
-by experience; and so it is that a sane person may under certain
-stimulants do the maddest thing in the world. The passion itself is
-always true, it is only the motive that may be false; and therefore it
-is that in narrating for your amusement, perhaps I may add instruction,
-the following singular story--traces of the main parts of which I got
-in the old books of a former procurator-fiscal--I assume that there
-was no more insanity in the principal actor, Euphemia, or, as she was
-called, Effie, Carr, when she brought herself within the arms of the
-law, than there is in you, when now you are reading the story of her
-strange life. She was the only daughter of John Carr, a grain merchant,
-who lived in Bristo Street. It would be easy to ascribe to her all
-the ordinary and extraordinary charms that are thought so necessary
-to embellish heroines; but as we are not told what these were in her
-case, we must be contented with the assurance that nature had been
-kind enough to her to give her power over the hearts of men. We shall
-be nearer our purpose when we state, what is necessary to explain a
-peculiar part of our story, that her father, in consequence of his own
-insufficient education, had got her trained to help him in keeping
-his accounts with the farmers, and in writing up his books; nay, she
-enjoyed the privilege of writing his drafts upon the Bank of Scotland,
-which the father contrived to sign, though in his own illiterate way,
-and with a peculiarity which it would not have been easy to imitate.
-
-But our gentle clerk did not consider these duties imposed upon her by
-her father as excluding her either from gratifying her love of domestic
-habits by assisting her mother in what at that time was denominated
-hussyskep or housekeeping, or from a certain other gratification,
-which might without a hint from us be anticipated--no other than the
-luxury of falling head and ears, and heart too we fancy, in love with
-a certain dashing young student of the name of Robert Stormonth, then
-attending the University more for the sake of polish than of mere
-study; for he was the son of the proprietor of Kelton, and required to
-follow no profession. How Effie got entangled with this youth we have
-no means of knowing, so we must be contented with the Scotch proverb--
-
- “Tell me where the flea may bite,
- And I will tell where love may light.”
-
-The probability is that, from the difference of their stations and
-the retiring nature of our gentle clerk, we shall be safe in assuming
-that he had, as the saying goes, been smitten by her charms in some of
-those street encounters, where there is more of Love’s work done than
-in “black-footed” tea coteries expressly held for the accommodation of
-Cupid. And that the smitting was a genuine feeling we are not left to
-doubt, for, in addition to the reasons we shall afterwards have too
-good occasion to know, he treated Effie, not as those wild students
-who are great men’s sons do “the light o’ loves” they meet in their
-escapades; for he intrusted his secrets to her, he took such small
-counsel from her poor head as a “learned clerk” might be supposed able
-to give; nay, he told her of his mother, and how one day he hoped to be
-able to introduce her at Kelton as his wife. All which Effie repaid
-with the devotedness of that most wonderful affection called the first
-or virgin love--the purest, the deepest, the most thoroughgoing of
-all the emotions of the human heart. But as yet he had not conceded
-to her wish that he should consent to their love being made known to
-Effie’s father and mother: love is only a leveller to itself and its
-object; the high-born youth, inured to refined manners, shrunk from
-a family intercourse, which put him too much in mind of the revolt
-he had made against the presumed wishes and intentions of his proud
-parents. Wherein, after all, he was only true to the instincts of that
-institution, apparently so inhumane as well as unchristian in its
-exclusiveness, called aristocracy; and yet with the excuse that its
-roots are pretty deeply set in human nature.
-
-But, proud as he was, Bob Stormonth the younger, of Kelton, was
-amenable to the obligations of a necessity, forged by his own imprudent
-hands. He had, by a fast mode of living, got into debt--a condition
-from which his father, a stern man, had relieved him twice before,
-but with a threat on the last occasion that if he persevered in his
-prodigality he would withdraw from him his yearly allowance, and throw
-him upon his own resources. The threat proved ineffectual, and this
-young heir of entail, with all his pride, was once in the grasp of
-low-born creditors: nay, things in this evil direction had gone so
-far that writs were out against him, and one in the form of a caption
-was already in the hands of a messenger-at-arms. That the debts were
-comparatively small in amount was no amelioration where the purse was
-all but empty; and he had exhausted the limited exchequers of his
-chums, which with college youths was, and is, not difficult to do. So
-the gay Bob was driven to his last shift, and that, as is generally the
-case, was a mean one; for necessity, as the mother of inventions, does
-not think it proper to limit her births to genteel or noble devices
-to please her proud consort. He even had recourse to poor Effie to
-help him; and, however ridiculous this may seem, there were reasons
-that made the application appear not so desperate as some of his other
-schemes. It was only the caption that as yet quickened his fears; and
-as the sum for which the writ was issued was only twenty pounds, it was
-not, after all, so much beyond the power of a clerk.
-
-It was during one of their ordinary walks in the Meadows that the
-pressing necessity was opened by Stormonth to the vexed and terrified
-girl. He told her that, but for the small help he required in the
-meantime, all would be ruined. The wrath of his father would be excited
-once more, and probably to the exclusion of all reconciliation; and
-he himself compelled to flee, but whither he knew not. He had his plan
-prepared, and proposed to Effie, who had no means of her own, _to take
-a loan_ of the sum out of her father’s cash-box--words very properly
-chosen according to the euphemistic policy of the devil, but Effie’s
-genuine spirit was roused and alarmed.
-
-“Dreadful!” she whispered, as if afraid that the night-wind would carry
-her words to honest ears. “Besides,” she continued, “my father, who is
-a hard man, keeps his desk lockit.”
-
-Words which took Stormonth aback, for even he saw there was here a
-necessity as strong as his own; yet the power of invention went to work
-again.
-
-“Listen, Effie,” said he. “If you cannot help me, it is not likely we
-shall meet again. I am desperate, and will go into the army.”
-
-The ear of Effie was chained to a force which was direct upon the
-heart. She trembled and looked wistfully into his face, even as if by
-that look she could extract from him some other device less fearful by
-which she might have the power of retaining him for so short a period
-as a day.
-
-“You draw out your father’s drafts on the bank, Effie,” he continued.
-“Write one out for me, and I will put your father’s name to it. You
-can draw the money. I will be saved from ruin; and your father will
-never know.”
-
-A proposal which again brought a shudder over the girl.
-
-“Is it Robert Stormonth who asks me to do this thing?” she whispered
-again.
-
-“No,” said he; “for I am not myself. Yesterday, and before the
-messenger was after me, I would have shrunk from the suggestion. I am
-not myself, I say, Effie. Ay or no; keep me or lose me,--that is the
-alternative.”
-
-“Oh, I cannot,” was the language of her innocence, and for which he was
-prepared; for the stimulant was again applied in the most powerful of
-all forms--the word farewell was sounded in her ear.
-
-“Stop, Robert; let me think.” But there was no thought, only the heart
-beating wildly. “I will do it; and may the penalty be mine, and mine
-only.”
-
-So it was: “even virtue’s self turns vice when misapplied.” What her
-mind shrank from was embraced by the heart as a kind of sacred duty of
-a love making a sacrifice for the object of its first worship. It was
-arranged; and as the firmness of a purpose is often in proportion to
-the prior disinclination, so Effie’s determination to save her lover
-from ruin was forthwith put in execution; nay, there was even a touch
-of the heroine in her, so wonderfully does the heart, acting under its
-primary instincts, sanctify the device which favours its affection.
-That same evening Effie Carr wrote out the draft for twenty pounds on
-the Bank of Scotland, gave it to Stormonth, who from a signature of
-the father’s, also furnished by her, perpetrated the forgery--a crime
-at that time punishable by death. The draft so signed was returned to
-Effie. Next forenoon she went to the bank, as she had often done for
-her father before; and the document being in her handwriting, as prior
-ones of the same kind had also been, no scrutinising eye was turned
-to the signature. The money was handed over, but _not counted_ by the
-recipient, as before had been her careful habit--a circumstance with
-its effect to follow in due time. Meanwhile Stormonth was at a place of
-appointment out of the reach of the executor of the law, and was soon
-found out by Effie, who gave him the money with trembling hands. For
-this surely a kiss was due. We do not know; but she returned with the
-satisfaction, overcoming all the impulses of fear and remorse, that she
-had saved the object of her first and only love from ruin and flight.
-
-But even then the reaction was on the spring; the rebound was to be
-fearful and fatal. The teller at the bank had been struck with Effie’s
-manner; and the non-counting of the notes had roused a suspicion,
-which fought its way even against the improbability of a mere girl
-perpetrating a crime from which females are generally free. He examined
-the draft, and soon saw that the signature was a bad imitation.
-Thereupon a messenger was despatched to Bristo Street for inquiry. John
-Carr, taken by surprise, declared that the draft, though written by
-the daughter, was forged--the forgery being in his own mind attributed
-to George Lindsay, his young salesman. Enough this for the bank, who
-had in the first place only to do with the utterer, against whom their
-evidence as yet only lay. Within a few hours afterwards Effie Carr was
-in the Tolbooth, charged with the crime of forging a cheque on her
-father’s account-current.
-
-The news soon spread over Edinburgh--at that time only an overgrown
-village, in so far as regarded local facilities for the spread of
-wonders. It had begun there, where the mother was in recurring faints,
-the father in distraction and not less mystery, George Lindsay in
-terror and pity. And here comes in the next strange turn of our story.
-Lindsay all of a sudden declared he was the person who imitated the
-name--a device of the yearning heart to save the girl of his affection
-from the gallows, and clutched at by the mother and father as a means
-of their daughter’s redemption. One of those thinly-sown beings who
-are cold-blooded by nature, who take on love slowly but surely, and
-seem fitted to be martyrs, Lindsay defied all consequences, so that it
-might be that Effie Carr should escape an ignominious death. Nor did he
-take time for further deliberation; in less than half an hour he was in
-the procurator-fiscal’s office; the willing self-criminator; the man
-who did the deed; the man who was ready to die for his young mistress
-and his love. His story, too, was as ready as it was truth-seeming.
-He declared that he had got Effie to write out the draft as if
-commissioned by John Carr; that he took it away, and with his own hands
-added the name; that he had returned the cheque to Effie to go with it
-to the bank, and had received the money from her on her return. The
-consequence was his wish, and it was inevitable. That same day George
-Lindsay was lodged also in the Tolbooth, satisfied that he had made
-a sacrifice of his life for one whom he had loved for years, and who
-yet had never shown him even a symptom of hope that his love would be
-returned.
-
-All which proceedings soon came on the wings of rumour to the ears of
-Robert Stormonth, who was not formed to be a martyr even for a love
-which was to him as true as his nature would permit. He saw his danger,
-because he did not see the character of a faithful girl who would die
-rather than compromise her lover. He fled--aided probably by that very
-money he had wrung out of the hands of the devoted girl; nor was his
-disappearance connected with the tragic transaction; for, as we have
-said, the connexion between him and Effie had been kept a secret, and
-his flight could be sufficiently accounted for by his debt.
-
-Meanwhile the precognitions or examination of the parties went on,
-and with a result as strange as it was puzzling to the officials.
-Effie was firm to her declaration that she not only wrote the body
-of the cheque, but attached to it the name of her father, and had
-appropriated the money in a way which she declined to state. On the
-other hand, Lindsay was equally stanch to his statement made to the
-procurator-fiscal, that he had got Effie to write the draft, had forged
-the name to it, and got the money from her. The authorities very soon
-saw that they had got more than the law bargained for or wanted; nor
-was the difficulty likely soon to be solved. The two parties could not
-both be guilty, according to the evidence, nor could one of them be
-guilty to the exclusion of the other; neither, when the balance was
-cast, was there much difference in the weight of the scales, because
-while it was in one view more likely that Lindsay signed the false
-name, it was beyond doubt that Effie wrote the body of the document,
-and she had moreover presented it. But was it for the honour of the
-law that people should be hanged on a likelihood? It was a new case
-without new heads to decide it, and it made no difference that the
-body of the people, who soon became inflamed on the subject, took the
-part of the girl and declared against the man. It was easy to be seen
-that the tracing of the money would go far to solve the mystery; and
-accordingly there was a strict search made in Lindsay’s lodgings, as
-well as in Effie’s private repositories at home. We need not say with
-what effect, where the money was over the Border and away. It was thus
-in all views more a case for Astræa than common heads; but then she had
-gone to heaven. The Lord Advocate soon saw that the law was likely to
-be caught in its own meshes. The first glimpse was got of the danger
-of hanging so versatile, so inconsistent, so unsearchable a creature
-as a human being on a mere confession of guilt. That that had been the
-law of Scotland in all time, nay, that it had been the law of the world
-from the beginning, there was no doubt. Who could know the murderer
-or the forger better than the murderer or the forger themselves? and
-would any one throw away his life on a false plea? The reasoning does
-not exhaust the deep subject; there remains the presumption that the
-criminal will, in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred, deny, and deny
-boldly. But our case threw a new light on the old law, and the Lord
-Advocate was slow to indict where he saw not only reasons for failure,
-but also rising difficulties which might strike at the respect upon
-which the law was founded.
-
-The affair hung loose for a time; and Lindsay’s friends, anxious to
-save him, got him induced to run his letters,--the effect of which is
-to give the prosecutor a period wherein to try the culprit, on failure
-of which the person charged is free. The same was done by Effie’s
-father; but quickened as the Lord Advocate was, the difficulty still
-met him like a ghost that would not be laid,--that if he put Effie
-at the bar, Lindsay would appear in the witness-box; and if he put
-Lindsay on his trial, Effie would swear he was innocent; and as for
-two people forging _the same name_, the thing had never been heard of.
-And so it came to pass that the authorities at last, feeling they were
-in a cleft stick, where if they relieved one hand the other would be
-caught, were inclined to liberate both panels. But the bank was at that
-time preyed upon by forgeries, and were determined to make an example
-now when they had a culprit, or perhaps two. The consequence was,
-that the authorities were forced to give way, vindicating their right
-of choice as to the party they should arraign. That party was Effie
-Carr; and the choice justified itself by two considerations: that she,
-by writing and uttering the cheque, was so far committed by evidence
-exterior to her self-inculpation; and secondly, that Lindsay might
-break down in the witness-box under a searching examination. Effie was
-therefore indicted and placed at the bar. She pleaded guilty, but the
-prosecutor notwithstanding led evidence; and at length Lindsay appeared
-as a witness for the defence. The people who crowded the court had been
-aware from report of the condition in which Lindsay stood; but the deep
-silence which reigned throughout the hall when he was called to answer
-evinced the doubt whether he would stand true to his self-impeachment.
-The doubt was soon solved. With a face on which no trace of fear could
-be perceived, with a voice in which there was no quaver, he swore
-that it was he who signed the draft and sent Effie for the money. The
-oscillation of sympathy, which had for a time been suspended, came
-round again to the thin pale girl, who sat there looking wistfully and
-wonderingly into the face of the witness; and the murmuring approbation
-that broke out, in spite of the shrill “Silence” of the crier,
-expressed at once admiration of the man--criminal as he swore himself
-to be--and pity for the accused. What could the issue be? Effie was
-acquitted, and Lindsay sent back to gaol. Was he not to be tried? The
-officials felt that the game was dangerous. If Lindsay had stood firm
-in the box, had not Effie sat firm at the bar, with the very gallows
-in her eye; and would not she, in her turn, be as firm in the box? All
-which was too evident; and the consequence in the end came to be, that
-Lindsay was in the course of a few days set at liberty.
-
-And now there occurred proceedings not less strange in the house of
-John Carr. Lindsay was turned off, because, though he had made a
-sacrifice of himself to save the life of Effie, the sacrifice was only
-that due to the justice he had offended. The dismissal was against the
-protestations of Effie, who alone knew he was innocent; and she had to
-bear the further grief of learning that Stormonth had left the city on
-the very day whereon she was apprehended--a discovery this too much
-for a frame always weak, and latterly so wasted by her confinement in
-prison, and the anguish of mind consequent upon her strange position.
-And so it came to pass, in a few more days, that she took to her bed,
-a wan, wasted, heart-broken creature; but stung as she had been by the
-conduct of the man she had offered to die to save, she felt even more
-the sting of ingratitude in herself for not divulging to her mother as
-much of her secret as would have saved Lindsay from dismissal; for she
-was now more and more satisfied that it was the strength of his love
-for her that had driven him to his great and perilous sacrifice. Nor
-could her mother, as she bent over her daughter, understand why her
-liberation should have been followed by so much of sorrow; nay, loving
-her as she did, she even reproached her as being ungrateful to God.
-
-“Mother,” said the girl, “I have a secret that lies like a stane upon
-my heart. George Lindsay had nae mair to do with that forgery than you.”
-
-“And who had to do with it then, Effie, dear?”
-
-“Myself,” continued the daughter; “I filled up the cheque at the
-bidding o’ Robert Stormonth, whom I had lang loved. It was he wha put
-my faither’s name to it. It was to him I gave the money, to relieve him
-from debt, and he has fled.”
-
-“Effie, Effie!” cried the mother; “and we have done this thing to
-George Lindsay--ta’en from him his basket and his store, yea, the bread
-o’ his mouth, in recompense for trying to save your life by offering
-his ain.”
-
-“Yes, mother,” added Effie; “but we must make that wrang richt.”
-
-“And mair, lass,” rejoined the mother, as she rose abruptly and
-nervously, and hurried to her husband, to whom she told the strange
-intelligence. Then John Carr was a just man as well as a loving parent;
-and while he forgave his unfortunate daughter, he went and brought
-back George Lindsay to his old place that very night; nor did he or
-Mrs Carr know the joy they had poured into the heart of the young
-man, for the reason that they did not know the love he bore to their
-daughter. But if this was a satisfaction to Effie, in so far as it
-relieved her heart of a burden, it brought to her a burden of another
-kind. The mother soon saw how matters stood with the heart of Lindsay,
-and she moreover saw that her or her daughter’s gratitude could not be
-complete so long as he was denied the boon of being allowed to marry
-the girl he had saved from the gallows; and she waited her opportunity
-of breaking the delicate subject to Effie. It was not time yet, when
-Effie was an invalid; and even so far wasted and worn as to cause
-apprehensions of her ultimate fate, even death; nor perhaps would that
-time ever come when she could bear to hear the appeal without pain; for
-though Stormonth had ruined her character and her peace of mind--nay,
-had left her in circumstances almost unprecedented for treachery,
-baseness, and cruelty--he retained still the niche where the offerings
-of a first love had been made: his image had been indeed burned into
-the virgin heart, and no other form of man’s face, though representing
-the possessor of beauty, wealth, and worldly honours, would ever take
-away that treasured symbol. It haunted her even as a shadow of herself,
-which, disappearing at sundown, comes again at the rise of the moon;
-nay, she would have been contented to make other sacrifices equally
-great as that which she had made; nor wild moors, nor streams, nor
-rugged hills, would have stopped her in an effort to look upon him once
-more, and replace that inevitable image by the real vision, which had
-first taken captive her young heart.
-
-But time passed, bringing the usual ameliorations to the miserable.
-Effie got so far better in health that she became able to resume, in
-a languid way, her former duties, with the exception of those of “the
-gentle clerk”--for of these she had had enough; even the very look of
-a bank-draft brought a shudder over her; nor would she have entered
-the Bank of Scotland again, even with a good cheque for a thousand
-pounds to have been all her own. Meanwhile the patient George had plied
-a suit which he could only express by his eyes, or the attentions of
-one who worships; but he never alluded, even in their conversations,
-to the old sacrifice. The mother too, and not less the father, saw the
-advantages that might result as well to the health of her mind as that
-of her body. They had waited--a vain waiting--for the wearing out of
-the traces of the obdurate image: and when they thought they might take
-placidity as the sign of what they waited for, they first hinted, and
-then expressed in plain terms, the wishes of their hearts. For a time
-all their efforts were fruitless; but John Carr, getting old and weak,
-wished to be succeeded in his business by George; and the wife, when
-she became a widow, would require to be maintained,--reasons which had
-more weight with Effie than any others, excepting always the act of
-George’s self-immolation at the shrine in which his fancy had placed
-her. The importunities at length wore out her resistings, without
-effacing the lines of the old and still endeared image; and she gave
-a cold, we may say reluctant, consent. The bride’s “ay” was a sigh,
-the rapture a tear of sadness. But George was pleased even with this:
-Effie, the long-cherished Effie, was at length his.
-
-In her new situation Effie Carr--now Mrs Lindsay--performed all the
-duties of a good and faithful wife; by an effort of the will no doubt,
-though in another sense only a sad obedience to necessity, of which
-we are all, as the creatures of motives, the very slaves. But the old
-image resisted the appeals of her reason, as well as the blandishments
-of a husband’s love. She was only true, faithful, and kind, till
-the birth of a child lent its reconciling power to the efforts of
-duty. Some time afterwards John Carr died--an event which carried in
-its train the subsequent death of his wife. There was left to the
-son-in-law a dwindling business, and a very small sum of money; for the
-father had met with misfortunes in his declining years, which impaired
-health prevented him from resisting. Time wore on, and showed that
-the power of the martyr-spirit is not always that of the champion of
-worldly success; for it was now but a struggle between George Lindsay,
-with a stained name, and the stern demon of misfortune. He was at
-length overtaken by poverty, which, as affecting Effie, preyed so
-relentlessly upon his spirits, that within two years he followed John
-Carr to the grave. Effie was now left with two children to the work
-of her fingers, a poor weapon wherewith to beat off the wolf of want;
-and even this was curtailed by the effects of the old crime, which the
-public still kept in green remembrance.
-
-Throughout, our story has been the sensationalism of angry Fate,
-and even less likely to be believed than the work of fiction. Nor
-was the vulture face of the Nemesis yet smoothed down. The grief of
-her bereavement had only partially diverted Effie’s mind from the
-recollections of him who had ruined her, and yet could not be hated by
-her, nay, could not be but loved by her. The sensitised nerve, which
-had received the old image, gave it out fresh again to the reviving
-power of memory, and this was only a continuation of what had been a
-corroding custom of years and years. But as the saying goes, it is a
-long road that does not offer by its side the spreading bough of shade
-to the way-worn traveller. One day, when Effie was engaged with her
-work, of which she was as weary as of the dreaming which accompanied
-it, there appeared before her, without premonition or foreshadowing
-sign, Robert Stormonth, of Kelton, dressed as a country gentleman,
-booted, and with a whip in his hand.
-
-“Are you Effie Carr?”
-
-The question was useless to one who was already lying back in her chair
-in a state of unconsciousness, from which she recovered only to open
-her eyes and avert them, and shut them and open them again, like the
-victim of epilepsy.
-
-“And do you fear me?” said the excited man, as he took her in his
-strong arms and stared wildly into her face; “I have more reason to
-fear you, whom I ruined,” he continued. “Ay, brought within the verge
-of the gallows. I know it all, Effie. Open your eyes, dear soul, and
-smile once more upon me. Nay, I have known it for years, during which
-remorse has scourged me through the world. Look up, dear Effie, while
-I tell you I could bear the agony no longer; and now opportunity
-favours the wretched penitent, for my father is dead, and I am not only
-my own master, but master of Kelton, of which you once heard me speak.
-Will you not look up yet, dear Effie? I come to make amends to you,
-not by wealth merely, but to offer you again that love I once bore to
-you, and still bear. Another such look, dear; it is oil to my parched
-spirit. You are to consent to be my wife--the very smallest boon I dare
-offer.”
-
-During which strange rambling speech Effie was partly insensible; yet
-she heard enough to afford her clouded mind a glimpse of her condition,
-and of the meaning of what was said to her. For a time she kept staring
-into his face as if she had doubts of his real personality; nor could
-she find words to express even those more collected thoughts that began
-to gather into form.
-
-“Robert Stormonth,” at length she said, calmly, “and have you suffered
-too? Oh, this is more wonderful to me than a’ the rest o’ these
-wonderful things.”
-
-“As no man ever suffered, dear Effie,” he answered. “I was on the eve
-of coming to you, when a friend I retained here wrote me to London of
-your marriage with the man who saved you from the fate into which I
-precipitated you. How I envied that man who offered to die for you! He
-seemed to take from me my only means of reparation; nay, my only chance
-of happiness. But he is dead. Heaven give peace to so noble a spirit!
-And now you are mine. It is mercy I come to seek in the first instance;
-the love--if that, after all that is past, is indeed possible--I will
-take my chance of that.”
-
-“Robert,” cried the now weeping woman, “if that love had been aince
-less, what misery I would have been spared! Ay, and my father, and
-mother, and poor George Lindsay; a’ helped awa to the grave by my
-crime, for it stuck to us to the end.” And she buried her head in his
-bosom, sobbing piteously.
-
-“_My_ crime, dear Effie, not yours,” said he. “It was you who saved
-my life; and if Heaven has a kindlier part than another for those who
-err by the fault of others, it will be reserved for one who made a
-sacrifice to love. But we have, I hope, something to enjoy before you
-go there, and as yet I have not got your forgiveness.”
-
-“It is yours--it is yours, Robert,” was the sobbing answer. “Ay, and
-with it a’ the love I ever had for you.”
-
-“Enough for this time, dear Effie,” said he. “My horse waits for me.
-Expect me to-morrow at this hour with a better-arranged purpose.”
-And folding her in his arms, and kissing her fervently, even as
-his remorse were thereby assuaged as well as his love gratified,
-he departed, leaving Effie to thoughts we should be sorry to think
-ourselves capable of putting into words. Nor need we say more than that
-Stormonth kept his word. Effie Carr was in a few days Mrs Stormonth,
-and in not many more the presiding female power in the fine residence
-of Kelton.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Mary Mochrie and the Miracle of the Cod.
-
-
-It was said that David Hume’s barber, who had the honour of shaving
-the philosopher every morning, was so scandalised by David’s Essay
-on Miracles, that he told him to his face--which he was smoothing at
-the time--that Mary Mochrie’s miracle shut his mouth. And no doubt
-this was so far true, for the shaver took care while he was telling
-the story to hold David’s lips close with his left hand, while he
-was plying his razor with the other. David, we are informed, used to
-tell this anecdote himself along with the story of the modern miracle
-appended to it; and as the latter is a good example of the easy way by
-which the blind sentiment of wonder groping for light comes to refer
-strange things to Divine interposition, and consequently the facility
-of belief in those darker times, we may include among our stories for
-the amusement of our readers that of the miracle, which, goes in this
-wise:--
-
-On a fine day in the month of June a certain Miss Isabella Warrender,
-the daughter of a respectable burgess, bethought herself of the luxury
-of a plunge in the Forth, on the sands to the west of Newhaven, and
-with a view to safety, as well as companionship, she behoved to
-take with her her father’s trusty servant, Mary Mochrie. The blue
-bathing-gowns were accordingly put into the basket, and away they went
-on their journey of two miles with heads “as light as lavrocks,” and
-thinking of no other miracle in the world than that of enjoyment--a
-veritable miracle to many, insomuch as it is to them in this world of
-doubtful happiness and real misery miraculously scarce. Nor was it
-long, with their light feet, ere they reached their destination; all
-things, too, being otherwise propitious, for the sun was shining in a
-clear sky, the surface of the sea was as smooth as glass, and like a
-mirror reflected the rays of the sun; so that, to speak figuratively,
-Apollo and Neptune were on the best of terms, as if they had resolved
-to favour specially on that day so fair a specimen of an earthly maid,
-who, for a time, was to become a water nymph. So, after looking out
-from beneath her curls for Peeping Toms,--of whom, by the way, to
-the honour of Scotland, our Godivas in these parts have little to
-complain,--Isabella got herself made as like Musidora as possible, in
-which condition she remained only for that single moment occupied by
-Mary in investing her with the said blue gown. Whereupon, Mary having
-also divested herself of her clothes, was as quickly reclaimed from the
-searching eyes of the upper of the two propitious gods by her young
-mistress helping her on with her sea dress.
-
-All which sacrifices to _Bona Dea_ are pretty uniform, if we may not
-say that, although young women have as good a right to outrage modesty
-by splashing about perfectly nude in the sea as the men have, they
-know better than do any such naughty thing. Nor, perhaps, was it any
-exception, that as they went into the sea they took each other by the
-hand, just as Adam and Eve did when they walked hand in hand into a
-flood of sin, as enticing to them, too, as the shining water was to our
-virgins--a comparison more true than you may be at present thinking.
-Then having got up to the middle--that is, in a sense, half seas over,
-they got into that sportive mood which belongs to bathers, as if an
-infection from the playful element; and, of course, they could not
-avoid the usual ducking, which is performed by the two taking hold of
-both hands, and alternately or simultaneously dipping themselves over
-head, and as they emerge shaking their locks as the ducks do their
-wings when they come out of the water. All which was very pleasant,
-as might have been apparent from the laughing and screighing which
-terrified the Tom Norries there and then flying over their heads; but
-it so happened that in one of these see-saws Isabella’s foot slipped,
-and the consequence was that her hands slipped also out of those of
-Mary, so that she fell back into the water, more afraid, of course,
-than hurt; nor was this all, for no sooner had Isabella got on her feet
-again than holding out her left hand she cried in rather a wild way
-that she had lost her ruby ring--nay, that very ring which a certain
-George Ballennie had given her as a pledge of his love, and the loss
-of which was so like an augury of evil. And then as it was Mary’s hand
-which pulled it off, or rather Isabella’s that left it in Mary’s, it
-was natural she should ask at the same time whether Mary had it or had
-felt it, but Mary asserted that she had it not, neither had she felt it
-when coming off. So if Mary was honest it behoved to be in the sea, and
-in all likelihood would never be found again.
-
-And thus the pleasant act of bathing was interrupted in the very
-middle, for how could there be any more splashing and tumbling and
-mermaiding with this terrible loss weighing upon Isabella’s heart? She
-would not know how to face her mother; and as for Ballennie, might
-he not think that she who would not take better care of a love-token
-had no great love on her part to be betokened by a ring or anything
-else. The very sea which a moment before was as beautiful as a blushing
-bride holding out her arms for the embrace of the bridegroom, became as
-hateful to her as a Fury, and, hastening to the bank with tears in her
-eyes, which, of course, could not be seen, she began to dress. Mary,
-who seemed to participate in her young mistress’s sorrow, commenced
-the same operation; but when the clothes were on what was to be done?
-The tide was ebbing, and an hour, or at most two, would discover the
-channel at the spot where the unlucky slip was made, but to remain all
-that time would produce uneasiness at home, and there appeared to be
-nothing for it but for the young lady to go to Edinburgh, and leave
-Mary to wait for the ebbing of the tide, and make a search among the
-shingle for the valuable article.
-
-A plan accordingly carried out. Mary certainly awaited the ebb, and did
-make a search among the gravel, but whether that search was conducted
-in that assiduous way followed by those who are lighted in their travel
-by the Lamp of Hope, it is not for us at present to say. Certain at
-least it is that Mary did not seem very greatly disappointed at her
-failure in not finding Isabella’s precious love-token, for which want
-of feeling we do not require to go very deep into Mary’s breast, or any
-other body’s breast, seeing she was a woman, and had a lover of her
-own, even George Gallie, as good as Ballennie any day. True, he had
-never given her a ruby ring; though, as for that, he would if he could,
-and if he couldn’t how could he? So Mary was on a par with Isabella in
-that matter; still, we confess, she might have searched more carefully,
-unless, indeed, we are to be so ungallant as to believe that she had in
-her mind some foregone secret conclusion that the ring was not there to
-be found.
-
-Nor, what is almost as strange, did Mary take up her basket and
-commence her journey homeward in that saddened way which belongs to
-deep disappointment. Nay, we are not sure but that the words of the old
-song of her whose ring had been stolen by a mermaid, were conned by
-Mary to herself as she trudged homewards,--
-
- “And sair she moiled, and sair she toiled,
- To find the ring lost in the sea,
- And still the thought within her wrought
- That she would never married be.”
-
-But there was something else in her head when she reached the house,
-where she met some very suspicious looks not only from Isabella, but
-also from Mrs Warrender, for we may as well confess that the daughter
-had told her mother that when the slip of the hand took place she
-felt as if the ring had been taken off by the hand of Mary. And then
-when Mary appeared with a lugubrious face, and reported that she had
-not found the ring in the shingle, the foresaid suspicion was so
-much confirmed, that very little more would be required to induce
-Mr Warrender to make some judicial investigation into the strange
-circumstance. An inauspicious afternoon and night for Mary, and not
-less the next day, when she was called into the dining-room, and so
-sharply interrogated by Mr Warrender, that she cried very bitterly, all
-the time asserting that she never felt her hand touch the ring, and
-that it had most certainly fallen into the water and been lost. But Mr
-Warrender was not a man who believed in tears, at least women’s; for he
-was ungallant enough to think, that as we cannot distinguish _ex parte
-rei_ between those of anger and those of sorrow, and as there is a kind
-called crocodile, as limpid as the others, and just as like a pretty
-dewdrop, so they never can or ought to be received as evidence either
-of guilt or innocence. And so it came about, that as the hours passed
-the conviction grew stronger and stronger in the minds of the family
-that the meek, and church-going, and psalm-singing Mary Mochrie was a
-thief.
-
-Of this latter fact, in the peculiar circumstances of the case, there
-could be no evidence beyond the finding of the missing article, either
-on Mary’s person or in some place under her power, for Isabella’s word
-could not go for much; and so it was resolved that Mary’s person and
-trunk should be searched. A very strong step in the case of a girl
-who had hitherto held a very good character, and probably altogether
-unjustifiable, where so powerful an abstractor of earthly things as
-Neptune was apparently as much in the scrape as Mary. Yet this strong
-thing was done _illotis manibus_, and, as might have been expected,
-with no effect beyond scandalising Mary, who went so far as to say that
-Heaven took care of its own, and that God would in His own time and way
-show her persecutors that she was as innocent as that babe unborn, who
-takes away and places, nobody knows where, so many of the wickednesses
-of the world. But then an assertion of innocence in the grand style
-of an appeal to the Deity sometimes piques a prosecutor, because it
-conveys an imputation that the accused one is better taken care of by
-Heaven than he is; and so it turned out here, for Mr Warrender felt
-as if he had been challenged to the ultimate trial by ordeal, and he
-straightway proceeded to take measures for having Mary apprehended upon
-the charge of having robbed his daughter of the much-prized ring.
-
-These measures were taken as they had been resolved upon, and here
-it behoves us, for a reason which may appear by and by, to be so
-particular as to say, that the officer was to come in the morning after
-breakfast to convey the alleged culprit to the office of the public
-prosecutor, for the purpose, in the first place, of examination. Nor
-was Mary unprepared, nay, she was not even to all appearance very
-much put about, for she had gone about her work as usual, and having
-finished what she had to do as maid-of-all-work--cook, scullery-maid,
-and scrub--she began to make preparations for cutting-up and gutting,
-and scraping, and washing the large cod, which lay upon the dresser
-ready for these operations, and which, by the way, Mrs Warrender had
-that morning, an hour before, bought for the sum of one and sixpence,
-from a Jenny Mucklebacket, of the village of Newhaven--another
-particular fact which we are bound to apologise for on the foresaid
-plea of necessity, lest we might incur the charge of wishing to
-produce an effect by Dutch painting. But Mary’s services as to the
-cod were dispensed with by Mrs Warrender, if they were not actually
-resented as either a bribe to forego the prosecution, or a cold-blooded
-indifference assumed for the purpose of showing her innocence. And so
-when the officer came Mary was hurried away to undergo this terrible
-ordeal, which, whatever other effect it might have, could not fail to
-leave her marked with the very burning irons that might not inflict the
-punishment due to robbery.
-
-Leaving Mrs Warrender with the cod, which is as indispensable to our
-legend as a frying-pan to a Dutch interior, or the bone of a pig to
-a saint’s legend, we follow the prisoner to the office of the man
-who is a terror to evil-doers. Mr Warrender was there as the private
-prosecutor, and Isabella as a witness, or rather _the_ witness. On
-being seated, the fiscal asked Mary, whether, on the day of the
-bathing, she had not seen the said ring on the finger of her young
-mistress; whereto Mary answered in the affirmative. Then came the
-application of the Lydian stone, in the form of the question, whether
-she did not, at the foresaid time and place, abstract the said ring
-from the finger of Isabella when she held her hand in the process of
-dipping; but Mary was here negative and firm, asserting that she did
-not, and giving emphasis to her denial by adding, that God knew she
-was as innocent as the foresaid babe. In spite of all which, Isabella
-insisted that she had been robbed in the manner set forth. The fiscal
-saw at once that the whole case lay between the two young women, and
-recommended Mr Warrender to let go the prosecution as one which must
-fail for defect of evidence; but that gentleman, for the reason that
-he had so far committed himself, and also for that he was annoyed at
-what he called the impudence of a servant disputing the word of his
-daughter, and calling her, in effect, a liar, insisted upon his right,
-as the protector and curator of his daughter, of having the culprit
-committed to jail, in the expectation that, through some medium of the
-three magic balls, or otherwise, he would get more evidence of the
-crime. The fiscal had no alternative; and so Mary Mochrie was taken to
-the Tolbooth, with the ordinary result, in the first place, of the news
-going up and down the long street which then formed the city, that Mrs
-Warrender’s servant was imprisoned for the strange crime of abstracting
-from Miss Warrender’s finger, while bathing, the love-token given to
-her by her intended. There was, doubtless, about the tale just so much
-of romance that would serve it as wings to carry it wherever gossip was
-acceptable--and we would like to know where in that city it was not
-acceptable then, and where it is not acceptable now.
-
-Meanwhile Mrs Warrender had been very busy with the mute person of our
-drama--the cod--in which, like the devil in the story who had bargained
-for a sinner and having got a saint instead, had half resolved to
-follow the advice of Burns and “take a thought and mend,” she had got
-so much more than she bargained for with the fishwife that she was,
-when Mr Warrender and Isabella entered, ready to faint. They found
-her sitting in a chair scarcely able to move, under no less an agency
-than the fear of God. Her breath came and went with difficulty through
-lips with that degree of paleness which lips have a special tendency
-to take on, an expression of awe was over her face, and in her hand
-she held that identical ruby ring for the supposed theft of which the
-unfortunate Mary had been hurried to jail, and as for being able to
-speak she was as mute as the flounder in the proverb that never spoke
-but once; all she could do was to hold up the ring and point to the
-cod upon the dresser. But all in vain, for Mr Warrender could not see
-through the terrible mystery, nay, surely the most wonderful thing
-that had ever happened in this lower world since the time when the
-whale cast up Jonah just where and when he was wanted, till at length
-Mrs Warrender was enabled to utter a few broken words to the effect
-that the ring had been found in the stomach of the fish. Then, to be
-sure, all was plain enough--the cod was a chosen instrument in the
-hands of the great Author of Justice sent by a special message to save
-Mary Mochrie from the ruin which awaited her under a false charge. The
-conviction was easy in proportion to the charm which supernaturalism
-always holds over man--
-
- “True miracles are more believed
- The more they cannot be conceived;”
-
-and we are to remember that the last witch had not been burnt at the
-time of our story. But what made this Divine interposition the more
-serious to the house of the Warrenders, the message from above was sent
-as direct as a letter by post, only not prepaid, for Mrs Warrender had
-paid for the fish; and so it was equally plain that a duty was thus put
-upon Mr Warrender of no ordinary kind.
-
-Nor was he long in obeying the command. Taking the wonderful ring
-along with him he hurried away to the office he had so lately left,
-and told the miraculous tale to the man of prosecutions. And what
-although that astute personage smiled at the story, just as if he
-would have said, if he had thought it worth his while, “Was there any
-opportunity for Mary Mochrie handling the cod?”--it was only the small
-whipcord of scepticism applied to the posteriors of the rhinoceros of
-superstition, even that instinct in poor man to be eternally looking
-up into the blank sky for special providences. So Mr Warrender, now
-himself a holy instrument, got what he wanted--an order to the jailer
-for Mary’s liberation. So away he went; and as he went to the Tolbooth
-he told every acquaintance he met the exciting story--among others
-his own clergyman of the Greyfriars, who held up his hands and said,
-“Wonderful are the ways of God! Yea, this very thing hath a purpose in
-it, even that of utterly demolishing that arch sceptic David Hume’s
-soul-destroying Essay on Miracles. I will verily take up the subject
-the next Sabbath.” And thus, dropping the germs as he went, which
-formed a revolving radius line from the centre of the mystery--his
-own house--the consequence was that the miracle of the cod went like
-wildfire wherever there was the fuel of a predisposing superstition;
-and where, we repeat, was that not then? where is not now, despite of
-David with all his genius--the first and best of the anti-Positivists,
-because he was a true Pyrrhonean. Having got to the jail, Mr Warrender
-informed Mary of this wonderful turn of providence in her favour,
-whereat Mary, as a matter of course, held up her hands in great wonder
-and admiration.
-
-But Mr Warrender was not, by this act of justice, yet done with Mary.
-It behoved him to take her home and restore her to her place, with
-a character not only cleared of all imputation, but illustrated by
-the shining light of the favour of Heaven; and so he accompanied her
-down the thronged High Street,--an act which partook somewhat of the
-procession of a saint, whereat people stared; nay, many who had heard
-of the miracle went up and shook hands with one who was the favourite
-of the Great Disposer of events. Nor did her honours end with this
-display; for when they reached the house they found it filled with
-acquaintances, and even strangers, all anxious to see the wonderful
-fish, and the ring, and the maid. In the midst of all which honours
-Mary looked as simple as a Madonna; and if she winked it was only
-with one eye, and the winking was to herself. Even here her honours
-that day did not terminate, for she behoved for once to dine with the
-family--not on the cod, which was reserved as something sacred, like
-the small fishes offered by the Phaselites to their gods--but on a
-jolly leg of lamb, as a recompense for the breakfast of which she had
-that morning been deprived. Nay, as for the cod, in place of being
-eaten, it stood a risk of being pickled, and carried off to help the
-exchequer of some poor Catholic community in the land of miracles.
-
-But probably the most wonderful part of our history consists in this
-fact, that no one ever hinted at the propriety of having recourse to
-the easiest and most natural way of solving a knot so easily tied; but
-we have only to remember another mystery--that of the gullibility of
-man when under the hunger of superstition. Nor need we say that the
-maw of a cod, big and omnivorous as it is, never equalled that of the
-miracle-devourer’s, possessing, as it does, too, the peculiarity of
-keeping so long that which is accepted. Wherein it resembles the purse
-of the miser, the click of the spring of which is the sign of perpetual
-imprisonment. We only hear the subsequent jingle of the coin, and the
-jingle in our present instance might have lasted for twenty years,
-during all which time Mary Mochrie’s miracle might have served as the
-best answer to the Essay of the renowned sceptic.
-
-And thus we are brought back to the anecdote with which we set out. The
-story we have told is, in all its essentials, that which Donald Gorm,
-David Hume’s barber, treated him to on that morning when he wanted to
-close up for ever the mouth of the arch sceptic. It is not easy to
-smile while under the hands of a story-telling barber, for the reason
-that the contracted muscle runs a risk of being still more contracted
-by a slice being taken off it by a resolute razor moving in straight
-lines, so that probably it was not till Donald had finished both the
-story and the shaving, that David dared to indulge in that good-natured
-smile with which he used to meet his opponents, even in the teeth of
-the Gael’s oath, “’Tis a miracle, py Cot,”--a word this latter which,
-in Donald’s humour, might stand for the word cod, as well as for
-another too sacred to be here mentioned.
-
-Yet the philosopher had further occasion for his good-humoured
-reticence, with which, as is well known, he declared he would alone
-meet the censors of his Essay, for it was really on the occasion of
-this great religious sensation in the city that the washer-women at
-the “Nor’ Loch” threatened to “dook him,” for the reason that, as they
-had heard, he had not only written that detestable Essay to prove
-that no miracles (for they were ungenerous enough to pay no attention
-to his _very_ grave exception of the real Bible ones) could ever
-be, but he had actually gone the extreme length of disbelieving the
-intervention of God to save the innocent Mary Mochrie from the Moloch
-of the criminal law. We need not be unassured that this additional
-bit of gossip, as it spread though the city, would only tend to the
-inflammation that already prevailed. Nor need we wonder at all this,
-when we remember the play of metaphysical wit, which was received as
-very serious by the vulgar,--that David believed in nothing, except
-that there was no God.
-
-But the mind of the Edinburgh public was not destined to cool down
-before it underwent further combustion. It happened that a certain
-person of the name of Gallie, a common working jeweller in World’s End
-Close, was possessed of knowledge which he had picked up on the road
-to Newhaven, whither he had been going to bathe, on that very morning
-when the miraculous ring was lost, and which knowledge, he thought,
-being a knowing fellow, he could turn to account in the midst of the
-heat of collision between the miracle-mongers and the sceptics, even
-as he might have transmuted by the fire of the furnace a piece of base
-metal into gold; and he took a strange way to effect his purpose.
-Having first called on Mr Warrender and got a sight of the magic ring,
-he next wrote an advertisement, which he got printed in the form of
-the small posters of that day of Lilliputian bills. It ran in these
-terms:--“Mary Mochrie’s Miracle.--If any one is anxious to learne the
-trew secret of this reputyd miracle, let him or her, mann or woman, hye
-to the closs of ye Warld’s End, where Michael Gallie resideth, and on
-ye payement of one shilling they will hear somethyng that will astonie
-them; but not one to tell ye other upon his aith.”
-
-Copies of this bill Gallie posted on several walls in the most crowded
-parts of the city, and the consequence was such a crowd at World’s
-End Close as might have been looked for if the close had really been
-the last refuge from a conflagration of another kind. The applicants
-got their turn of entry; every one came out with a face expressive of
-wonder, yet so true were they to their oath, that no one would tell a
-word he had heard behind the veil of Gallie’s mystery, so that the
-curiosity of the outsiders, who wanted to save their shillings, became
-inflamed by pique in addition to curiosity. The secret took on the
-sacred and cabalistic character of a mystery, and the mystery feeding,
-as it always does, upon whispers and ominous looks, increased as the
-hours passed. Nor can we wonder at an excitement which had religion at
-the bottom of it, and the vanquishment of the soul-destroying David
-for the fruitful and ultimate issue. It was only the high price of
-admission which limited the number of Gallie’s shillings, for during
-the entire day the stern obligation of an oath proved the stern honesty
-of a religious people. It was said--and I see no reason to doubt the
-truth of the report--that Dr Robertson and many others of the educated
-classes caught the infection and paid their shilling; but we may doubt
-if the imperturbable David would risk his body or trouble his spirit by
-looking into the mysterious close of the World’s End.
-
-As to what took place within Gallie’s room, it would seem that the
-ingenious fellow, when he saw the heather on fire, set his gins for the
-hares and conies in such a way as to catch them by dozens. He allowed
-the room to fill, and having administered the oath to two or three
-dozen at a time, he contrived during the course of the day to bag more
-shillings than there might have been supposed to be fools or religious
-enthusiasts even in superstitious Edinburgh. Afterwards, when rumour
-became busy with his gains, it was said that he was thereby enabled
-to set up the famous silversmith’s shop that so long, under the name
-of “Gallie and Son,” occupied a prominent front in the High Street,
-between Halkerston’s Wynd and Milne’s Entry.
-
-But as all things that depend upon mere human testimony must ultimately
-be left insoluble, except as belief makes an election and decision,
-so even the revelation of the prophet Gallie did not settle the
-great question of Mochrie _versus_ Hume, for Gallie could offer no
-corroboration of the testimony of which he contrived to make a little
-fortune. That revelation came to be known very well the next day,
-probably from the softening and tongue-loosening influence of Edinburgh
-ale exercised upon even gnarled and cross-grained Presbyterians; and we
-need be under no doubt that Donald Gorm, when he shaved the philosopher
-next morning, was in full possession of the secret, though we might be
-entitled to hold pretty fast by the suspicion that he would not court
-another smile from David by recounting to him the destruction of his,
-Donald’s, theory of the miracle.
-
-With an apology for having kept the reader too long from a knowledge
-of Gallie’s revelation, we now proceed to give it as it was currently
-reported. It seemed that on that morning when the two girls went
-to bathe, Gallie had left Edinburgh for the same purpose about an
-hour later--a statement probable enough, although not attempted to
-be supported by any evidence. When about halfway on his journey, he
-met Mary Mochrie, who, strangely enough, though perfectly true, was
-his sweetheart. After some talk about the kind of bathe she had had,
-Mary showed him a ring, which she said she had bought from an old Jew
-broker on the previous day, and which she regretted was too wide for
-her finger. She then asked him to take it home with him and reduce it.
-Gallie having taken the ring into his hand started the moment he fixed
-his eye upon it.
-
-“That ring,” said he, for, notwithstanding his scheme to make capital
-out of superstition, of which he was an enemy, he was an honest
-fellow,--“that ring belongs to your young mistress; and the reason I
-know this is that I fixed the ruby in it for her not yet a fortnight
-since.”
-
-Taken thus aback, Mary began to prevaricate, saying that Miss Isabella
-Warrender had given it to her.
-
-“That cannot be,” said Gallie, “because she told me it was a present
-from her lover, George Ballennie, to whom she is to be married.”
-
-Words which Gallie uttered in a solemn if not sorrowful tone, and a
-look indicating displeasure and disappointment at thus detecting in the
-woman whom he had intended to marry, both theft and falsehood. Nor were
-these words left unrequited, for the fiery girl, snatching the ring out
-of his hand, called him a liar, besides taunting him with a certain
-pendulous attitude which his father, old Gallie, had assumed somewhere
-about the precincts of the Tolbooth immediately before dying. The
-cruel remark was one of those combinations of sharp words which have a
-tendency to stick, especially where the brain to which they adhere has
-been previously occupied by love, and so Gallie, muttering to himself a
-determination to be revenged, parted from her for ever, and proceeded
-on his way to Newhaven.
-
-Things in this world being so arranged that one person’s misfortune
-or wretchedness becomes another person’s opportunity, we may see how
-Gallie came to his purpose. Perhaps he might not have thought it worth
-his pains to expose his own sweetheart from a mere feeling of revenge,
-but when he came to find that the woman who had cast up to him his
-father’s misfortune, had taken or been put into the position of an
-instrument of God’s grace, that the public had been by her precipitated
-into a superstitious enthusiasm--a species of feeling which he hated,
-(for who knows but that he might have been descended from that older
-Gallio who deserved to have been hanged?) and that he saw by the clear
-vision of ingenuity that he could revenge himself as to Mary, and make
-himself rich at the expense of the fools whom he despised, he fell upon
-the adroit scheme which we have so faithfully recorded.
-
-We have already also said that the oath of secrecy which Gallie had
-imposed on his dupes was dispensed with by some of the “loose-fish”
-who could not be so easily caught as the devout cod. But this did not
-end the controversy, for it immediately took the form of a contest
-between the Gallieites and the Mochrieites, and the fury of the contest
-having drawn the attention of the officials of the law, Mary was
-again apprehended, with the view to be indicted for the theft of the
-ring, provided any corroborative testimony could be got in support
-of the statement of Gallie, who was forced to make his revelation to
-the fiscal, this one time without a shilling. The Scotch people are
-blessed or cursed with a metaphysical tendency, and this may be the
-reason of their peculiar faith, as well as of their old suspicion of
-human testimony in the courts of law. One witness has never been
-received in Scotland as good for anything, if standing alone; and when
-we look to the samples of humanity that meet us every day, so nicely
-poised between truth and falsehood, that the weight of a Queen Anne’s
-farthing would decide the inclination to the one side or the other, we
-are apt to think our judges rather sagacious. Perhaps they thought of
-themselves in these palmy days when they took bribes, and considered
-them very good and gracious things, too, in their own way. But be all
-that as it may, the evidence of Gallie was not corroborated in any way;
-the ring might have been put into the cod’s mouth by Isabella Warrender
-herself to ruin Mary. Woman can do such things; and Gallie’s accusation
-might have been the consequence of Mary’s allusion to the fate of his
-father. The result, accordingly, was, that Mary Mochrie was dismissed.
-Yet even here the affair did not end, for some people received her with
-open arms, as being a vessel of mercy.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Pelican.
-
-
-Though not so much a tradition as a memory still fresh probably in the
-minds of some of the good old Edinburgh folks, we here offer, chiefly
-for the benefit of our young female readers who are fond of a story
-wherein little heroines figure, as in Béranger’s “Sylphide,” an account
-of a very famous adventure of a certain little Jeannie Deans in our
-city--the more like the elder Jeannie, inasmuch as they both were
-concerned in a loving effort to save the life of a sister. Whereunto,
-as a very necessary introduction, it behoves us to set forth that
-there was, some sixty years ago, more or less, a certain Mr William
-Maconie, who was a merchant on the South Bridge of Edinburgh, but who,
-for the sake of exercise and fresh air,--a commodity this last he need
-not have gone so far from the Calton Hill to seek--resided at Juniper
-Green, a little village three or four miles from St Giles’s. Nor did
-this distance incommode him much, seeing that he had the attraction to
-quicken his steps homewards of a pretty young wife and two little twin
-daughters, Mary and Annie, as like each other as two rosebuds partially
-opened, and as like their mother, too, as the objects of our simile are
-to themselves when full blown.
-
-Peculiar in this respect of having twins at the outset, and sisters
-too--a good beginning of a contract to perpetuate the species--Mr
-Maconie was destined to be even more so, inasmuch as there came no
-more of these pleasant _deliciæ domi_, at least up to the time of
-our curious story--a circumstance the more to be regretted by the
-father in consequence of a strange fancy (never told to his wife)
-that possessed him of wishing to insure the lives of his children as
-they came into the world, or at least after they had got through the
-rather uninsurable period of mere infant life. And in execution of this
-fancy--a very fair and reasonable one, and not uncommon at that time,
-whatever it may be now, when people are not so provident--he had got an
-insurance to the extent of five hundred pounds effected in the Pelican
-Office--perhaps the most famous at that time--on the lives of the said
-twins, Mary and Annie, who were, no doubt, altogether unconscious of
-the importance they were thus made to hold in the world.
-
-Yet, unfortunately for the far-seeing and provident father, this scheme
-threatened to fructify sooner than he wished, if indeed it could ever
-have fructified to his satisfaction; for the grisly spectre of Typhus
-laid his relentless hand upon Mary when she--and of a consequence
-Annie--was somewhere about eight years old. And surely, being as we are
-very hopeful optimists in the cause of human nature, we need not say
-that the father, as he and his wife watched the suffering invalid on
-through the weary days and nights of the progress towards the crisis
-of that dangerous ailment, never once thought of the Pelican, except
-as a bird that feeds its young with the warm blood of its breast.
-But, sorrowful as they were, their grief was nothing in comparison
-with the distress of little Annie, who slipped about listening and
-making all manner of anxious inquiries about her sick sister, whom she
-was prohibited from seeing for fear of her being touched by the said
-spectre; nor was her heart the less troubled with fears for her life,
-that all things seemed so quiet and mysterious about the house--the
-doctor coming and going, and the father and mother whispering to each
-other, but never to her, and their faces so sad-like and mournful, in
-place of being, as was their wont, so cheerful and happy.
-
-And surely all this solicitude on the part of Annie Maconie need not
-excite our wonder, when we consider that, from the time of their
-birth, the twin sisters had never been separated; but that, from the
-moment they had made their entrance on this world’s stage, they had
-been always each where the other was, and had run each where the other
-ran, wished each what the other wished, and wept and laughed each when
-the other wept or laughed. Nature, indeed, before it came into her
-fickle head to make two of them, had, in all probability, intended
-these little sisters--“little cherries on one stalk”--to be but one;
-and they could only be said not to be _one_, because of their bodies
-being two--a circumstance of no great importance, for, in spite of the
-duality of body, the spirit that animated them was a unity, and as we
-know from an old philosopher called Plato, the spirit is really the
-human creature, the flesh and bones constituting the body being nothing
-more than a mere husk intended at the end to feed worms. And then the
-mother helped this sameness by dressing them so like each other, as if
-she wanted to make a “Comedy of Errors” out of the two little female
-Dromios.
-
-But in the middle of this mystery and solicitude, it happened that
-Annie was to get some light; for at breakfast one morning--not yet
-that of the expected crisis--when her father and mother were talking
-earnestly in an undertone to each other, all unaware that the child,
-as she was moving about, was watching their words and looks, much as
-an older victim of credulity may be supposed to hang on the cabalistic
-movements and incantations of a sibyl, the attentive little listener
-eagerly drank in every word of the following conversation:--
-
-“The doctor is so doubtful,” said the anxious mother, with a tear in
-her eye, “that I have scarcely any hope; and if she is taken away, the
-very look of Annie, left alone ‘bleating for her sister lamb,’ will
-break my heart altogether.”
-
-“Yes,” rejoined Mr Maconie, “it would be hard to bear; but,”--and
-it was the first time since Mary’s illness he had ever remembered
-the insurance,--“it was wise that I insured poor Mary’s life in the
-Pelican.”
-
-“Insured her life in the Pelican!” echoed the wife, in a higher tone.
-“That was at least lucky; but, oh! I hope we will not need to have our
-grief solaced by that comfort in affliction for many a day.”
-
-And this colloquy had scarcely been finished when the doctor entered,
-having gone previously into the invalid’s room, with a very mournful
-expression upon his face; nor did his words make that expression any
-more bearable, as he said--
-
-“I am sorry to say I do not like Mary’s appearance so well to-day. I
-fear it is to be one of those cases where we cannot discover anything
-like a crisis at all; indeed, I have doubts about this old theory being
-applicable to this kind of fever, where the virus goes on gradually
-working to the end.”
-
-“The end!” echoed Mrs Maconie; “then, doctor, I fear you see what that
-will be.”
-
-“I would not like to say,” added he; “but I fear you must make up your
-mind for the worst.”
-
-Now, all this was overheard by Annie, who, we may here seize the
-opportunity of saying, was, in addition to being a sensitive creature,
-one of those precocious little philosophers thinly spread in the
-female world, and made what they are often by delicate health, which
-reduces them to a habit of thinking much before their time. Not that
-she wanted the vivacity of her age, but that it was tempered by periods
-of serious musing, when all kinds of what the Scotch call “auld
-farrent” (far yont) thoughts come to be where they should not be, the
-consequence being a weird-like kind of wisdom, very like that of the
-aged; so the effect on a creature so constituted was just equal to
-the cause. Annie ran out of the room with her face concealed in her
-hands, and got into a small bed-room darkened by the window-blind, and
-there, in an obscurity and solitude suited to her mind and feelings,
-she resigned herself to the grief of the young heart. It was now
-clear to her that her dear Mary was to be taken from her; had not the
-doctor said as much? And then she had never seen death, of which she
-had read and heard and thought so much, that she looked upon it as a
-thing altogether mysterious and terrible. But had she not overheard
-her father say that he had insured poor dear Mary’s life with the
-Pelican? and had she not heard of the pelican--yea, the pelican of the
-wilderness--as a creature of a most mythical kind, though she knew
-not aught of its nature, whether bird or beast, or man or woman, or
-angel. But whatever it might be, certain it was that her father would
-never have got this wonderful creature to insure Mary’s life if it
-was not possessed of the power to bring about so great a result; so
-she cogitated, and mused, and philosophised in her small way, till
-she came to the conclusion that the pelican not only had the destiny
-of Mary in its hands, but was under an obligation to save her from
-that death which was so terrible to her. Nor had she done yet with
-the all-important subject; for all at once it came into her head as
-a faint memory, that one day, when her father was taking her along
-with her mother through the city, he pointed to a gilded sign, with a
-large bird represented thereon tearing its breast with its long beak
-and letting out the blood to its young, who were holding their mouths
-open to drink it in. “There,” said he, “is the Pelican;” words she
-remembered even to that hour, for they were imprinted upon her mind by
-the formidable appearance of the wonderful-looking creature feeding its
-young with the very blood of its bosom. But withal she had sense enough
-to know--being, as we have said, a small philosopher--that a mere
-bird, however endowed with the power of sustaining the lives of its
-offspring, could not save that of her sister, and therefore it behoved
-to be only the symbol of some power within the office over the door of
-which the said sign was suspended. Nor in all this was Annie Maconie
-more extravagant than are nineteen-twentieths of the thousand millions
-in the world who still cling to occult causes.
-
-And with those there came other equally strange thoughts; but beyond
-all she could not for the very life of her comprehend that most
-inexcusable apathy of her father, who, though he had heard with his own
-ears, from good authority, that her beloved Mary was lying in the next
-bed-room dying, never seemed to think of hurrying away to town--even
-to that very pelican who had so generously undertaken to insure Mary’s
-life. It was an apathy unbecoming a father; and the blood of her little
-heart warmed with indignation at the very time that the said heart was
-down in sorrow as far as its loose strings would enable it to go. But
-was there no remedy? To be sure there was, and Annie knew, moreover,
-what it was; but then it was to be got only by a sacrifice, and that
-sacrifice she also knew, though it must of necessity be kept in the
-meantime as secret as the wonderful doings in the death-chamber of the
-palace of a certain Bluebeard.
-
-Great thoughts these for so little a woman as Annie Maconie; and no
-doubt the greatness and the weight of them were the cause why, for all
-that day--every hour of which her father was allowing to pass--she was
-more melancholy and thoughtful than she had ever been since Mary began
-to be ill. But, somehow, there was a peculiar change which even her
-mother could observe in her; for while she had been in the habit of
-weeping for her sister, yea, and sobbing very piteously, she was all
-this day apparently in a reverie. Nor even up to the time of her going
-to bed was she less thoughtful and abstracted, even as if she had been
-engaged in solving some problem great to her, however small it might
-seem to grown-up infants. As for sleeping under the weight of so much
-responsibility, it might seem to be out of the question, and so verily
-it was; for her little body, acted on by the big thoughts, was moved
-from one side to another all night, so that she never slept a wink
-still thinking and thinking, in her unutterable grief, of poor Mary,
-her father’s criminal passiveness, and that most occult remedy which so
-completely engrossed her mind.
-
-But certainly it was the light of morning for which sister Annie
-sighed; and when it came glinting in at the small window, she was up
-and beginning to dress, all the while listening lest the servant or
-any other one in the house should know she was up at that hour. Having
-completed her toilet, she slipped downstairs, and having got to the
-lobby, she was provident enough to lay hold of an umbrella, for she
-suspected the elements as being in league against her. Thus equipped,
-she crept out by the back-door, and having got thus free, she hurried
-along, never looking behind her till she came to the main road to
-Edinburgh, when she mounted the umbrella--one used by her father, and
-so large that it was more like a main-sheet than a covering suitable
-to so small a personage; so it behoved, that if she met any other
-“travellers on purpose bent,” the moving body must have appeared to
-be some small tent on its way to a fair, carried by the proprietor
-thereof, of whom no more could be seen but the two short toddling legs,
-and the hem of the black riding-hood. But what cared Annie? She toiled
-along; the miles were long in comparison of the short legs, but then
-there was a large purpose in that little body, in the view of which
-miles were of small account, however long a time it might take those
-steps to go over them. Nor was it any drawback to all this energy,
-concentrated in so small a bulk, that she had had no breakfast. Was
-the dying sister Mary able to take any breakfast? and why should Annie
-eat when Mary, who did all she did--and she always did everything that
-sister Mary did--could not? The argument was enough for our little
-logician.
-
-By the time she reached, by those short steps of hers, the great city,
-it was half-past eleven, and she had before her still a great deal to
-accomplish. She made out, after considerable wanderings, the street
-signalised above all streets by that wonderful bird; but after she got
-into it, the greater difficulty remained of finding the figure itself,
-whereto there was this untoward obstacle, that it was still drizzling
-in the thick Scotch way of concrete drops of mist, and the umbrella
-which she held over her head was so large that no turning it aside
-would enable her to see under the rim at such an angle as would permit
-her scanning so elevated a position, and so there was nothing for it
-but to draw it down. But even this was a task--heavy as the main-sheet
-was with rain, and rattling in a considerable wind--almost beyond her
-strength; and if it hadn’t been that a kindly personage who saw the
-little maid’s difficulty gave her assistance, she might not have been
-able to accomplish it. And now, with the heavy article in her hand, she
-peered about for another half-hour, till at length her gladdened eye
-fell upon the mystic symbol.
-
-And no sooner had she made sure of the object, than she found her way
-into the office, asking the porter as well as a clerk where the pelican
-was to be found--questions that produced a smile; but smile here or
-smile there, Annie was not to be beat, nor did she stop in her progress
-until at last she was shown into a room where she saw perched on a high
-stool with three (of course) long legs, a strange-looking personage
-with a curled wig and a pair of green spectacles, who no doubt must be
-the pelican himself. As she appeared in the room, with the umbrella,
-not much shorter or less in circumference than herself, the gentleman
-looked curiously at her, wondering no doubt what the errand of so
-strange a little customer could be.
-
-“Well, my little lady,” said he, “what may be your pleasure?”
-
-“I want the pelican,” said Annie.
-
-The gentleman was still more astonished, even to the extent that he
-laid down his pen and looked at her again.
-
-“The pelican, dear?”
-
-“Ay; just the pelican,” answered she, deliberately, and even a little
-indignantly. “Are you the pelican?”
-
-“Why, yes, dear; all that is for it below the figure,” said he,
-smiling, and wondering what the next question would be.
-
-“I am so glad I have found you,” said she; “because sister Mary is
-dying.”
-
-“And who is sister Mary?”
-
-“My sister, Mary Maconie, at Juniper Green.”
-
-Whereupon the gentleman began to remember that the name of William
-Maconie was in his books as holder of a policy.
-
-“And what more?”
-
-“My father says the pelican insured Mary’s life, and I want you to come
-direct and do it, because I couldn’t live if Mary were to die. And
-there’s no time to be lost.”
-
-“Oh! I see, dear; and who sent you?”
-
-“Nobody,” answered Annie. “My father wouldn’t come to you, and I have
-come from Juniper Green myself, without telling my father or mother.”
-
-“Oh yes, dear; I understand you.”
-
-“But you must do it quick,” continued she, “because the doctor
-says she’s in great danger; so you must come with me, and save her
-immediately.”
-
-“I am sorry, my dear little lady,” rejoined he, “that I cannot go with
-you; but I will set about it immediately, and I have no doubt, being
-able to go faster than you, that I will get there before you, so that
-all will be right before you arrive.”
-
-“See that you do it, then,” said she, “because I can’t live if Mary
-dies. Are you quite sure you will do it?”
-
-“Perfectly sure, my little dear,” added he; “go away home, and all will
-be right. The pelican will do his duty.”
-
-And Annie being thus satisfied, went away, dragging the main-sheet
-after her, and having upon her face a look of contentment, if not
-absolute happiness, in place of the sorrow which had occupied it during
-all the time of her toilsome journey. The same road is to be retraced;
-and if she had an object before which nerved her little limbs, she had
-now the delightful consciousness of that object having been effected--a
-feeling of inspiration which enabled her, hungry as she was, to
-overcome all the toil of the return. Another two hours, with that heavy
-umbrella overhead as well as body, brought her at length home, where
-she found that people had been sent out in various directions to find
-the missing Annie. The mother was in tears, and the father in great
-anxiety; and no sooner had she entered and laid down her burden, than
-she was clasped to the bosom, first of one parent, and then of the
-other.
-
-“But where is the pelican?” said the anxious little maid.
-
-“The pelican! my darling,” cried the mother; “what do you mean?”
-
-“Oh! I have been to him at his own office at Edinburgh, to get him to
-come and save Mary’s life, and he said he would be here before me.”
-
-“And what in the world put it in your head to go there?” again asked
-the mother.
-
-“Because I heard my father say yesterday that the pelican had insured
-dear sister Mary’s life, and I went to tell him to come and do it
-immediately; because, if Mary were to die, I couldn’t live, you
-know--that’s the reason, dear mother.”
-
-“Yes, yes,” said the father, scarcely able to repress a smile which
-rose in spite of his grief. “I see it all; you did a very right thing,
-my love. The pelican has been here, and Mary is better.”
-
-“Oh! I am so glad,” rejoined Annie, “for I wasn’t sure whether he had
-come or not; because, though I looked for him on the road, I couldn’t
-see him.”
-
-At the same moment the doctor came in, with a blithe face.
-
-“Mary is safe now,” said he. “There has been a crisis, after all. The
-sweat has broken out upon her dry skin, and she will be well in a very
-short time.”
-
-“And there’s no thanks to you,” said Annie, “because it was I who went
-for the pelican.”
-
-Whereupon the doctor looked to the father, who, taking him aside,
-narrated to him the story, at which the doctor was so pleased that he
-laughed right out.
-
-“You’re the noblest little heroine I ever heard of,” said he.
-
-“But have you had anything to eat, dear, in this long journey?” said
-the mother.
-
-“No, I didn’t want,” was the answer; “all I wanted was to save Mary’s
-life, and I am glad I have done it.”
-
-And glad would we be if, by the laws of historical truth, our stranger
-story could have ended here; but, alas! we are obliged to pain the
-good reader’s heart by saying that the demon who had left the troubled
-little breast of Mary Maconie took possession of Annie’s. The very next
-day she lay extended on the bed, panting under the fell embrace of the
-relentless foe. As Mary got better, Annie grew worse; and her case was
-so far unlike Mary’s, that there was more a tendency to a fevered state
-of the brain. The little sufferer watched with curious eyes the anxious
-faces of her parents, and seemed conscious that she was in a dangerous
-condition. Nor did it fail to occur to her as a great mystery as well
-as wonder, why they did not send for the wonderful being who had so
-promptly saved the life of her sister. The thought haunted her, yet
-she was afraid to mention it to her mother, because it implied a sense
-of danger--a fear which one evening she overcame. Fixing her eyes, now
-every moment waxing less clear, on the face of her mother--
-
-“Oh! mother, dear,” she whispered, “why do you not send for the
-pelican?”
-
-In other circumstances the mother would have smiled; but, alas, no
-smile could be seen on that pale face. Whether the pelican was sent
-for we know not, but certain it is, that he had no power to save poor
-Annie, and she died within the week. But she did not die in vain, for
-the large sum insured upon her life eventually came to Mary, whom she
-loved so dearly.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of Davie Dempster’s Ghaist.
-
-
-There was once an old saying very common in the mouths of the Edinburgh
-people--“As dead as Davie Dempster.” It has long since passed away;
-but whether it was preferable to the one to which it has given place,
-viz.,--“As dead as a door-nail,” we must leave to those wise people who
-can measure degrees of nonvitality in objects which are without life.
-Be all which as it may, the imputed deadness of David Dempster may
-appear to have some interest to us when we know the story from which
-the old popular saying took its rise; and the more, that the story
-cannot be said to want a moral vitality, if it has not even a spice of
-humour in it. Certain, to begin with, David Dempster was at least once
-alive, for we can vouch for his having been a very respectable denizen
-of the old city. We can even impart the nature of his calling, that of
-a trafficker in the stuff of man’s wearing apparel, which he sold to
-those who were willing to buy, and even to some who were unwilling to
-buy; for David’s tongue, if not so long as his ell-wand, was a deuced
-deal more supple. Nor does our information end here, for we can, we
-are happy to say, tell the name of his wife, which was Dorothy; nay,
-we know even the interesting particular, that when David had more
-Edinburgh ale in his stomach than humility in his head, he got so far
-into the heroics as to call her Dorothea; but as for the maiden name
-of this woman, who was the wife of a man so famous as to have been the
-source and origin of a proverb, we regret to say that it has gone into
-the limbo of things that are lost. To make amends, we can, however,
-add that Mrs Dempster was, at the time of our story, as plump and well
-coloured as Florabel; but as for David, who was ten years older than
-his wife, he was just as plain as any man needs be without pretension
-to being disagreeable.
-
-We have said that David Dempster and his wife were respectable, and
-we do not intend to offer a jot more evidence on the point, than the
-fact that they went to “the kirk” on Sundays, and that, too, with
-faces of the normal Calvinistic elongation, and in good clothes;
-Dorothy being covered, head and all, with her red silk plaid, and
-David immersed in the long square coat of the times, with cuffs as
-big as four-pound tea-bags, buttons as broad as crown-pieces, and
-pockets able to have held Dr Webster’s--their minister’s--pulpit
-Bible in the one, and as many bottles of wine as the worthy gentleman
-could carry away at a sitting, in the other; an allusion this last by
-no means ill-natured, as we may show by making the admission that,
-if David and Dorothy had had heads big enough to carry away all that
-their excellent preacher told them, they required no more for unction
-and function for a whole week. But, however fair things looked in the
-sanctuary, it was otherwise at home in Lady Stair’s Close, where they
-resided, for it so happened that our worthy clothes-merchant had got
-into debt; nay, there were hornings and captions out against him, and
-he stood a chance any day in all the year round of being shut up in
-“The Heart of Mid-Lothian,” not nearly so soft a one as Dorothy’s. Not
-that all David’s creditors were equally hard upon him, for the laird
-of Rubbledykes--a small property on the left-hand side of the road to
-Cramond--Mr Thomas Snoddy, who had lent him two hundred pounds Scots,
-never asked him for a farthing; the reason of which requires a little
-explanation.
-
-In real secret truth the laird had been a lover of Dorothy’s before she
-was married to David, and there is no doubt that if he had declared
-himself, with Rubbledykes to back him, he would have carried off the
-adorable Dorothy in triumph; but then it was the laird’s misfortune
-to be what the Scotch call “a blate lover;” which is just to say, a
-belated one; and Dorothy was married to the spruce and ardent David
-before she knew that a real laird of an estate was dying in secret
-for her. Nor could she have had any doubt of the fact, for Mr Snoddy
-summoned up courage to tell her so himself--a circumstance which cost
-him something, insomuch as no sooner did David know the fact than he
-asked him for the loan of the said two hundred pounds Scots money. Of
-course, David being, as we have said, a man with a supple tongue, and
-brains at the end of it, knew what he was about, and so sure enough he
-succeeded; for Rubbledykes, who would not have lent two hundred pound
-Scots to the treasurer of the Virgin Mary on a note-of-hand, payable in
-Heaven, was even delighted to advance that sum to the husband of his
-once loved, and for ever lost, Dorothy. And in this act the laird was
-wonderfully liberal; for in his secret heart he conditioned for no more
-than the liberty of being allowed to visit the house in Lady Stair’s
-Close on market days, and sit beside Dorothy, and look at her, and
-wonder at her still red cheeks--albeit, more of the pickling cabbage
-than the rose--and sigh at the loss of such a treasure. Neither in
-suffering all this adoration did Mrs Dempster commit any very heinous
-sin; nay, being, as a good Calvinist, a believer in the excellent
-doctrine (if acted up to) of “total depravity,” she was necessarily in
-the highway of salvation.
-
-Neither did Mrs Dempster think it necessary to conceal any of these
-doings from David. Nay, on one particular Wednesday, after the laird
-had had his fill of this will-worship, she brought the subject up in
-so particular a way to her husband, that we are thereby led to believe
-that they understood each other, and could act in concert. The occasion
-was the complaint of David that some of his other creditors were likely
-to be down upon him.
-
-“Ah, Dorothy, if they were a’ like Snoddy.”
-
-Not a very respectful way of alluding to no less a personage than the
-laird of Rubbledykes, let alone his kindness; but then David, being
-a debtor, did not respect himself, and nothing was ever more true
-than the saying, “That our own self-respect is the foundation of that
-respect which we pay to others.”
-
-“But they’re _no’_ a’ like the laird,” replied Dorothy; “and what’s
-mair, David, my man, the laird winna be ane o’ your creditors lang
-either.”
-
-“What mean you, lass?” inquired David.
-
-“I just mean neither mair nor less than that Thomas Snoddy o’
-Rubbledykes, wha should hae been my gudeman, is deein’ as fast as he
-can bicker; and that by and by I might have been my Leddy Rubbledykes
-wi’ three hundred a year, and nae husband to trouble me.”
-
-“That’s ill news,” continued David; “for if he dees, the debt will gae
-to his brother, a man who would raze the skin frae the mother’s face
-that bore him, if he could mak a leather purse out o’t. But what maks
-ye think he is deein’, lass?”
-
-“Deein’!” rejoined Dorothy, with an ill-timed, if not cruel laugh.
-“That cough o’ his would kill baith you and me in a year, even if we
-should only cough time about.”
-
-“Ower true, I fear,” groaned David; “and then there’s a’ thae ither
-debts upon me. Hark, Dorothy, ye’re a clever dame; could ye no’ get the
-laird to discharge the debt?”
-
-“Maybe I might, were I to kiss him, David,” was the answer, with
-another smile.
-
-“And what for no’?” asked this honest man, who raised his voice in the
-Tron every Sunday.
-
-“Because I am neither a Judith nor a Judas,” replied she.
-
-“But ye’re a Christian,” was the ready rejoinder; “and what’s mair, a
-Calvinist.”
-
-“As if a body could be a Christian without being a Calvinist,” said
-she. “But what do ye mean, David--are ye crazy? Why should I kiss
-another man because I’m a Calvinist?”
-
-“Nae sin, nae salvation,” said he.
-
-Whereupon the worthy couple laughed at a tenet which, being liable to
-a double construction, has always been dangerous to the common people
-of Scotland. And what was worse, this laugh was only the prelude to a
-further conversation so deep and mysterious, and withal conducted in
-so low a train of whispers and re-whispers, that even our familiar,
-endowed as he is with the power of going through stone walls, could
-carry off no more than smiles and nods and winks, and more and more
-of the same kind of laughs. But as the son of Sirach says, “There
-is an exquisite subtlety, and the same is unjust;” and “Wrath will
-surely search it.” Nor was there in this case much time required for
-the retribution, for the very next day a man rushed into the house of
-Mrs Dempster with the intelligence on his tongue that David Dempster
-was drowned at Granton. The dreadful story was indeed corroborated
-into a certainty by a bundle of clothes which the messenger of evil
-tidings laid on the table, no other than the suit which David had
-put on that morning, including the linen shirt which Dorothy’s own
-fingers had adorned with the breast-ruffle, and identified with the
-beloved initials, D. D., more precious to her than the symbols of
-ecclesiastical honours. All were there as he had left them on the beach
-before the plunge which was to be unto death--yea, something after
-death, and more terrible, for had not David been a scoffer? If Mrs
-Dempster had at first been able to collect her scattered senses, she
-would have been satisfied even with the look of the clothes, for she
-had heard her husband say, with a blithe look, that he was to go to
-Granton to bathe, and she would, moreover, have had some minutes sooner
-the melancholy satisfaction that one so dear to her had not committed
-suicide.
-
-But the sudden impression left no room for consolations of any kind.
-Struggling nature could do no more than work itself out of one swoon
-to fall into another, and how long it was before she could listen to
-the inrushing neighbours with their news that he had been boated for,
-and dived for, and hooked for, and searched for, no record remains to
-tell. But that all these efforts had been made there was no doubt, and
-as the hours passed bringing as yet no assuagement of a grief which
-is only amenable to time, it came to be known that the coast had been
-examined all about the fatal spot with no return but the inevitable
-_non inventus_; nor did it require many days to satisfy the unfortunate
-widow that the catastrophe was of that complete kind where the
-remaining victim is not only deprived of a husband, but denied the poor
-consolation of seeing his dead body.
-
-Yet how true it is that the kingdom of Death is in the land of
-forgetfulness, not only to the ghostly denizens who there dwell, but
-also to those who are left in this region of quick memories. Wherein
-surely there is a kindness in the cruelty; for assuredly there is no
-one who could suffer for a protracted period the intensity of the first
-onset of a grief of a privation which is to be for ever in this world
-and be able to live. And this kindliness of the fates was experienced
-by Mrs Dorothy Dempster, who, after a decent period, and amidst the
-consolations of friends, felt herself in a condition to be able to wait
-upon the creditors of her husband and get them to be contented with
-the small stock left by him, and give her acquittances of their debts;
-nay, so heartrending were her appeals, and so miserable she appeared in
-her weeds, that these good men even voted her a small sum out of the
-wreck as a beautiful tribute to pity and humanity. All which went for
-its value, so creditable as it is to human nature, and we need hardly
-add that the frequent reading of the encomium in the _Mercury_ on the
-merits of the deceased--which, of course, proceeded on the inevitable
-rule that a man is only good provided he is dead--heaped up the
-consolation even to a species of melancholy pleasure.
-
-And, surely, if on this occasion there was any one _ipsis charitibus
-humanior_, it was Mr Thomas Snoddy, the good laird of Rubbledykes.
-Nor were his attentions merely empty-handed visits to the house of
-the widow, for he brought her money, often, after all, the chief of
-consolations. Of the manner in which that might be accepted he probably
-suspected there was nothing to be feared; but there was another gift
-he had in store, in regard to the acceptability of which he was
-not quite so sure--and that was his old love kindled up into a new
-flame--probably enough he had never heard or read the lines to the
-effect that--
-
- “Cupid can his wings apply,
- To other uses than to fly;
- Serving as a handkerchief
- To dry the tears of widows’ grief.”
-
-But, whether so or not, he resolved upon trying what he himself could
-do in that remedial way; and, accordingly, he began with a small dose,
-the success of which urged him to a repetition; and on he went from
-small quantities to greater, till he was overjoyed to find that the
-patient could bear any amount he was able to administer. Nor could it
-be said that the aforesaid cough made any abatement from the success
-of these efforts, if we might not rather surmise that it entered as an
-element in their recommendation--at least it indicated no hollowness in
-Rubbledykes.
-
-We all know that “the question” once meant _torture_. At the period of
-our story, and we hope not less in our day, it meant _rapture_; and it
-is not unlikely that Mrs Dempster on that market-day, when the laird
-sat by the side of the parlour fire in Lady Stair’s Close, enjoyed
-something of that kind when the words fell on her ear.
-
-“Now, my dear Dorothy--to come to the point in the lang-run--will ye
-hae me for your second husband, wha should hae been your first?”
-
-“I hae no objection,” replied Dorothy, as she held away her head and
-covered her eyes with her handkerchief; “_but_----”
-
-And Mrs Dempster stopped short, with an effect almost as great on the
-astonished suitor as that of the memorable answer given by a certain
-Mrs Jean of Clavershalee to another laird, whose property lay not far
-distant from Rubbledykes.
-
-“But!” ejaculated the laird, with an effort that brought an attack of
-his cough upon him. “You maun ‘but’ me nae ‘buts,’ Dorothy, unless ye
-want to kill me. I aye thought I had a better claim to you than David.
-Heaven rest his body in the deep waters o’ the Forth, and his soul in
-heaven!”
-
-“Ay,” continued she, as she applied the handkerchief again, as if this
-time to receive some tears which ought to have come and didn’t; “but
-that just puts me in mind o’ what I was going to say. You have seen
-how David was ta’en awa. What if onything should happen to you? What
-would become o’ me? Rubbledykes would gae to your brother.”
-
-“The de’il a stane o’t, Dorothy,” cried the laird. “It will be a’
-yours. I will mak it ower to you; tofts and crofts, outhouses and
-inhouses, muirs and mosses, pairts and pertinents. Will that please
-you?”
-
-“Ay, will’t,” answered Dorothy from behind the handkerchief.
-
-Whereupon the laird took her in his arms with a view to kiss her; but
-there is many a slip not only between the cup and the lip, but between
-one lip and another; for no sooner had Thomas so prepared himself for,
-perhaps, the greatest occasion of his life--even that of kissing a
-woman, and that woman the very idol of his heart--than that dreadful
-cough came again upon him, and Dorothy could not help thinking that it
-was now more hollow, or, as the Scotch call it, _toom_, than ever she
-had heard it.
-
-“I will awa to Mr Ainslie and get the contract written out at length,”
-he said, to cover his disgrace.
-
-Nor was it sooner said than done. Away he went, leaving Dorothy
-virtually a bride, and the lady _in esse_ of an estate, albeit a small
-one, yet great to her. At all which she laughed a most enigmatical
-laugh, as if some secret thoughts had risen in her mind with the effect
-of a ridiculous incongruity; but what these thoughts were no one ever
-knew. Nor shall we try to imagine them, considering ourselves to be
-better employed in setting forth that shortly afterwards Mrs Dorothy
-Dempster was joined in the silken bands of holy wedlock with Thomas
-Snoddy, Esquire, of Rubbledykes, and that by the hands of Dr Webster
-of the Tron, who accompanied the happy couple in the evening to the
-gray-slated mansion-house, where he made another celebration of the
-event by draining a couple of bottles of good old claret. Strange
-enough all these things; but the real wonders of our story would seem
-only to begin with the settlement of Mr David Dempster’s widow in
-the mansion-house of the veritable laird; even though, consistently
-with the manners of the time, there was a duck-pond at the door, a
-peat-stack on the gable, and a midden gracing the byre not five yards
-from the parlour window; spite of all which Mrs Dorothy was a lady,
-while David lay with glazed eyes in the Forth among the fishes scarcely
-a mile distant from his enchanted widow.
-
-We think it a strange thing that mortals should laugh and weep by
-turns, yet we think sunshine and showers a very natural alternation;
-and surely it is far more wonderful that we often weep when we
-should laugh, and laugh when we should weep--of which hypocrisy,
-notwithstanding, there is a hundred times more in the world than man or
-woman wots of. And we are sorry to be obliged to doubt the extent of
-the new-made lady’s grief when she saw the laird’s cough increasing as
-his love waxed stronger and his lungs grew less. Nay, we are not sure
-that when she saw that he was dying, and hailed the signs with grief
-in her eyes and joy in her heart, she was under the impression that
-she was acting up to the amiable tenet of her religious creed--total
-depravity. Be all which as it may, it is certain that though Dorothy’s
-tears had been of that real kind of which Tully says they are--“the
-easiest dried of all things,” they would not have retarded the progress
-of the laird’s disease. It was not yet three months, and he was
-confined to bed, with Dorothy hanging over him, watching him with all
-the care of a seeker for favourable symptoms. But one evening there was
-a symptom which she was unprepared for--nay, she was this time serious
-in her alarm.
-
-“I have done that which is evil in the sight o’ God.”
-
-The words came as from a far-away place, they were so hollow.
-
-“What is it, Tammas?” asked she.
-
-“I have seen David Dempster’s ghaist,” said he. “It looked in at that
-window, and disappeared in an instant; but no’ before I kent what the
-een said. Yea, Dorothy, they said as plainly as een can speak--‘Tammas
-Snoddy, ye made love to Dorothy Dempster when I was alive in the body,
-and her lawful husband.’”
-
-And the laird shook all over so violently that Dorothy could see the
-clothes move.
-
-“Just your conscience, Tammas,” said she. “Ye maun fley thae visions
-awa in the auld way. It is the deevil tempting ye. We maun flap the
-leaves o’ the Bible at him, and ye’ll see nae mair o’ him in this warld
-at any rate.”
-
-And Dorothy, taking up the holy book and opening it at the middle,
-flapt it with such energy that more dust came out of it than should
-have been found in a Calvinist’s Bible.
-
-“Ye’ll see nor hilt, nor hair, nor hoop, nor horn mair o’ him,” she
-added, with, we almost fear to surmise, a laugh.
-
-And Mrs Snoddy’s prophecy was of that kind--the safest of all--which
-comes after knowledge.
-
-“Then I will dee in peace,” said the relieved laird; “for I hae nae
-ither sin on my conscience.”
-
-“Nae sin, nae salvation,” added Dorothy.
-
-“A maist comfortable doctrine,” sighed the laird.
-
-And comfortable, surely, it must have been to him, for two days
-afterwards the good laird slipt away out of this bad world as lightly
-and easily as if he had felt the burden of his sins as imponderous as
-the flying dove does the white feathers on its back. Nor did many more
-days elapse before the mortal remains of the good man were deposited
-in the churchyard of Cramond, leaving the double widow with her
-contract of marriage and her tears for a second husband lying in the
-earth so near the first, deep in the bosom of the Forth. But, sooner
-or later, there comes comfort of some kind to these amiable creatures
-in distress, especially if they are possessed of those cabalistic
-things called marriage contracts. We do not say that that comfort comes
-always from the grave in the shape of a veritable ghost, but sure it
-is that if we could in any case fancy a spirit visiting the earth for
-any rational purpose, it would be where a comely widow was ready to
-receive it, and warm its cold hands, and wrap the winding-sheet well
-round it, and treat it kindly. All which we may leave for suggestion
-and meditation, but we demand conviction, and assent, as we proceed,
-to set forth that the very next evening after the funeral of Laird
-Tammas, the ghaist of David Dempster, despising all secret openings,
-and even giving up the privilege of keyholes, went straight into the
-house of Rubbledykes, and entered the room where Dorothy was sitting.
-Extraordinary enough, no doubt; but not even so much so as the fact we
-are about to relate--viz., that Mrs Dorothy was no more astonished at
-its appearance before her than she had been when she heard the laird
-say that he saw the face of that same spirit at the window; nor did she
-on this occasion have recourse to the Bible as an exorcist, by flapping
-the leaves of the same, to terrify it away, in the supposition that it
-was the devil in disguise. It is very true that she held up her hands,
-but then that was only a prelude to the arms being employed in clasping
-the appearance to her breast; an embrace which was responded to with
-a fervour little to be expected from one of these flimsy creatures.
-Nay, things waxed even more enigmatical and ridiculous, for the two
-actually kissed each other--a fact which ought to be treasured up as a
-psychological curiosity of some use, insomuch as it may diminish the
-fear we so irrationally feel at the expected visit of supernatural
-beings. But worse and more ridiculous still--
-
-“When had you anything to eat Davie? Ye’ll be hungry.”
-
-“No’ unlikely, Dorothy lass,” answered the wraith; “for I didna like
-the cauld fish, and there’s nae cooking apparatus in the Forth.”
-
-“Ye would maybe tak a whang o’ the round o’ beef we had at the laird’s
-funeral yesterday?”
-
-“The very thing, woman,” answered the ghaist; “and if ye have a bottle
-o’ brandy to wash it down, it will tak awa the cauld o’ the saut water.”
-
-“Twa, an ye like, lad,” responded the apparently delighted widow,
-as she ran away to set before the visitor the edible and drinkable
-comforts which had been declared so acceptable.
-
-And you may believe or reject the whisperings of our familiar just as
-you please, but we have all the justification of absolute veritability
-for the fact that this extraordinary guest, or ghaist, if you so
-please, sat down before the said round of beef, brandishing a knife in
-the one hand and a fork in the other, and looking so heartily purposed
-to attack the same, that you might have augured it had not had a chop
-since that forenoon when in the embodied state it went down to cool and
-wash itself in the sea at Granton. Nor need we be more squeamish than
-we have been in declaring at once that it did so much justice to the
-meat and the drink, that you might have thought it had been fed for
-months on Hecate’s short-commons in Hades. And then a text so ample and
-substantial could surely bear a running commentary.
-
-“It would have been o’ nae use, Dorothy. If ye hadna been as gude a
-prophetess as Deborah, I might hae been obliged to conceal myself in
-England lang enough.”
-
-“It didna need a Deborah, David,” answered she, “to see that nae human
-body could stand that cough mair than a month or two. Ye hadna lang to
-wait, man; and though ye had had langer, _there_, see, was your comfort
-at the end.”
-
-And Dorothy put into the ghaist’s hand the marriage contract--a worldly
-thing which seemed to vie with the junket of beef in its influence over
-mere spirit, insomuch as he perused the same by snatches between the
-bites and draughts, both processes going on almost simultaneously--the
-eye fixed on the paper, while a protruding lump in the cheek was in the
-act of being diminished.
-
-“A’ right, lass,” was at length the exclamation.
-
-“Ay; but ye maun be gude to me now, Davie,” said she; “for ye see it’s
-a’ in my ain power: Rubbledykes is mine, and I hae wrought for’t.”
-
-“And so hae I,” ejaculated the other. “You forget my banishment and
-difficulty of living, for I took scarcely any siller wi’ me; and,
-mairower, how am I to face the people o’ E’nbro’?”
-
-“And the gude Calvinists o’ the Tron?” added the wife.
-
-Notwithstanding which difficulties the visitor contrived to make a
-hearty meal; nor was he contented with the brandy taken during the
-time of eating, for with all their spiritual tenderness, there was a
-crave for toddy--a request which was complied with by the introduction
-of warm water and sugar. How often the tumbler was tumbled up to pour
-the last drops, which defied the silver toddy-ladle in the glass, we
-are not authorised to say; but we have authority for the assertion that
-any man of flesh and blood could not have perpetrated that number of
-tumblings without changing almost his nature--that is, being so far
-spiritualised as to be entitled to say, in the words of the old song by
-Pinkerton--
-
- “Death, begone--here’s none but souls.”
-
-And therefore the spiritual nature of David Dempster, in his new part,
-was not so wonderful after all. But the doubt recurs again, as we
-proceed to say that Mrs Dorothy Snoddy helped her visitor to bed, nay,
-she actually went very blithely into that same bed herself, where they
-both slumbered very comfortably till next morning.
-
-We may add that these same doubts were liable to be dispelled by
-another fact we have to relate. The visitor, it will be remembered, put
-the question to Dorothy, “How was he to meet the people of Edinburgh?”
-a question which implied a mortal presence, besides no prescience. We
-say this last deliberately, because in place of the fear of meeting
-being on his side, it was altogether on theirs. It happened that, two
-days after the occurrences we have described, an object bearing the
-figure of David Dempster was seen on the Cramond road by a carrier
-called Samuel Finlayson, who had had transactions with the dealer in
-corduroys--an occasion which had the inevitable effect of raising
-Samuel’s bonnet along with the standing hair, besides that of inducing
-him to whip his horse to force the animal on, just in the way of
-another animal of cognate species under similar circumstances. He, of
-course, took the story of a ghaist, all cut and dry, into the city.
-On the same day, Andrew Gilfillan saw the same figure on Corstorphine
-Hill, and flew past the seat marked “Rest and be thankful,” without
-even looking at it. He, too, carried the same tidings. George
-Plenderleith encountered the identical object in the village of
-Corstorphine busy eating Corstorphine cream--that is, cream mixed with
-oatmeal, (a finer kind of crowdy,) and he hastened to Edinburgh with a
-speed only to be accounted for by terror. He, too, told his tale; the
-effect of all which, added to and inflamed by other reports, was, that
-Edinburgh was stirred from the Castle gate to the Palace yett, by the
-conviction that David Dempster had returned from the kingdom of death
-to this world of life for some purpose which would most certainly come
-out; but, in due time, whether with or without a purpose, here it was
-proved that ghosts were no dream, and David Hume no philosopher. Many
-people sought the Cramond road, and hung about Rubbledykes to get their
-scepticism or dogmatism confirmed. The end of these things is pretty
-uniform--_res locuta est_; the people began to see where the truth lay,
-and the laughter came in due course, to revive the hearts that had been
-chilled by fear.
-
-We would be sorry if we were necessitated to end our story at the
-very nick of the triumph of vice. Happily, we have something more to
-say--nothing less, indeed, than that James Snoddy, the brother of
-the laird, raised a process--that is, instituted a suit before the
-Court of Session, to have his brother’s contract of marriage with
-Mrs Dorothy Dempster annulled and set aside, upon the grounds of
-deception, circumvention, and _prava causa_; nor had he any trouble in
-getting a decree, for David and his wife made no appearance, neither
-could they make any appearance in Edinburgh. Their only resource was
-to take advantage of that kind of bail called “leg;” an easy affair,
-insomuch as there is no bond required for appearance anywhere. It was
-at the time supposed that they had gone to America, that asylum of
-unfortunates, where one-half of the people cut the throats of the other
-in the name of liberty.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Gorthley Twins.
-
-
-It was the custom at one time in Edinburgh for the proprietors of large
-self-contained houses to give them the names of the properties they
-had in the country--hence our Panmure House, Tweeddale Court, and so
-forth--and among them there was Gorthley House, of which no vestige now
-remains; nay, we are by no means sure where it was situated, beyond
-the fact that it was somewhere in the Canongate, but gone as it is
-according to the law of change, its name will always be associated
-with the law-plea Bruce _versus_ Bruce, which contained the germ of
-the little romance we are now to relate in our way. And to begin in
-order, we take the state of matters at the time when the plea began.
-John Bruce of Gorthley had died, and left a widow and three daughters,
-two of whom were twins, and the third was the youngest. The names of
-the twins were Sarah and Martha, who at this time were two fine girls
-verging upon majority, and as like each other as two white peas; and
-surely if we might expect, in this world of strife and contention,
-that there should be found real love and friendship anywhere, it might
-be in the case of two sisters who had lain so close together for nine
-months, and who had drunk their milk at the same kindly fountain of a
-doating mother’s breast. But so full is the moral atmosphere of our
-fallen world of the spores of hatred, that you may as well try to keep
-a cheese from the seeds of green mould as the human heart from the
-germs of ill-will. And so it was that these two young ladies hated each
-other very heartily, for a reason which we will by and by reveal, to
-the astonishment of the reader; and this hatred was the counterpart of
-a contention that had embittered the lives of the father and mother,
-even up to the time of the former’s death.
-
-All which will be better explained by following the course of events
-after the death of Mr Bruce, beginning with a visit on the part of Lady
-Gorthley--as she was called according to the custom of the time, when
-titles were held in such regard that the common people even forged
-them for the great--along with her favourite daughter, Martha, to the
-office of Mr James Pollock, the agent for the family. That her ladyship
-was bent upon some enterprise of considerable moment might have been
-guessed from the look of her face, which had that mysterious air about
-it belonging to secrecy, nor less from that of the daughter; and no
-one could have doubted that, whatever they were bent upon, the other
-twin, Sarah, was not to be let up to the secret. Perhaps the time of
-the visit to the writer was opportune, insomuch as Sarah had gone, as
-she had said, with her cousin, George Walkinshaw, advocate, to take a
-stroll by the back of St Leonard’s as far as “the Cat Nick,” and come
-home by the Hunter’s Bog; which couple, we may also say, had their
-secret too, in addition to their love affair, if that secret was not
-connected with the very same subject we have referred to as that which
-divided the family. Be all that as it might, we are going right along
-with the facts of the plea when we set forth that in a very short time
-Lady Gorthley and Martha were seated each on a chair in the writing
-office of the said agent, Mr Pollock, and the very first words that
-came out of her ladyship’s mouth were these--
-
-“Has Sarah or her cousin called upon you since the death of Gorthley?”
-by which she meant, according to the custom of the time, her own
-husband.
-
-“They are even at this moment in the other room, madam,” said he, with
-a lawyer’s smile on his face.
-
-“Indeed,” said her ladyship, with an expression of both surprise and
-anger. “Why, she told me an hour ago that she was going to take a walk
-by the ‘Cat Nick.’”
-
-“And so she has,” added the writer, still smiling, “for my door may not
-be inappropriately so called in the circumstances?”
-
-“Only, I presume,” said the lady, “I am not, I hope, to be included
-among the cats. I will wait until you have learned what the impertinent
-girl has got to say, and then you will have time to hear me and Martha.”
-
-“I already know that,” said he; “but, as I believe our conversation is
-about finished, I will despatch them in a few seconds, and then return
-to hear your ladyship’s commands.”
-
-“But you will say nothing of our being here.”
-
-“The never a word, madam,” said he, adding to himself as he went away,
-“I don’t want a battle of the cats in my office at least; they do best
-when they put the cheese into the hands of the ----,” and he did not
-add the word monkey, insomuch as it looked personal.
-
-“There, you see, Martha, the gipsy is determined to stand by her
-rights,” was the remark of her ladyship after Mr Pollock had left the
-room.
-
-“But we’ll beat her off, mother,” rejoined Martha, with a spirit which
-Mr Pollock or any other lawyer might have admired; “and,” continued
-Martha, with a smile, “we will say nothing about the _strawberry_.”
-
-“Nothing, dear,” rejoined the mother; “that strawberry is worth all the
-lands of Gorthley.”
-
-Of which enigmatical strawberry they said no more; but that is no
-reason why we should not say something of it when the proper time
-comes, of which, by the rules of our art, we are the best judges.
-Meanwhile Mr Pollock, having despatched the other feline, returned.
-
-“And now, madam,” said he, as he took his seat, “I am ready to hear
-you.”
-
-“You know, Mr Pollock,” resumed her ladyship, “that the entail of
-Gorthley provides that the property shall go to the eldest heir female
-in the event of there being no heir male.”
-
-“We all know that, madam,” said the writer; “and if we had any doubt of
-it a certain paper in that green box there would very soon clear up our
-vision. But the question is, which of the two young ladies, Sarah or
-Martha, first saw the light of day?”
-
-“No question at all,” rejoined the lady. “Martha was the first-born.”
-
-“Yes, madam, I know, and knew before, that that is your opinion; but
-you are perhaps not aware that Gorthley himself told me, some time
-before he died, that Sarah was the first-born; and so we have here, so
-far as the testimony goes, one witness against another.”
-
-“And what knew he about it?” retorted she, sharply. “He was not present
-at the birth to see; while I fancy you won’t deny I was.”
-
-Whereupon Mr Pollock, getting into the mistake that her ladyship was
-drolling, and being a droll himself, said, laughing, “Why, madam, no
-man could deny the necessity of your being present any more than in the
-case of Girzel Jamphrey, who said to the people who were pressing on to
-see her burnt as a witch on the sands at Dundee, ‘You needna be in sic
-a hurry; there will be nae sport till I come.’”
-
-Whereat Lady Gorthley tightened the strings she had allowed to get
-loose.
-
-“It’s not a matter to joke about, sir,” she said. “Though I am not a
-witch, I say, and will maintain, that I am a better witness to the fact
-of which of the twins was born first than Gorthley could possibly be.”
-
-“Still, madam,” continued the writer, “I fear it is only a comparison
-between the value of two ciphers; the one may look bigger than the
-other, but each is equal to nothing. It is true that we men don’t
-know much of these things, yet--I beg pardon, the subject is a little
-delicate--we know that when a lady bears twins she doesn’t take the
-first and mark it before she bears the second; and then if she doesn’t
-mark it in the very nick of time, it’s of no use, because the two
-babies get mixed in the bath, as an Irishman would say, and their being
-so like as one strawberry to another, no one can say that the one is
-not the other, or the other not the one.”
-
-At which mention of the word strawberry, Lady Gorthley looked to
-Martha, and Martha looked to her, and they seemed puzzled.
-
-“But however all that may be,” continued the lady, “what can you say to
-the evidence of Peggy Macintosh, the nurse, who will swear that Martha
-came first into the world?”
-
-“I cannot answer that question,” said he, with the caution of his
-profession, “until I see Mrs Macintosh and examine her. There is also
-Jean Gilchrist, one of the servants, who was present, I have her to
-examine also, and then we will see where the truth lies. Oh! but I
-forgot there is Mrs Glennie, the midwife, the woman whose word will go
-farthest, because she had a better _causa scientiæ_.”
-
-“I know nothing about Latin,” rejoined her ladyship angrily; “but as
-for Mrs Glennie, she’s dead years ago.”
-
-“Ah, indeed,” said Mr Pollock, “if that is true we will have only the
-nurse and the servant for witnesses, and if they oppose each other,
-the one for Sarah and the other for Martha, and as it is true that
-you always treated Martha as the eldest, and Gorthley always insisted
-on Sarah as being the first-born, we will have an undecidable case, a
-thing that never occurred in Scotland before, perhaps not in the world,
-for you know Solomon would not allow any impossibility in deciding the
-case of the baby with the two mothers. But, madam, allow me to say,
-that as your husband, Mr Bruce, left directions that I, as agent for
-the family, should get Sarah served heir, and as you insist upon that
-being done for Martha, it will be necessary that you employ a man of
-business of your own, so that we may fight the battle fair out.”
-
-“Well,” said the lady with an expression of bitterness in her face
-not much in harmony with her words, “since Gorthley has left the
-continuance of the strife as a legacy to his widow and children, I
-shall go to Mr Bayne as my agent, and authorise him to protect the
-rights of Martha, and fight it to the bitter end--bitter, I mean, for
-Sarah Bruce, who will never be Lady Gorthley.”
-
-And with these words she left, accompanied by Martha, directing their
-steps to the office of Mr Bayne, who, as her ladyship’s private agent,
-knew very well of this most strange contention which had so long been
-maintained in Gorthley House. Nor, probably, was he displeased at it,
-any more than Mr Pollock had been. Gorthley estate was a large cheese,
-the cats were fierce, and there was plenty for even two monkeys, so he
-listened attentively to her ladyship’s statement that the nurse, Mrs
-Macintosh, would swear in favour of Martha, but she said never a word
-about Jean Gilchrist.
-
-“The nurse’s evidence will go a great way, madam,” said he, “seeing the
-midwife is dead; but it will be satisfactory if Mrs Macintosh could
-condescend upon some mark which she noticed immediately at the time of
-the birth, for the two young ladies are really so like each other now
-I often confound them, nay, they confound me so that we cannot very
-well imagine how they could be distinguished when brought together soon
-after birth.”
-
-“Look here, Mr Bayne,” said the lady in a whispering way, as if she
-were to reveal something wonderously mysterious, “look here, sir,”--
-
-And taking off Martha’s cloak and turning up the kerchief that covered
-her neck and the top of her shoulders, she said, “Do you see that?”
-
-The writer complied by a pretty narrow inspection of a very pretty neck
-of (a strawberry being in question) the appropriate colour of cream.
-
-“A very decided mark of a strawberry,” said he; “and, really if it were
-a proof that Martha has the right to succeed to Gorthley, it might be
-said to be the most beautiful beauty spot that a young lady could
-bear. How comes that mark to be there?”
-
-“Why,” replied the lady, “Gorthley threw a strawberry at me when I was
-in the way, you know, and thus made a mother’s mark, as they call it,
-just as if he had intended to point out the true heir; and you know the
-Scotch say that these marks are lucky.”
-
-“But you forget, madam,” replied the man of the law, who did not
-believe in special providences, except in special cases, when he
-received payment of his accounts. “You forget that Gorthley was against
-Martha, so that if he had had any intention in the matter, it must
-rather have been to make a blot; besides, our judges might probably say
-that the mark, for aught they knew, was intended to show that Martha
-was not the heir; in short, unless we can identify the mark as having
-been seen on the first-born, I fear, though it is very pretty, it will
-do us no good.”
-
-“But Mrs Macintosh can do that,” replied the lady.
-
-“Ah! you have hit the mark now,” said he; “and I will see Mrs
-Macintosh, and any other witnesses who can speak to the point.”
-
-And so having, after some more conversation, despatched his two
-clients, Mr Bayne proceeded that same evening to the residence of Mrs
-Peggy Macintosh, whom he found very busy spinning, little prepared for
-a visit from a man of the law, with a powdered wig on his head, and a
-gold-headed cane in his hand,--an apparition which even the wheel could
-not resist, for it stopt its birr instantly, as if through fear.
-
-“Mrs Macintosh,” said Mr Bayne, as he took a seat alongside of Peggy,
-“do you remember having been present at the birth of Mrs Bruce’s twins?”
-
-“Indeed, sir, and I was,” answered she, “and a gey birth it was.”
-
-“And could you tell which was which when the infants were born?”
-
-“Weel, sir,” answered Peggy, “if you will tell me which is the which
-you mean, I’ll try to satisfy ye if I can?”
-
-“Why, I mean, which was Sarah and which Martha?” continued the writer.
-
-“How could I tell ye that, sir,” answered Peggy, with a look of true
-Scotch complacency, “when the bairns werena christened?”
-
-The writer, acute as he was, was a little put out, but he rallied.
-
-“Why, Peggy, you surely understand what I mean; did you not know the
-child which was afterwards called Sarah from that which was afterwards
-called Martha?”
-
-“I would have liked to have seen you try that, sir,” was again the
-answer. “How the deil--I beg pardon, sir--was I to ken what they were
-to be ca’ed when their names werena even fixed by the father and mother
-themselves?”
-
-“I see you don’t understand me, Mrs Macintosh,” continued Mr Bayne, who
-had got a Scotch witness on his line.
-
-“I think it’s you that doesna understand me,” retorted Peggy.
-
-“Look here,” continued Mr Bayne, smiling, “you know Sarah Bruce and
-Martha Bruce?”
-
-“Ay, when they’re thegither,” replied Peggy, “and they tell me their
-names; but just put them an ell or twa asinder, and I’ll defy the
-horned Clootie himsel to say which is which.”
-
-“Worse and worse,” muttered the writer. “Look you, Peggy, was there no
-mark on either of the children by which you could know it?”
-
-“Ay was there,” replied the woman; “but we’re just where we were; for,
-whether the strawberry was upon the ane or the ither, or the ither or
-the ane, is just what I want you, since you’re a man o’ the law, and
-weel skilled in kittle points, to tell me.”
-
-“Worse even yet,” muttered the discomfited precognoscer.
-
-“But I can mak the thing as plain as the Shorter Catechism,” continued
-she, with a sharp look, which revived the sinking hopes of Mr Bayne.
-“Mrs Glennie that night was in a terrible fluster, for she began
-to see that there was likely to be mair bairns than she bargained
-for--twins, if no may be trins; so Jean Gilchrist was brought up to
-help in addition to mysel. Then the first are cam’ in a hurry, the
-mair by token it kenned naething o’ the warld it was coming into, and
-Mrs Glennie pushed it into my hands. ‘There will be anither, Peggy,’
-said she, ‘and look gleg;’ but there was only flannel for ane; and I
-gave the wean to Jean to wash, while I ran to get happins. I was back
-in less than five minutes; and, just as I was entering, ‘Here’s the
-other ane,’ said Mrs Glennie. I took it frae her, and gave it to Jean,
-and took frae her the ane she had washed, in order to wrap it, and so
-I did; but before I was dune I saw Jean wasna doing the thing as she
-ought; so I gave her the ane I had, and I took hers to wash it better;
-but before it was dune Mrs Glennie cried to me to come to help her with
-the lady; so I put my bairn into Jean’s arms alang side o’ the ither;
-and when I had finished with the lady I took the last ane frae Jean
-again; but before I had completed the dressing o’t Jean cried out,
-‘This bairn is deein’.’ ‘You’re a fule,’ said I, ‘give it to me;’ and
-so she did. Then I ran and got some cordial, and poured it down the
-throat o’ the creature. By this time Jean had hers upon the settee, and
-I laid mine alang side o’t; but in a little time the mither was crying
-to see the weans; and Mrs Glennie took the ane, and I took the ither,
-and showed her them. Then Mrs Glennie took mine away to lay it down on
-the settee again; and I took hers and laid it down by the side o’ its
-sister. That’s how it was, sir, and sure I am naething can be plainer.”
-
-“But what about the strawberry?” said Mr Bayne.
-
-“Nane o’ us saw that till the bairns began to be mixed,” was the
-answer; “and then they were changed, and changed again sae aften that
-my head ran round, and I lost a’ count.”
-
-“But haven’t you said to Lady Gorthley that the mark was on the
-first-born?” asked Mr Bayne.
-
-“Indeed, and I did that same,” was the ready answer. “My lady gave me
-five gowden guineas to tell her; and, as I couldna be sure, I thought I
-couldna do better than to make safe and sure wark o’t; so I took five
-shillings out o’ the five guineas and gave it to the Carlin o’ the
-Cowgate, a wise woman, frae the very native place o’ thae far-seeing
-creatures, Auldearn, Auld Eppie, as they ca’ her, (they were all
-Eppies,) and she settled the thing in the trice o’ a cantrup; so you
-see the fact is sure that the strawberry belanged to the first-born.”
-
-“And did you tell Lady Gorthley you went to Eppie?” inquired the
-discomfited writer.
-
-“Gude faith na, she might hae asked back the five guineas,” answered
-Peggy; “and besides, if she got the truth, it was a’ ane to her, ye
-ken, where it cam’ frae; and you’ll be discreet and say naething.”
-
-“Did you ask from the old woman the name of her who bore the mark?”
-rejoined Mr Bayne.
-
-“Ay, but she said she didna like to spier that at the auld ane--Nick,
-ye ken--because he might have got angry and told her a lee, and that
-might hae brought me into a scrape wi’ her ladyship, who knew hersel
-which o’ her daughters bore the mark.”
-
-“Very prudent,” muttered again the writer, as he rose, “this is a most
-satisfactory witness.”
-
-And carrying this satisfaction along with him, he proceeded to the
-small garret occupied by Jean Gilchrist, the direction to which he had
-got from Mrs Macintosh. Believing as he did the statement made to him
-by the latter, he had very little hope of getting anything satisfactory
-out of his present witness, and wishing to keep her more to the point
-than he had been able to effect in the prior case, he assumed her
-presence at the birth, and came straight out with the question,
-whether she knew if there had been noticed on one of the children the
-mark of the strawberry.
-
-“The strawberry?” said she, “ay, wi’ a’ wondered at that, but then it’s
-no uncommon things in weans to be marked in that way, so we sune got
-ower’t.”
-
-“And was this mark on the child which was first born?” inquired he.
-
-“I’ll tell you that, sir,” replied she, “if ye’ll tell me first which
-o’ the twa cam’ first into the world.”
-
-Whereby Mr Bayne found himself where he was, in the hands of a Scotch
-metaphysician, for, was there not here an example of the _à priori_
-argument, to use the old jargon, wherein the cause is assumed to
-prove the effect, and the effect is then brought forward to prove the
-cause--a trick of wisdom we are yet in the nineteenth century playing
-every day?
-
-“That is just what I want to know, Jean,” said he.
-
-“And it’s just what I want to ken, too,” rejoined Jean, “for to tell
-you God’s truth, sir,” she continued in a lower tone, “I hae something
-on my conscience, and yet it’s no muckle either.”
-
-“And what is that?” said he, expecting to get at something on which he
-could rely, whatever it might be.
-
-“Just this,” answered Jean. “Years agane, Gorthley came to me, and
-said, ‘Jean Gilchrist, here is something for you,’ and I took it--it
-was a purse o’ gowd,--and then he said, ‘I would die happy, Jean, if I
-could think that Martha Bruce, who bears the mark, was the second born
-of my daughters;’ and, looking at the purse, said I, ‘Weel, sir, if
-that will mak ye happy, ye may be happy, for it was even so.’ Then said
-he, ‘Will you stand to that, Jean?’ And I said, ‘Ay, will I, through
-thick and thin;’ and when he went away, I began to consider if I had
-dune wrang, but I couldna see it, for doesna the Bible say, that man
-and wife are ane flesh? and if that be true, how could their children
-be separate flesh? Weel then, whichever o’ the twa, the first or the
-second born, carried the mark, they baith being ane flesh, behoved to
-bear it, and so, if the ane bore it the other bore it, and if the other
-bore it the ane bore it. Besides, wha doesna ken that twins are just ae
-bairn cut in twa? They’re aye less than the single bairns, and isna a
-double-yokit egg just twa eggs joined thegither into ane.”
-
-A kind of logic common at the time, and which, indeed, touched upon
-the most obscure question of metaphysics, and not very satisfactory to
-Mr Bayne, who, however, knew the subtle character of the Scotch mind
-too well to try a fall with so acute a dialectician. So, altogether
-disappointed with his precognition he left and came away, meeting in
-the passage Mr Pollock, who had been with Mrs Macintosh, and was now
-on his way to Jean Gilchrist. They were very intimate, and did not
-hesitate to compare notes, the result of which was that the case was to
-realise once more the truth of the toast generally drunk by Edinburgh
-practitioners at the end of the session, “The glorious uncertainty;”
-and if Mr Pollock thought so before he examined Jean Gilchrist, his
-opinion must have been pretty well confirmed by what she said. The
-case, in short, was not one in which there is conflicting evidence,
-and where the judges can make out the weight by a hair of prejudice;
-it was a case in which there was no evidence at all as to which of the
-girls was the heir; but, then, it was just on account of this equipoise
-that the two claimants, Martha, helped by her mother on the one side,
-and Sarah, supported by her lover, Walkinshaw, on the other, waxed the
-more bitter; and the contention which had so long raged in Gorthley
-House became hotter and hotter. Nor need we fancy that the writers
-would try to get the right compromised in some way, where they had so
-good a chance of making a money certainty out of a moral uncertainty;
-and so the case went into court under two competing briefs, that is
-just two claims by the daughters, each insisting to be served heir.
-The witnesses, whose precognitions we have given, were examined; and
-a great number of servants who had been in the family, who swore that
-Gorthley himself always called Sarah Miss Bruce, and Mrs Bruce always
-called Martha by that dignified title, so that the servants tried to
-please both master and mistress by calling the one daughter or the
-other miss, just according to the chance of being overheard by the
-heads of the house. When before the sheriff, and when the claims were
-equally suspended, a strange plea was set up by Sarah’s counsel, Mr
-Fotheringham, to the effect that, taking the question of priority of
-birth to be doubtful, the doubt could be resolved by a kind of _nobile
-officium_ on the part of the father as the head of the house, and that
-as Gorthley had declared for Sarah this should be held as sufficient;
-but Mr Maitland answered this by saying that the question being one of
-fact, and that fact coming more within the presumed knowledge of the
-mother, ought to be settled by the voice of the mother, who declared
-for Martha; and here again the argument being nearly equal, the judge
-on the inquest was nonplussed. And thus it came to pass that the old
-irony of the ancients, directed against a sow coming in place of
-Minerva as a judge of some very fine matter of truth, turned out to be
-in this case no irony at all, for the sow was here as good a judge
-as Minerva. The scales were so nearly balanced that the mere breath
-which conveyed the doubt might disperse the doubt by moving one of
-the scales--a very fine irony in itself, in so much as all truth may
-be resolved, in the far end, into the mere breath of man’s opinion.
-At length the sheriff gave the cast of the scale to the side of the
-mother, as the “_domestic witness_.”
-
-But Sarah was, of course, dissatisfied; or, rather, Fotheringham, who
-advised her to take the case before the Fifteen, by what is called an
-Advocation, and so to be sure these lords got a burden thrown upon
-them which cost them no little trouble. They got the case argued and
-argued, and were in the end so mystified, that if they could have
-decided that the question was undecidable, they would have been very
-glad to have hung it up among the eternal dubieties as an everlasting
-proof of “the glorious uncertainty;” but they could not agree even to
-do that, for the entail could not be compromised or set aside, and so
-they behoved to decide one way or another. Meanwhile, the case having
-made a noise, a great number of people were collected in court on the
-day when the judgment was to be finally given. And given it was so far,
-for seven judges were for Sarah, and seven for Martha, so it came to
-the president, who said, “I have read of a case somewhere in which
-the judges drew cuts, and decided by the Goddess Chance in place of
-justice; and, indeed, if the latter is blind, as they say she is, we
-may take the one as well as the other as the umpire of the right or
-the wrong. But there is one consideration which moves me in this case,
-and that is, that as it is the wife’s duty to bear the children of the
-family, so it is her privilege to know more about that interesting
-affair than the husband, who is, as I understand, never present at the
-mysteries of Lucina, and, therefore, I would be inclined to declare
-that Martha was the first-born.”
-
-“It’s a lee, my lord,” cried a shrill screaming voice from the court.
-Whereat the judges directed their eyes with much amazement to the place
-whence the scream came.
-
-“And who are you,” said the president, “who dare to speak in a court of
-justice?”
-
-“I deny it’s a court o’ justice,” cried the voice again. “My name is
-Janet Glennie, and it was me that had the first handlin’ o’ the bairns,
-and I tell your lordship to your face, that you’re clean wrang, and ken
-nae mair about the case than Jenkins did about the colour o’ the great
-grandmother o’ his hen. I tell ye it was Sarah wha came first, and
-Martha wi’ her strawberry came second, for I saw the mark wi’ my ain
-een.”
-
-A speech followed by the inevitable laugh of a curious audience, and
-the better received that the people had always a satirical feeling
-against the fifteen wise wigs. Nor was this late testimony too late:
-Mrs Glennie was subsequently sworn, and the judgment went for Sarah. It
-turned out that Mrs Glennie had been absent for a time from Scotland,
-and, having, upon visiting Edinburgh, heard of the famous trial, made
-it a point to be present. Nay, there was a little retribution in the
-affair, for Lady Gorthley knew she was alive, and had reported her
-death to serve her own ends.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-
-
-The Story of the Chalk Line.
-
-
-For the truth of the story I am now to relate I have the word of a
-godly minister of the Church of Scotland, whose father had been in the
-house in Burnet’s Close, and had seen the two females and examined “the
-chalk line” in the middle of the floor. I do not say this to conciliate
-your belief; for perhaps if this were my object, I should be nearer
-the attainment of it by asserting, as Mr Thackeray used to do when he
-wanted his readers to believe him, that there is not a word of truth
-in the whole affair. There is a certain species of fish in the Ganges
-which is never happy but when it is pushing up against the stream; and
-people, as civilisation goes on, find themselves so often cheated, that
-they go by contraries, just as the old sorcerers divined by reading
-backwards. But surely in this age of subtleties it is a pleasant thing
-to think that you are so much the object of an author’s care as that
-he would not only save you from thinking, but think for you; and so I
-proceed to tell you of the personages in Burnet’s Close, leading from
-the High Street to the Cowgate.
-
-In a room of the second flat of the third tall tenement on your left
-hand as you descend lived Martha and Mary Jopp. They were, so far as I
-have been able to discover, the daughters of a writer of the name of
-Peter Jopp. You cannot be wrong in supposing that they had been once
-young, though, in regard to the aged, this is not always conceded by
-those who are buoyant with the spirit of youth. Yes, these aged maidens
-had not only been once young, they had been very fair and very comely.
-They had passed through the spring and summer flowers without treading
-upon the speckled serpent of the same colour. They had heard the song
-of love where there was no risk of the deceptions of the siren. They
-had been tempted; but they had resisted the temptation of some who
-could well have returned their affection. Nor was this the result of
-any want of natural sensibility; if it was not that they had too much
-of that quality, which, if it is the source of pleasure, is also that
-of pain--perhaps more of the latter than the former, though we dare not
-say so in this our time of angelic perfection.
-
-To be a little more particular upon a peculiarity of our two ladies,
-which enters as rather a “loud colour” in the web of our story, there
-was a sufficient reason for their celibacy. They had a mother who, as
-the saying goes, was “a woman of price”--such a one as Solomon excepts
-from so many, that I am afraid to mention the number. She was a good
-Calvinist, without insisting too much for election and predestination.
-She was affectionate, without the weakness which so often belongs to
-doating mothers; and she possessed, along with the charm of universal
-kindness, a strength of mind which demanded respect without diminishing
-love. No wonder that her daughters loved her even to that extent that
-neither of the two could think of leaving her so long as she lived.
-An inclination this, or rather a resolution, which had been confirmed
-in them by certain experiences they had had of what their mother had
-suffered from having been deprived by death of an elder daughter, and
-by marriage of a younger; the latter of whom had gone with her husband,
-a Mr Darling, to Calcutta, under the patronage of Major Scott, the
-friend of Warren Hastings.
-
-But there was another reason which kept the sisters from marrying--one
-which will, I suspect, be very slow to be believed; and that was,
-their love for each other. But I am resolute in urging it, because,
-in the first place, it is not absolutely against the experience of
-mankind; and, secondly, because, while it forms a part of the story as
-narrated to me, it is necessary as one of the two sides of a contrast,
-without which I could not answer for a certain effect in my picture.
-Certain, at least, it was that more than one external revolving body
-in the shape of lovers came within the sphere of their attraction for
-each other, and could produce no deflection in the lines of their
-mutual attachment. It was said that one of them had been jilted. I do
-not know; but the circumstance would explain a fact more certain that
-the sisters, in their then lively humour of young blood, used to sing
-a love-defiance song, which might have been both sport and earnest.
-My informant gave me the words. It is a kind of rough mosaic, with
-borrowed verses, yet worth recording:--
-
- A farmer’s daughter fair am I,
- As blithe as May-day morning,
- And when my lover passes by,
- I laugh at him wi’ scorning.
- Ha! ha! ha! fal lal la!
- Ha! ha! fal lal laldy!
-
- There came a cock to our father’s flock,
- And he wore a double kaim, O;
- He flapt his wings, and fain would craw,
- But craw he could craw nane, O.
-
- A braw young man came courting me,
- And swore his wife he’d make me;
- But when he knew my pounds were few,
- The rogue he did forsake me.
-
- Gae whistle on your thumb, young man,
- You left me wae and weary;
- But, now I’ve got my heart again,
- Gude faith, I’ll keep it cheery.
-
- There’s world’s room for you to pass,
- And room enough for Nan, O;
- The deil may tak her on his back
- Who dies for faithless man, O.
-
- There’s still as good fish in the sea
- As ever yet were taken;
- I’ll spread my net and catch again,
- Though I have been forsaken.
- Ha! ha! ha! &c.
-
-A better medicine, I suspect, than an action of damages. But to
-continue. The sisters read the same books, took the same walks, wrought
-at the same work as steadfastly and lovingly as they worshipped the
-same mother, and revered the memory of the same father--a remark this
-last which helps us on to a point of our story; for the father had been
-dead for some years, leaving the mother a competent annuity, besides a
-residue, which would afford at least so much to the daughters as would
-tocher them to a kind of independence, though not to a husband with
-much hope of being benefited in a money point of view by marriage. But
-the time came--as what time does not come, even to those who think in
-the heyday of their happiness it will never come--when there would be
-a change, when the charm of this threefold relation should cease.
-The mother died, and with her the annuity; and the attraction she had
-exercised over the daughters had just drawn them so far past the point
-of the shaking of the blossoms of youth and beauty and hope, that their
-affection for each other stood now no chance of being broken by even
-one of those moral comets that burn up more incombustible bodies than
-old spinsters with very small competences.
-
-And so, with bleared eyes of uncontrollable grief, and no hope, and
-a trifle of twenty pounds a-year each to be paid them by Mr David
-Ross, writer, their father’s agent, our two spinsters took up their
-solitary residence in the foresaid room in the second flat of the big
-tenement in Burnet’s Close to which I have alluded. Even at the first
-moment of their retreat they seem to have shaken off with the blossoms,
-which, in the human plant no less than in the vegetable one, alone
-contain the beauties and sweets of life--the stem being, alas, only
-at best the custodier of an acid--much of their interest in the busy,
-gossipping, scandalising, hating, and loving Edinburgh; but so far this
-resistance to the charms of the outer world only served to make them
-live even more and more to each other. And then, had they not the sweet
-though melancholy solace of that Calvinistic tenet which imparted such
-mildness and equanimity to the face of their beloved mother--even that
-mysterious scroll which contains the ordination and predestination of
-all things which shall ever come to pass? Yes; but even this solace was
-modified by the regret that the portrait of that mother, painted by
-no unskilful hand--a pupil of George Jameson’s--was not, as it ought
-to have been, in that room hanging over the mantelpiece; the more by
-reason that that picture had been surreptitiously taken away by their
-sister Margaret when she sailed with her husband, Mr Darling, to India.
-And would they not have it back? Mr Ross might tell them when he was
-there on a certain evening.
-
-“You have as good a right to it,” said the man of the law, “as your
-sister; for I believe it was never given to her by your mother.”
-
-“No more it ever was,” said Martha; “for did not our mother write
-herself for it, but it never came; and she was to have got herself
-painted again, but death came at the predestinated hour, and took away
-her life, and with it all our happiness in this world.”
-
-“Not all your happiness, Miss Martha,” rejoined the agent; “for have
-you not your mutual affection left?--ay, and even your love for her who
-is only removed to a distance--even among blessed spirits?--from whence
-she is at this moment looking down upon you to bless that love which
-you bear to each other, and which, I trust, will never decay.”
-
-“I hope not,” said Mary, calmly; “but I remember how, when the evil
-spirit took hold of us, and made us fretful and discontented with each
-other, she calmed our rebellious spirits by a look so justly reproving,
-and yet so mild and heavenly-like, that for very love of her we would
-dote on each other the more. And now I think if we had that picture,
-with the same eye as if still fixed on us, we would be secured against
-all fretfulness; for O sir, we are all weak and wilful. Will you write
-for it, Mr Ross? It would hang so well up there over the fire, where,
-you see, there is an old nail, which seems to have been left by the
-former tenant for the very purpose.”
-
-“I will,” replied Mr Ross; “but I may as well tell you I have little
-chance of success, for Margaret, I suspect, would nearly as soon
-part with her life. Nor do I wonder at it; for the countenance of
-your mother as there represented seems so far above that of ordinary
-mortals, both in beauty and benignity, that methinks,”--and here Mr
-Ross smiled in his own grave way,--“if I ever felt inclined to put down
-six-and-eightpence against a client in place of three-and-fourpence,
-that look of hers would bring back my sense of honesty. You know I have
-Mrs Ross over the mantelpiece of my business room; and though she
-never approached your mother in that peculiar expression, which your
-father used to say to me, in a half-jocular way, humanised him into
-that wonderful being, a conscientious writer, yet I have been benefited
-in the same way by the mild light of my Agnes’s eyes.”
-
-And Mr Ross stopped, in consequence of feeling a small tendency to a
-thickening in the throat, which he seldom felt except when he had a
-cold.
-
-“And you will write Margaret, then?” resumed Martha.
-
-“That I will,” said he; “but I do not say may Heaven bless my effort,
-because you know Heaven has made up its mind on that and all other
-subjects long ago.”
-
-“Even from the foundations of the earth,” sighed Mary.
-
-“Even so,” rejoined Mr Ross as he departed, leaving the sisters to
-their small supper of a Newhaven haddock, each half of which was
-sweetened to the receiver by the consciousness that the other was being
-partaken of by her sister. And thereafter, having said their prayers,
-they retired to the same bed, to fall asleep in each other’s arms,
-without a regret that said arms were not a little more sinewy, or that
-their faces did not wear beards, and to dream of their mother.
-
-And it would have been well if affairs in Burnet’s Close had continued
-to go on as smoothly as we have here indicated. Nor did there seem any
-reason why they should not. The sisters had a sufficiency to live on;
-they had no evil passions to disturb the equanimity of their thoughts;
-they were religious, and resigned to the predestinated; they were among
-“the elect,” that is, orthodoxically, they elected to think so, which
-is the same thing. They had their house in order, and could afford to
-have Peggy Fergusson to clean out the room occasionally, and to go the
-few messages that their few wants required. But Time is a sower as well
-as a reaper; and he casts about with an equally ready hand the seeds
-of opinions and imaginations, the germs of feelings and the spores of
-mildewed hopes: some for the young, some for the old, but all inferring
-change from what was yesterday to what is to-day; from what is to-day
-to what will be to-morrow. As the days passed into years, they appeared
-to get shorter and shorter--a process with all of us, which no theory
-can explain, if it is not against all theory; for if time is generated
-by ideas, it should appear to go more slowly the more slowly those
-ideas arise and pass, and yet the practical effect of the working is
-the very reverse. But whatever were the changes that were taking place
-in the habits and feelings of the two sisters, they were altogether
-unconscious of them. The indisposition to go out and mix with their
-friends was gradually increasing, as they felt, without being aware of
-the feeling, that they had less and less in common with the ways of the
-world; and the seldomer they went out, the seldomer their friends came
-to see them, nor when they did come, did they receive any encouragement
-to repeat the visit.
-
-In all this I do not consider that I am describing human nature in the
-aspect in which we generally see it; for we more often find in those
-who are advancing into age a felt necessity for enlivenment, were it
-for nothing else than to relieve them from solitary musings and the
-perilous stuff of old memories; but here, as it will by and by be seen,
-I have not to do with ordinary human nature. These sisters were fated
-to be strange, and to do strange things. The indisposition to go out
-degenerated in the course of some years into a love of total seclusion.
-They never passed the threshold of their room; and as time went on,
-their friends gradually renounced their efforts to get either of them
-to change a purpose to which they seemed to have attained by the
-sympathy of two natures exactly similar. They probably knew nothing of
-the words of the poet, nor would they have cared for them:--
-
- “The world careth not a whit
- For him who careth not for it:
- One only duty and one right,
- That he be buried out of sight.”
-
-But amidst this strange asceticism the one still remained to the other
-as a dear, loving, and beloved sister; and if all the world should be
-nothing to them, they would still be all the world to each other. The
-seclusion had lasted five years since the death of the mother, and
-still no decay of their mutual attachment could be observed.
-
-It is here that commences the wonderful part of my story,--so
-wonderful, indeed, that if I had not had at second-hand the testimony
-of an eye-witness, confirmed by the traditions of the Close, I could
-scarcely have ventured the recital I here offer; not that I consider
-the facts as unnatural, but that the causes which change love into
-hatred, and superinduce the latter often in a direct ratio to the
-former, lie so deep, and are altogether so mysterious, that we cannot
-understand the meaning of their being there, and far less how they
-came to be there. Some strange and unaccountable change came over
-these hitherto loving sisters, not only at the same time, but without
-its having ever been ascertained that there was any physical or moral
-reason for it. It began to show itself in small catches and sharper
-rejoinders; minim points not discernible by their former love became
-subjects of difference. Then the number of these increased where
-the points of contact were, as one might say, infinite. They assert
-that nature resents too close an affinity of affection; nor is this
-altogether theory, for we see every day friendships which are so close
-as to merge identities flare up into terrible hatreds; and we have
-scriptural authority for the wrath of brothers. A plain man would
-get out of the difficulty in a plain way. Those sisters had become
-discontented because they had rejected that natural food of the mind
-which is derived from an intercourse with the world; and who does not
-know that discontent always finds a peg somewhere whereon to hang a
-grievance. Where you have many people about you, you have a greater
-choice of these pegs; if you are cooped up in a room with only one
-human being within your vision, you are limited; but the pegs must
-be got, and _are_ got, till the whole of the one object, a miserable
-scapegoat, is covered with them.
-
-Probably the plain man is right. I leave him to the philosopher, and
-keep to my safe duty as a narrator.
-
-The spirit of fault-finding once begun, waxed stronger and stronger
-upon the food it generated by its own powers of production. Almost
-everything either of them did appeared to be wrong in the eyes of
-the other; and though for a time they tried to repress the sharp
-feelings, which were wonders even to themselves, yet the check would
-come, the taunt would follow, and the flash of the eye--an organ once
-so expressive of love--succeeded within the passing minute. People who
-merely meet may be supposed to seek for objects of disagreement. In the
-room in Burnet’s Close the occasions were the very actions of natural
-life; the movements of the body, the words of the mouth, the glances
-of the eye, the thoughts of the mind, the misconstrued feelings of the
-heart. Nor could they, as in most cases people who disagree may, get
-away from each other. The repulsion which they felt towards a world
-which offered them only reminiscences of past joys, was as a wall
-enclosing the arena where these gladiatorial displays of feeling went
-on from day to day, scarcely even interrupted by the holy Sabbath any
-more than if they had come within the excepted category of necessity
-and mercy.
-
-According to my information, which descended to the minutest
-particulars, this domestic disease went on for years, without any other
-alteration than changes consistent with the laws of bodily ailment.
-There were exasperations which, expending themselves in gratuitous
-vituperations, receded into silent sullennesses, which lasted for
-days. If it happened that no grievance could be discovered by the
-microscopic vision, there was recourse to the grievance of yesterday,
-which was called up to occupy the greedy vacuum; and then the changes
-of aspect, of which, to the jaundiced eye, it was capable, were rung
-upon it till they were physically wearied of the strife: while the
-weariness only lasted till a renewed energy became ripe for another
-onset. But however high the exasperation ever reached, they never came
-to any violence. All the energy expended lay in the tongue, and the
-eye, and the contorted muscles of irascible expression. It might have
-been doubted whether, if any third party interfered, the one would not
-have defended the other; but only to retain her as valuable property
-for the onset of her peculiar privilege. And what is not less strange,
-their religion, which was still maintained with the old Calvinistic
-dogmatism, in place of overcoming the domestic demon, became subjected
-to it, and changed its aspect according to the wish. Though incapable
-of inflicting any bodily pain upon each other, they felt no compunction
-in fostering the opinion that, while each was among the elect and
-predestinated to everlasting glory, the other was in the scroll of the
-reprobate, and ordained to eternal punishment in the brimstone fires,
-and the howling horrors of the pit which is so peculiarly constituted
-as to have no bottom. Each would read her Bible in her own chair, and
-shoot against the other glances of triumph as she figured herself in
-heaven looking down upon the torments of her sister in hell. And all
-this while neither could have with her own hands inflicted the scratch
-of a pin upon the body of the other. It was enough that each could
-lacerate the feelings of the other as a vent to the exasperation which
-embittered her own heart.
-
-Still more remarkable, there were none of these reconciliations
-that among relations often make amends for strife, and maintain
-the equipoise so insisted upon by nature. We all know how these
-ameliorations work in the married life and among lovers. In these cases
-the anger seems to become the fuel of love. Not so with our sisters.
-The worm was a never-dying one. But even in this desperate case there
-was not wanting evidence of nature’s efforts towards an amelioration.
-It was true they could not separate; they were objects necessary
-to each other; nay, even if Mr Ross, who witnessed the working of
-the domestic evil, had contrived to get them into separate rooms--a
-proposal which was indeed made, and morbidly resisted--they would have
-pursued each other in imagination with perhaps even more misery than
-that which they inflicted on each other.
-
-At length they came to a scheme of their own, so peculiar that it has
-formed the incident of that story which has made it live in Edinburgh
-through many years, and even to this day. The plan was, that they
-should draw in the middle of the floor a distinct line of chalk, which
-should be a boundary between them, over which neither the one nor the
-other would ever set her foot. To make this plan workable, it was
-necessary that the two ends of the room should be each self-contained
-as regarded the necessary articles of household plenishing; and this,
-by the aid of Mr Ross and Peggy Fergusson, was duly accomplished. One
-of these articles was a big ha’ Bible for Martha, to stand against that
-retained by Mary--in explanation of which I may inform the English
-reader that the old Calvinists had nearly as much faith in the size
-of their Bibles as in their contents. Nor was the strength of their
-faith altogether irrespective of the kind of cover, and the manner
-in which it was clasped. There was a great virtue in good strong
-calfskin--sometimes with the rough hair upon it; and if the clasps were
-of silver or gold, the volume had a peculiar merit. It was necessary,
-therefore, that Martha’s Bible should be as big as Mary’s; and the
-latter having been adorned by old Peter Jopp with silver clasps, so the
-former was equally orthodox in this respect.
-
-And so the chalk line was drawn. The only difficulty regarded the
-fire; but this was got over by some ingenuity on the part of Peggy and
-a workman, whereby the grate was altered so as to hold two cranes;
-and so minute were the engineers, that the end of the chalk line came
-up to the hearth, dividing it exactly into two halves; so that each
-crane could be got at without overstepping the mark. This arrangement
-lasted through eleven years; and if to that period we add the five
-years of prior strife, this domestic war endured for sixteen years;
-nor, according to the report of Mr Ross and Peggy, with that of the
-good many curious visitors who contrived through various excuses to
-get a view of the domestic arrangement, was that magic line which thus
-separated two hearts once so loving ever transgressed; nay, it seemed
-to become a point of honour in the two maidens. They might read their
-Bibles on either side of it, and send their mute anathemas across it,
-so as to reach the unhappy non-elect; but not a foot of either ever
-trod upon the mark. The foot of time might dull it, but the ready
-hand of either revived the line of demarcation, even as the feelings
-were kept alive in undying vividness; all which may easily enough be
-conceived; it contravenes no law of nature; but I fairly admit that I
-must draw a strong bill on the credulity of poor modern haters of the
-Armenian kind, when I state what was on all hands acknowledged, that
-after the chalk truce--that is, for eleven years--the residents of
-this room, divided so against itself, never interchanged a word with
-each other. I freely admit that all traditions become incrusted by
-the marvellous. We do not reject port wine because it has undergone a
-certain process. Yes; but we do not swallow the crust, which is only
-deposited sugar. So be it; and you are welcome to your advantage,
-provided you admit that the raciness you admire is the consequence
-of the deposit; and so, in my case, you may reject the eleven years’
-silence of Martha and Mary Jopp, yet you cannot get quit of the tang of
-the reported marvel. For my own part, I am a little sceptical myself;
-but then I cannot prove the negative of a popular statement; and I
-rather doubt if there are many religions in the world which are founded
-on anything better than this defiance.
-
-Towards the end of the eleventh year a new incident arose to change
-perhaps the tenor of this strange drama. Martha Darling, a daughter
-of the sister Margaret who went to India, was sent home to Mr Ross to
-be educated in Scotland, where she was to remain till the homecoming
-of her parents, who had become rich on the spoils of Cheyte Sing, or
-the Begums of Oude, or some other unfortunate Indian victim. The
-girl was generous, and full of young life; and Mr Ross became hopeful
-that by introducing her to her aunts some instinctive feelings might
-be called up in the breasts of the sisters which would break up the
-old congelation. He told her the story of the chalk line, and got a
-scream of a laugh for an answer, with the threat that she would force
-her aunts to embrace, and weep, and be friends. Next day the visit
-was made, and, designedly, without any intimation that the niece had
-arrived in Scotland. On opening the door, Mr Ross found the two ladies
-in that position in which he had so often before found them, each
-sitting stiffly on her own side of the chalk line, and looking out of
-her window into the close--for, as I should have stated before, the
-room was supplied by two windows.
-
-“Your niece from India--only arrived yesterday.”
-
-No more time for prologue, for the girl flew forward, and taking
-her elder aunt round the neck, hugged her very lovingly after the
-Anglo-Indian fashion, and thereafter, making a spring over the line of
-chalk, she ran to Aunt Mary, and performed the same operation upon her,
-but with no emolliating result; the old petrefactions, which had become
-harder by the passage of every wave of time, were not to be dissolved
-or softened by the sparkling rill from the green sunny mountains. They
-looked strangely only because they looked unnaturally; but that was
-no reason why Martha the younger should change her nature, and so she
-rattled away, every now and then casting her eye, with a laugh, at the
-line of chalk.
-
-“If I had you only in India,” she went on, “where the natives, when
-they drink bang, dance such strange dances, you would laugh so. Shall I
-show you?”
-
-And without waiting for an answer, she began to make very pretty but
-somewhat irregular revolving movements on the floor, whereby in a short
-time, by the rapid motion of her small feet, she contrived to efface
-the line of chalk.
-
-“Now you can hardly see it,” she proceeded with shortened breath; “and
-now, the nasty thing being gone, you are to cross and shake hands, and
-kiss each other.”
-
-But the good-natured girl’s efforts were useless. The sisters sat as
-stiff in their chairs as if they had been the figures in a pagoda
-irresponsive to the dance of the worshippers. Even the confident
-will-power of youth, which under-estimates all difficulties, was
-staggered by the resistance offered to its efforts, and the young
-Martha was obliged to leave without attaining an object over which she
-had been dreaming the preceding night. Next morning the chalk line was
-renewed, the still air of the room in Burnet’s Close had recovered
-its quietude from the oscillation produced by the young girl’s laugh,
-and the demon of obstinacy sat enshrined in its niche which it had
-occupied for so many years; nor had the after visits of the younger
-Martha had any better effect towards the object that lay nearest to
-her generous heart. And now a month had passed; a particular morning
-rose--not marked by an asterisk in the calendar, and yet remarkable for
-opening with the thickest gray dawn that had been observed for a time.
-And here you may already see I am getting among the mists, where old
-Dame Mystery, with her undefined lines, is ready to assume the forms
-forecast by brooding fancy. The gloom in the old room still hung thick,
-as the two maiden ladies moved slowly about, so like automatons, each
-preparing her cup of tea. So sternly had custom occupied the place of
-primary nature, that it would now have appeared more strange and out
-of joint for them to speak than to be silent. And so, as the minutes
-passed, the gray mist of the morning gave way to the struggling rays of
-the sun, and now there was something to be seen--nay, something that
-could not be unseen. Nor this the less by token that the eyes of both
-our Martha and Mary were fixed as if by a spell upon that part of the
-wall over the mantelpiece. There was hanging bodily, in the old frame,
-and radiant with the old light, the real picture of their mother, for
-the possession of which they had sighed for sixteen years. We may
-easily conceive that it could not fail of an effect, even as free from
-the connexion of any mystery as to how it came to be there. But the
-question, if put by either to herself or her neighbour, could not be
-answered in any way consistently with natural causes, for neither of
-them had been out of the room--nay, neither had been in a condition
-which could have been taken advantage of by any one who wished by a
-trick to take them by surprise. Then how catching the superstitious
-when it plays into the hand of our fears! As they looked with
-spell-bound eyes on that apparition, and read once more the expression
-in that blessed countenance that spoke peace and love,--reproof enough
-to those who for so many long years had disobeyed her injunctions to
-treat each other as sisters, and love each other even as she loved them
-and they her,--they never doubted but that some unseen hand placed that
-picture there for the end of chastening their rebellious hearts, and
-bringing them back to that love which was enjoined even by Him whom
-they worshipped as the very God of Love. It seemed as if they shook as
-they gazed, and each one at intervals sought with a furtive glance the
-face of the other. A charm was working among the old half-dead nerves
-that for years had quivered with the passions of the devil. The revived
-feelings of that olden time, when that mild loving mother was the
-centre of their affections and bond of love between themselves, were in
-a tumult below the hard crust of mutual hatred, that was breaking under
-the touch of the finger of God; they were both of the elect, since God
-took the trouble to chide them and recall them to their duty and their
-obedience. The relentings in the hard faces, the rising tears in the
-eyes of both, the tremors in the hands, all spoke eloquently to each
-other; nor did they speak in vain; they rose as if by sympathy. “O
-Martha!” “O Mary!” No more; the words were enough, and the two sisters
-were locked in the arms of each other, drawing long sighs, and sobbing
-convulsively.
-
-A scene all this which, being apt to precipitate one of my disposition
-into the gushing vein, I must leave. I shall be on somewhat safer
-ground as I proceed to say what truth and probability equally require,
-that the paroxysm being over, and the two having begun, even as they
-had done of old, to make and sugar each other’s tea, to butter each
-other’s bread, and even to break each other’s egg, or bone each other’s
-small haddock--most delightful tricks of love, which selfishness knows
-nothing of, and cannot compensate by any means within its power,--they
-gradually began to doubt whether some kindly hand of flesh was not
-concerned in producing the phenomenon of the picture. They had both
-been sound asleep till nine o’clock, and Peggy Fergusson had in the
-gray dawn been in the room doing her duty to the fire. But what
-although the Indian elf, who had likely brought the picture home with
-her from India, had been put up by Mr Ross to a little deception, and
-had slipt in in the wake of Peggy, and hung it on the nail which had
-been so generously left by the old tenant? nay, these spinsters, apart
-from the delusion produced by the demon of obstinacy, were sensible
-women; and in the pleasant talk that now flowed like limpid water down
-a very pretty valley with flowers on either side they came to the
-conclusion, with--Oh, wonder!--a laugh fighting for utterance among the
-dry muscles, that the fact was just so as we have stated it. What then.
-Was not the effect admirable--yea, delectable?
-
-A conclusion this which derived no little confirmation from the fact
-that the young Anglo-Indian came bouncing into the room about eleven
-o’clock, crying, in her spirited way, “Ah, I see it is all right,” and
-yet never saying a word of the said picture; but, indeed, the fairy had
-some work to do other than of revealing the secrets of Titania to her
-victims, for she straightway set to work with a wet cloth to eradicate
-every trace of that devil-invented line of chalk which had so long kept
-asunder good amiable spirits. Nor was she contented with even this, for
-to satisfy her impish whims, she got her now changed aunts, nothing
-loth, to cross and recross the place of the now defaced line, till all
-notion of the division was taken out of their minds.
-
-It is a pleasant thing for me to have authority to say that this
-miraculous change was not destined to be merely temporary. The flow
-from the once secluded fountains of feeling continued its stream--nay,
-it seemed as if the two old maidens could not love each other enough,
-and they had been often heard to confess that one hour of pure nature
-was worth all the sixteen years of factitious opposition to her
-dictates. So true it is that, let us deplore as we may the many ills
-of life, we shall never diminish them by damming up the fountains of
-feeling and driving the emotions back upon the heart. Then fortune
-favours those who are true to nature, who is the mother of fortune, and
-all other occult agencies. The nabob and his wife came home the next
-year, and set up a great establishment in our old city. The spinsters
-were gradually drawn out again into that world which they had so
-foolishly left--we use the word deliberately, for hermits carry with
-them into their cells a worse world than they leave behind, however
-unsteady, however cruel, and however vain, that may at times seem to
-be;--nay, we can say with a good conscience that our two sisters became
-the very darlings of a flock of young nephews and nieces; sometimes
-danced in a reel of ancient maidens; gadded gaily about; sipt their
-scandal, and helped like good citizens to spread the sweet poison; and
-passed many years as happily as can be the fortune of those who are
-contented to live according to the laws of nature.
-
-[Illustration]
-
-
-_Ballantyne & Company, Printers, Edinburgh._
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
- Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
- Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
- Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
- Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.
-
- The cover image for this eBook was created by the transcriber and is
- entered into the public domain.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROMANCES OF THE OLD TOWN OF
-EDINBURGH ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69051-0.zip b/old/69051-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b5d6fbc..0000000
--- a/old/69051-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h.zip b/old/69051-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index af0c530..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/69051-h.htm b/old/69051-h/69051-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 1eac20e..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/69051-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,10541 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
-<head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8" />
- <title>
- Romances of the old town of Edinburgh, by Alexander Leighton—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover" />
- <style> /* <![CDATA[ */
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tiny {width: 10%; margin-left: 45%; margin-right: 45%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquot {
- margin-left: 7.5%;
- margin-right: 7.5%;
-}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;}
-
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: xx-large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-.xlarge {font-size: 150%;}
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-.small {font-size: 66%;}
-.tiny {font-size: 50%;}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .hide {display: none; visibility: hidden;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-img.drop-cap
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0 0.5em 0 0;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- color: transparent;
- visibility: hidden;
- margin-left: -0.9em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker img.drop-cap
-{
- display: none;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- color: inherit;
- visibility: visible;
- margin-left: 0;
-}
-
-.antiqua {
- font-family: Blackletter, Fraktur, Textur, "Old English Text MT", "Olde English Mt", "Olde English", Gothic, serif, sans-serif;}
-
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .indent {text-indent: 1.5em;}
-.poetry .indent5 {text-indent: 5em;}
-.poetry .first {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .first2 {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3.2em;}
-.poetry .center {text-align: center;}
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {display: block;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- padding: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- /* ]]> */ </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Romances of the old town of Edinburgh, by Alexander Leighton</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Romances of the old town of Edinburgh</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Alexander Leighton</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: September 26, 2022 [eBook #69051]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Sonya Schermann, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROMANCES OF THE OLD TOWN OF EDINBURGH ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter hide"><img src="images/coversmall.jpg" width="450" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/title.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-
-<h1>ROMANCES <span class="allsmcap">OF THE</span> OLD TOWN<br />
-
-<span class="tiny">OF</span><br />
-
-EDINBURGH.</h1>
-
-<p>BY<br />
-
-<span class="xlarge">ALEXANDER LEIGHTON,</span><br />
-
-AUTHOR OF “MYSTERIOUS LEGENDS OF EDINBURGH,” “CURIOUS STORIED<br />
-TRADITIONS OF SCOTTISH LIFE,” ETC.</p>
-
-<p><span class="large">EDINBURGH:<br />
-WILLIAM P. NIMMO.<br />
-1867.</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_v">[v]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_preface.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">PREFACE.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE stories in this volume owe their publication
-to the favour extended to my
-Book of Legends. If I had any apology
-to make it could only—independently of what is
-due for demerits which the cultivators of “the gay
-science” will not fail to notice—consist in an answer
-to the charge that books of this kind feed a too
-natural appetite for images and stimulants which
-tends to voracity, and which again tends to that
-attenuation of the mental constitution deserving
-of the name of <i>marasmus</i>. I may be saved the
-necessity of such an apology by reminding the
-reader that, although I plead guilty to the charge<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vi">[vi]</span>
-of invention, I have generally so much of a
-foundation for these stories as to entitle them to
-be withdrawn from the category of fiction. On
-this subject the reader may be inclined to be
-more particular in his inquiry than suits the possibility
-of an answer which may at once be safe
-and satisfactory. I would prefer to repose upon
-the generous example of that philanthropic showman,
-who leaves to those who look through his
-small windows the choice of selecting his great
-duke out of two personages, both worthy of the
-honour. The reader may believe, or not believe,
-but it is not imperative that he should do either;
-for even at the best—begging pardon of my fair
-readers for the Latin—<i>fides semper est inevidens in
-re testificata</i>.</p>
-
-<p class="right">A. L.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">York Lodge, Trinity</span>,<br />
-&#160; &#160; &#160; <i>January 1867</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_vii">[vii]</span>
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_contents.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr" colspan="2"><span class="small">PAGE</span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE TWO RED SLIPPERS,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_1"> 1</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE DEAD SEAL,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_13"> 13</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF MRS HALLIDAY,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_35"> 35</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF MARY BROWN,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_60"> 60</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE MERRILLYGOES,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_88"> 88</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE SIX TOES,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_115"> 115</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF MYSIE CRAIG,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_137"> 137</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF PINCHED TOM,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_160"> 160</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE IRON PRESS,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_177"> 177</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE GIRL FORGER,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_190"> 190</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF MARY MOCHRIE AND THE MIRACLE OF THE COD, &#160; &#160; &#160;</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_214"> 214</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE PELICAN,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_238"> 238</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF DAVIE DEMPSTER’S GHAIST,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_255"> 255</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE GORTHLEY TWINS,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_277"> 277</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>THE STORY OF THE CHALK LINE,</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_299"> 299</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_1">[1]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_001.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p class="ph2">ROMANCES<br />
-
-<span class="tiny">OF THE</span><br />
-
-OLD TOWN OF EDINBURGH.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/decoline.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Two Red Slippers.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE taking down of the old house of four
-or five flats, called Gowanlock’s Land, in
-that part of the High Street which used
-to be called the Luckenbooths, has given rise to
-various stories connected with the building. Out
-of these I have selected a very strange legend—so
-strange, indeed, that, if not true, it must have been
-the production, <i>quod est in arte summa</i>, of a capital
-inventor; nor need I say that it is of much importance
-to talk of the authenticity of these things, for
-the most authentic are embellished by invention,
-and it is certainly the best embellished that live the
-longest; for all which we have very good reasons
-in human nature.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_2">[2]</span>Gowanlock’s Land, it would seem, merely occupied
-the site of an older house, which belonged, at
-the time of Prince Charlie’s occupation of the city,
-to an old town councillor of the name of Yellowlees.
-This older house was also one of many stories, an old
-form in Edinburgh, supposed to have been adopted
-from the French; but it had, which was not uncommon,
-an entry from the street running under
-an arch, and leading to the back of the premises to
-the lower part of the tenement, that part occupied
-by the councillor. There was a lower flat, and one
-above, which thus constituted an entire house; and
-which, moreover, rejoiced in the privilege of having
-an extensive garden, running down as far as the
-sheet of water called the North Loch, that secret
-“domestic witness,” as the ancients used to say, of
-many of the dark crimes of the old city. These
-gardens were the pride of the rich burghers of the
-time, decorated by Dutch-clipped hollies and trim
-boxwood walks; and in our special instance of
-Councillor Yellowlees’s retreat, there was in addition
-a summer-house, or rustic bower, standing at
-the bottom; that is, towards the north, and close
-upon the loch. I may mention also, that in consequence
-of the damp, this little bower was strewed
-with rushes for the very special comfort of Miss
-Annie Yellowlees, the only and much-petted child
-of the good councillor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[3]</span>All which you must take as introductory to the
-important fact that the said Miss Annie, who, as a
-matter of course, was “very bonnie,” as well as
-passing rich to be, had been, somewhat previous to
-the prince’s entry to the town, pledged to be
-married to no less considerable a personage than
-Maister John Menelaws, a son of him of the very
-same name who dealt in pelts in a shop of the
-Canongate, and a student of medicine in the Edinburgh
-University; but as the councillor had in his
-secret soul hankerings after the prince, and the said
-student, John, was a red-hot royalist, the marriage
-was suspended, all to the inexpressible grief of our
-“bonnie Annie,” who would not have given her
-John for all the Charlies and Geordies to be found
-from Berwick to Lerwick. On the other hand—while
-Annie was depressed, and forced to seek relief
-in solitary musings in her bower by the loch—it
-is just as true that “it is an ill wind that blaws
-naebody gude;” nay, the truth of the saying was
-verified in Richard Templeton, a fellow-student of
-Menelaws, and a rival, too, in the affections of
-Annie; who, being a Charlieite as well as an Annieite,
-rejoiced that his companion was in the
-meantime foiled and disappointed.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, and, I may say, while the domestic
-affairs of the councillor’s house were still in this
-unfortunate position, the prince’s bubble burst in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[4]</span>
-the way which history tells us of, and thereupon
-out came proscriptions of terrible import, and, as
-fate would have it, young Templeton’s name was
-in the bloody register; the more by reason that he
-had been as noisy as Edinburgh students generally
-are in the proclamation of his partisanship. He
-must fly or secrete himself, or perhaps lose a head
-in which there was concealed a considerable amount
-of Scotch cunning. He at once thought of the
-councillor’s house, with that secluded back garden
-and summer-house, all so convenient for secrecy,
-and the envied Annie there, too, whom he might
-by soft wooings detach from the hated Menelaws,
-and make his own through the medium of the
-pity that is akin to love. And so, to be sure, he
-straightway, under the shade of night, repaired to
-the house of the councillor, who, being a tender-hearted
-man, could not see a sympathiser with the
-glorious cause in danger of losing his head. Templeton
-was received, a report set abroad that he
-had gone to France, and all proper measures were
-taken within the house to prevent any domestic
-from letting out the secret.</p>
-
-<p>In this scheme Annie, we need hardly say, was
-a favouring party; not that she had any love for
-the young man, for her heart was still true to Menelaws,
-(who, however, for safety’s sake, was now
-excluded from the house,) but that, with a filial<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[5]</span>
-obedience to a beloved father, she felt, with a
-woman’s heart, sympathy for one who was in distress,
-and a martyr to the cause which her father
-loved. Need we wonder at an issue which may
-already be looming on the vision of those who
-know anything of human nature? The two young
-folks were thrown together. They were seldom
-out of each other’s company. Suffering is love’s
-opportunity, and Templeton had to plead for him
-not only his misfortune, but a tongue rendered
-subtle and winning by love’s action in the heart.
-As the days passed, Annie saw some new qualities
-in the martyr-prisoner which she had not seen before;
-nay, the pretty little domestic attentions had
-the usual reflex effect upon the heart which administered
-them, and all that the recurring image
-of Menelaws could do to fight against these rising
-predilections was so far unavailing, that that very
-image waxed dimmer and dimmer, while the present
-object was always working through the magic
-of sensation. Yes, Annie Yellowlees grew day by
-day fonder of her <i>protégé</i>, until at length she got,
-as the saying goes, “over head and ears.” Nay,
-was she not, in the long nights, busy working a
-pair of red slippers for the object of her new affections,
-and were not these so very suitable to one
-who, like Hercules, was reduced almost to the
-distaff, and who, unlike that woman-tamed hero,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[6]</span>
-did not need them to be applied anywhere but to
-the feet?</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of all this secluded domesticity,
-there was all that comfort which is said to come
-from stolen waters. Then, was there not the prospect
-of the proscription being taken off, and the
-two would be made happy? Even in the meantime
-they made small escapades into free space.
-When the moon was just so far up as not to be a
-tell-tale, Templeton would, either with or without
-Annie, step out into the garden with these very
-red slippers on his feet. That bower by the loch,
-too, was favourable to the fondlings of a secret
-love; nor was it sometimes less to the prisoner a
-refuge from the eerieness which comes of <i>ennui</i>—if
-it is not the same thing—under the pressure of
-which strange feeling he would creep out at times
-when Annie could not be with him; nay, sometimes
-when the family had gone to bed.</p>
-
-<p>And now we come to a very wonderful turn in
-our strange story. One morning Templeton did
-not make his appearance in the breakfast-parlour,
-but of course he would when he got up and got his
-red slippers on. Yet he was so punctual, and
-Annie, who knew that her father had to go to the
-council-chamber, would see what was the cause of
-the young man’s delay. She went to his bed-room
-door. It was open, but where was Templeton?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span>
-He was not there. He could not be out in the
-city; he could not be even in the garden with the
-full light of a bright morning sun shining on it. He
-was not in the house; he was not in the garden, as
-they could see from the windows. He was nowhere
-to be found, and what added to the wonder,
-he had taken with him his red slippers, wherever
-he had gone. The inmates were in wonderment
-and consternation, and, conduplicated evil! they
-could make no inquiry for one who lay under the
-ban of a bloody proscription.</p>
-
-<p>But wonders, as we all know, generally ensconce
-themselves in some snug theory, and die by a kind
-of pleasant euthanasia; and so it was with this
-wonder of ours. The councillor came, as the days
-passed, to the conclusion that Templeton, wearied
-out by his long confinement, had become desperate,
-and had gone abroad. As good a theory as could
-be got, seeing that he had not trusted himself in
-going near his friends; and Annie, whose grief was
-sharp and poignant, came also to settle down with
-a belief which still promised her her lover, though
-perhaps at a long date. But, somehow or another,
-Annie could not explain, why, even with all the
-fondness he had to the work of her hands, he should
-have elected to expose himself to damp feet by
-making the love-token slippers do the duty of the
-pair of good shoes he had left in the bed-room.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span>Even this latter wonder wore away, and months
-and months passed on the revolving wheel which
-casts months, not less than moments, into that gulf
-we call eternity. The rigour of the Government
-prosecutions was relaxed, and timid sympathisers
-began to show their heads out of doors, but Richard
-Templeton never returned to claim either immunity
-or the woman of his affections. Nor within
-all this time did John Menelaws enter the house of
-the councillor; so that Annie’s days were renounced
-to sadness and her nights to reveries. But at last
-comes the eventful “one day” of the greatest of
-all storytellers, Time, whereon happen his startling
-discoveries. Verily one day Annie had wandered
-disconsolately into the garden, and seated herself
-on the wooden form in the summer-house, where
-in the moonlight she had often nestled in the arms
-of her proscribed lover, who was now gone, it might
-be, for ever. Objective thought cast her into a
-reverie, and the reverie brought up again the images
-of these objects, till her heart beat with an affection
-renewed through a dream. At length she
-started up, and wishing to hurry from a place
-which seemed filled with images at once lovable
-and terrible, she felt her foot caught by an impediment
-whereby she stumbled. On looking down
-she observed some object of a reddish-brown
-colour, and becoming alarmed lest it might be one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span>
-of the toads with which the place was sometimes
-invaded, she started back. Yet curiosity forced
-her to a closer inspection. She applied her hand
-to the object, and brought away one of those very
-slippers which she had made for Templeton. All
-very strange; but what may be conceived to have
-been her feelings when she saw, sticking up from
-beneath the rushes, the white skeleton of a foot
-which had filled that very slipper! A terrible suspicion
-shot through her mind. She flew to her
-father, and, hurrying him to the spot, pointed out
-to him the grim object, and showed him the slipper
-which had covered it. Mr Yellowlees was a shrewd
-man, and soon saw that, the foot being there, the
-rest of the body was not far away. He saw, too,
-that his safety might be compromised either as
-having been concerned in a murder or the harbourage
-of a rebel; and so, making caution the better
-part of his policy, he repaired to a sympathiser,
-and, having told him the story, claimed his assistance.
-Nor was this refused. That same night, by
-the light of a lamp, they exhumed the body of
-Templeton, much reduced, but enveloped with his
-clothes; only they observed that the other red
-slipper was wanting. On examining the body,
-they could trace the evidence of a sword-stab
-through the heart. All this they kept to themselves,
-and that same night they contrived to get<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-the sexton of the Canongate to inter the body as
-that of a rebel who had been killed and left where
-it was found.</p>
-
-<p>This wonder also passed away, and, as time sped,
-old things began to get again into their natural
-order. Menelaws began to come again about the
-house, and, as an old love, when the impediments
-are removed, is soon rekindled again, he and Annie
-became even all that which they had once been to
-each other. The old vows were repeated without
-the slightest reference being made by either party
-to the cause which had interfered to prevent them
-from having been fulfilled. It was not for Annie
-to proffer a reason, and it did not seem to be the
-wish of Menelaws to ask one. In a short time
-afterwards they were married.</p>
-
-<p>The new-married couple, apparently happy in
-the enjoyment of an affection which had continued
-so long, and had survived the crossing of a new
-love, at least on one side, removed to a separate
-house farther up in the Lawnmarket. Menelaws
-had previously graduated as a doctor, and he commenced
-to practise as such, not without an amount
-of success. Meanwhile, the councillor died, leaving
-Annie a considerable fortune. In the course of
-somewhere about ten years they had five children.
-They at length resolved on occupying the old<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span>
-house with the garden, for Annie’s reluctance became
-weakened by time. It was on the occasion
-of the flitting that Annie had to rummage an old
-trunk which Menelaws, long after the marriage,
-had brought from the house of his father, the dealer
-in pelts. There, at the bottom, covered over by a
-piece of brown paper, she found—what? The very
-slipper which matched the one she still secretly
-retained in her possession. <i>Verbum sapienti.</i> You
-may now see where the strange land lies; nor was
-Annie blind. She concluded in an instant, and
-with a horror that thrilled through her whole body,
-that Menelaws had murdered his rival. She had
-lain for ten years in the arms of a murderer. She
-had borne to him five children. Nay, she loved
-him with all the force of an ardent temperament.
-The thought was terrible, and she recoiled from
-the very possibility of living with him a moment
-longer. She took the fatal memorial and secreted
-it along with its neighbour, and having a friend at a
-little distance from Edinburgh, she hurried thither,
-taking with her her children. Her father had left
-in her own power a sufficiency for her support, and
-she afterwards returned to town. All the requests
-of her husband for an explanation she resisted,
-and indeed they were not long persisted in, for
-Menelaws no doubt gauged the reason of her obduracy—a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span>
-conclusion the more likely that he subsequently
-left Scotland. I have reason to believe
-that some of the existing Menelaws are descended
-from this strange union.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_012.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_013.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Dead Seal.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_a.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">AMONG Lord Kames’s session papers there
-are two informations or written pleadings
-upon the competency of an action of
-damages. The law point was strange enough, but
-the facts set forth in explanation were much more
-so, amounting indeed to a story so unprecedented,
-that I cannot help being surprised how they have
-escaped the curiosity of those who love “to chronicle
-the strong beer” of human life and action.
-Mr John Dalrymple, merchant, had passed his
-honeymoon with his wife (whose maiden name was
-Jean Bisset) in his house in Warrender’s Close,
-and was about to proceed next morning to Glasgow,
-to execute some commission business. They
-had a cheerful supper; they were both young, both
-healthy, and both hopeful, and surely if under these
-conditions they could not extract some sweets out
-of the orange of life, they might have little chance
-afterwards, when the pulp would diminish to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span>
-bitter skin which is inevitable. But the truth is,
-they had both very good powers of suction, and
-will enough to use them; and if it were not that
-death and life play upon the same string, one
-might have said that the new-married couple stood
-no apparent risk of any fatal interruption to their
-happiness.</p>
-
-<p>It was accordingly in very good spirits that Mr
-Dalrymple set forth in the morning on his journey.
-We might perhaps say, that the inspiration of her
-love lent force to his mercantile enterprise, for
-somehow it would seem that all the actions of
-man beyond the purely selfish play round the
-great passion, just as the gaudy petals of the
-flowers are a kind of acted marriage-song round
-what is going on in the core of the plants; and so
-having arrived in Glasgow, he would be thinking
-about his Jean, to whom, when he got home again,
-he would recount the wonderful triumphs he had
-achieved over his competing worshippers in the
-Temple of Mammon. He was to be eight days
-away, and no doubt, according to a moderate calculation,
-they would appear as so many months,
-were it not that his business engagements would
-keep these days to their normal length. He was
-to write her every day, but as he did not know
-at what inn he might put up, she was not to write
-to him until she knew where to address him. On<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span>
-the day after his arrival he accordingly sent her
-a very loving letter, containing, we presume, as
-many of those kisses <i>à la distance</i> as is usual in
-such cases, and which in our day would make some
-noise in the post-office receiving-box, if they were
-endowed with sound. Having performed this loving
-duty, he continued his exertions re-inspired with
-the hope of receiving an answer on the morning of
-the day following. Then—as happy people, like
-the other animals, are playful—he amused himself
-at intervals, by conjecturing as to what kind of a
-letter he would get, how endearingly expressed it
-would be, how many “dears” there would be in it,
-what warmth of feeling the words would convey,
-and how many sighs had already been wasted for
-his return. We might smile at such frivolities if
-we were not called to remember that the most of
-our pleasures, if looked at through the spectacle-glass
-of Reason, would appear to be ridiculous.</p>
-
-<p>The morning came; and, according to the statement
-of the waiter, the letter would arrive about
-breakfast time. He would thus have two or three
-pleasures rolled up in the same hour; he would
-sip coffee and nectar at the same time; his ham
-and egg would be sweetened by ambrosia; the
-pleasures of sense would be heightened by those
-of the fancy. All which were promises made by
-himself, and to himself, while he was dressing, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-we cannot be sure that he did not make himself
-more sprightly, that he had to appear before the
-letter of his dear Jean. Did not Rousseau blush
-in presence of the great lady’s dog? Do what we
-may, we cannot get quit of the moral influence
-exercised over us by even inanimate things having
-the power of suggesting associations. But the
-breakfast was set, all the eatables and drinkables
-were on the table, and the last thing served by the
-waiter was the communication that the postman
-had passed and had left no letter.</p>
-
-<p>The circumstance was rendered more than awkward
-by his prior hopes and anticipations, and it
-had the effect, moreover, which it surely ought not
-to have had upon a sensible man, of taking away
-his appetite. That it was strange there could be
-no doubt, for where is the loving wife who at the
-end of the honeymoon would allow a post to pass
-without replying to a loving husband’s letter?—but
-then he contrived to make it more strange by
-his efforts to satisfy himself that it was not strange
-at all. His reasons did not satisfy him; the humming
-of a Scotch air carried no conviction and produced
-no appetite; and the result was increased
-anxiety, evidenced by the hanging head and heavy
-eye. Again the main argument was that his or
-her letter had miscarried,—how <i>could</i> there be any
-other mode of accounting for it?—and then he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span>
-hummed the air again—the breakfast standing all
-the time. All to be again counter-argued by the
-fact that during all the period he had corresponded
-with Glasgow, there had been no miscarriage of a
-letter, either to or from him. This was the doctrine
-of chances in the form of a stern logic, and
-the effect was apparent in another relapse into fear
-and anxiety. But Mr Dalrymple, though made
-a moral coward by the intensity of his affection,
-was withal a sensible man—a fact which he gave
-a good proof of, by placing more faith in brandy
-than logic, for having called for a little of that cordial,
-he put a glassful into his coffee, and thereupon
-felt, almost as soon as the liquor had got into his
-stomach, that there was really a great deal less to
-fear than he had thought, if the whole affair was
-not a mere bugbear; and what was not less remarkable,
-if not fortunate, the brandy, by dismissing
-his fears, brought back his appetite, and
-although he required a little longer time, he contrived
-to make nearly as good a breakfast as if he
-had been favoured with the ambrosial accompaniment
-which he had so hopefully promised himself.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was this a small matter, for the meal served
-as ballast to enable him to encounter something
-very different from the slight adverse wind he had
-experienced for the last hour. He was still sitting
-at the table, rather pleased that he had triumphed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span>
-over morbid fears, and laying out his scheme for
-the day, when the words, coming from behind, “A
-letter, sir,” struck his ear as if by a slap. His hand
-nervously seized the proffered gift, his eyes “flew”
-as it were to meet the superscription. He did not
-know the handwriting. It was directed to the care
-of Messrs Robert Fleming &amp; Co., one of the houses
-with which he had been doing business. So far he
-was relieved, even when disappointed by the absence
-of his wife’s hand on the address. He turned
-it with the view to break it open, and then stopped
-and trembled as his eye fixed itself on a large
-black seal, exhibiting the death’s head and cross-bones
-of a funeral letter. Even this he soon got
-over, under the supposition that it was an invitation
-to some acquaintance’s funeral sent through
-to him, likely, by the recommendation of his wife
-before she had received his true address. At
-length he broke it open, and read the following
-words:—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Sir</span>,—I am sorry to be under the necessity
-of informing you that your wife died this afternoon,
-between three and four, from the bursting of
-a blood-vessel in the lungs. You will see the propriety
-of starting for home as soon as you receive
-this melancholy intelligence.—Yours,</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">A. Morgan</span>, F.R.C.S.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span>No sooner had he read this terrible communication
-than he was rendered as rigid as a statue.
-The only movement that could have been observed
-in him was in the fingers of the right hand, as it
-crumpled up the paper by the spasm of the muscles
-acting involuntarily. His eye was fixed without an
-object to claim it, and his teeth were clenched as if
-he had been seized by lockjaw. Conditions which
-we use strong words to describe, as we toil in vain
-after an expression which must always be inadequate,
-even though the words are furnished by the
-unhappy victim himself. We try a climax by using
-such expressions as “palsied brain” and so forth, all
-the while forgetting that we are essaying to convey
-a condition of inward feeling by external signs,
-the thing and the sign being in different categories.
-As he still sat under the stunning effect of the
-letter, the waiter entered to clear the table, but
-when he saw the letter in the clenched hand he
-retreated from the scene of a private grief, which
-a foreign interference would only have tended to
-irritate; but probably the noise of the closing door
-helped the reaction which comes sooner or later to
-all victims of moral assaults, and by and by he
-began to think—to see the whole details of the
-tragedy—to be conscious of the full extent of his
-misery. It was not yet time for the beginning of
-relief, for these conditions are subject to the law of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span>
-recurrence. Like the attacks of an ague they exhaust
-themselves by repetition, and Nature’s way
-is at best but a cruel process of wearing out the
-sensibility of the palpitating nerve.</p>
-
-<p>How long these oscillations lasted before the
-unhappy victim was able to leave his seat, we
-cannot tell. But as all thought is motion, so is
-all motion action. He could not retreat from the
-inevitable destiny. He must move on in the maze
-of the puppets. He must face the dead body of
-his wife. He must bury her, if he should never
-be able to lay the haunting spirit of memory. All
-business must be suspended, to leave the soul to
-the energies necessary for encountering the ordeal.
-A certain hardness, which belongs to the last feelings
-of despair, enabled him, even with something
-like deliberation, to go through the preparations
-of departure; but in this he exhibited merely the
-regularity of a machine, which obeys the imposed
-power behind. At eleven o’clock he was seated
-in the coach, as one placed there to be moved on
-and on, mile by mile, to see the dead body of a
-wife, whose smiling face, as he had seen it last,
-was still busy with his fancy, and whose voice, as
-he had heard her sing at the parting supper, still
-rang in his ears.</p>
-
-<p>Nor were his feelings ameliorated by the journey,
-to remove the tediousness of which, at that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span>
-slow time, the passengers were obliged to talk
-even against sheer Scotch taciturnity. He sat
-and heard, whether he would or not, the account
-of one who was going to bring home a wife; of
-another who had been away for ten years, and
-who was to be met at the coach-door by one who
-was dying to clasp him in her arms. All which
-were to him as sounds in another world wide apart
-from that one occupied by him, where he was, as
-he could not but think, the one solitary inhabitant,
-with one dead companion by his side. By and by,
-as the conversation flagged, he fell into that species
-of monomania where the brooding spirit, doomed
-to bear a shock, conjures up and holds before its
-view the principal feature of a tragedy. That
-feature was the image of his Jean’s face. It was
-paler than the palest of corpses, to suit the condition
-of the disease of which she had died. The
-lips were tinged with the blood of the fatal hemorrhage.
-The eyes were blank and staring, as if
-filled with the surprise and terror of the sudden
-attack. Over all, the fixedness of the muscles,—the
-contrast of death to the versatile movements,
-which were obedient to the laugh of pleasure when
-he last drew indescribable joy from the changes of
-her humour. No effort could relieve him from
-that one haunting image. The conversation of
-the party seemed to render it more steadfast—more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span>
-bright—more harrowing. Nor when he tried
-to realise his feelings, in the personal encounter of
-facing the reality, could he find in himself any
-promise of a power to enable him to bear up
-against the terrible sight. It seemed to him, as
-the coach moved slowly on, as if he were being
-dragged towards a scaffold draped in black, where
-he was to suffer death.</p>
-
-<p>When the coach at length stopped in the High
-Street, he was roused as from a dream, but the
-consciousness was even worse than the monomaniac
-condition in which he had been for hours.
-It was twelve at night; the bell of St Giles’s
-sounded solemnly in the stillness of the sleeping
-city. Every one of the passengers hurried off
-each to his home or inn, all glad of the release.
-To him it was no release; he would have ridden
-on and on, for days and weeks, if for nothing
-else than to prolong the interval, at the end of
-which the ordeal he feared so much awaited him.
-Whither now? He stood in the middle of the
-dark and silent street with his portmanteau in his
-hand, for he was really uncertain whether to proceed
-to his sister’s house in Galloway’s Close, and
-get her to go with him to his own house, as a kind
-of medium, to break the effect of the vision—or
-to proceed homewards alone. He turned his
-steps towards Galloway’s Close, and soon found<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span>
-that the family had gone to bed; at least, all
-was dark yet. Might not his sister be at his
-house “sitting up” with the corpse? It was not
-unlikely, and so he turned and proceeded towards
-home, his steps being forced, as if his will had no
-part in his ambulation. Arriving at Warrender’s
-Close, he stood at the foot of his own stair, and,
-looking up to the windows, he found here, too,
-all dark; nor were there any neighbours astir
-who might address to him some human speech,
-if not sympathy. The silence was as complete
-as the darkness, and both seemed to derive the
-dull charm of their power from the chamber of
-death. At length he forced himself, step by step,
-up the stairs, every moment pausing, as well from
-the exhaustion produced by his moral cowardice,
-as to listen for a stray sound of the human voice.
-He had now got to the landing, and, entering the
-dark passage leading to the door of his own flat,
-he groped his way along by applying his unoccupied
-hand to the wall. He now felt his
-nerves fast giving way, his heart beat audibly,
-his limbs shook, and though he tried to correct
-this fear, he felt he had no power, though naturally
-a man of great physical courage.</p>
-
-<p>He must persevere, and a step or two more
-brought him to the door, which he found partially
-open,—a circumstance he thought strange, but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span>
-could account for by supposing that there were
-neighbours inside—gossips who meet round death-beds
-to utter wise saws with dry eyes. Yet, though
-he listened, he heard no sounds. He now pushed
-open the door, and so quietly, as if he feared that
-a grating hinge would break the silence. The
-lobby was still darker than outside, and his first
-step was towards the kitchen, the door of which
-he pushed back. There was no one there,—a
-cruse which hung upon the wall was giving forth
-the smallest glimmer of a dying light. There was
-a red peat in the grate, smouldering into white
-ashes. Turning to the servant’s bed, he found it
-unoccupied, with the clothes neatly folded down,
-no doubt by Peggy’s careful hands, and no doubt,
-too, Peggy had solemn work to do “ben the
-house.” He next crossed the lobby, partly by
-groping, and reached a parlour, the door of which
-he opened gently. Dark too, and no one within.
-The same process was gone through with the
-dining-room, and with the same negative result.
-The last door was that of the bed-room, where
-he was to encounter what he feared. It was partially
-open. He placed his ear to the chink and
-listened, but he heard nothing. There was no
-living voice there, and death speaks none. He
-pushed the door open, and looked fearfully in.
-A small rushlight on the side-table opposite the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span>
-bed threw some flickering beams around the room,
-bringing out indistinctly the white curtains of the
-bed. He approached a little, and could discover
-vaguely the form of his wife lying there. Would
-he take up the rushlight, and, with the necessary
-courage, go forward and examine the features?
-He had arrived at the spot, and at the moment,
-portrayed prospectively in his waking dream during
-his journey, and a few steps, with the rushlight
-in his hand, would realise the image he had
-brooded over so long. He struggled with himself,
-but without avail. Any little courage he had
-been for the last few minutes trying to summon
-up utterly gave way. There rushed into his mind
-vague fancies and fears,—creatures of the darkness
-and the death-like stillness around him, which he
-could neither analyse nor stay. He even thought
-he heard some sound from the bed where the
-corpse lay,—the consequence of all which was
-total loss of self-possession, approaching to something
-like a panic, and the effect of this, again,
-was a retreat. He sought the door, groped his
-way again through the inside lobby, got to the
-outer door, along the outer passage, down the stair
-to the street.</p>
-
-<p>Nor when he got there did he pull up and begin
-to think of the extreme pusillanimity, if not folly,
-of his conduct. Even if he had tried, he could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span>
-only have wound up his self-crimination by the
-ordinary excuse—that he could not help it. The
-house, with its stretched corpse, deserted rooms,
-its darkness and silence, was frightful to him. He
-could not return until he found some one to accompany
-him; and he satisfied himself of the
-reasonableness of this condition by the fact that
-the servant herself had fled in fear from the dismal
-scene. He began to move, though almost
-involuntarily, down the Canongate, his step quick
-and hurried, after the manner of those who are
-pursued by some danger, the precise nature of
-which they do not stop to examine. He even
-found a slight relief in the muscular exertion, and
-thus hurrying on, he reached the Duke’s Walk,
-and came to the heap of stones called Muschet’s
-Cairn, from Nichol Muschet of Boghall, who there
-murdered his wife. With no object but movement
-to dispel his misery, it was indifferent to
-him whither he should go; and hurrying to Arthur’s
-Seat, he began to climb the hill, regardless
-of the dangerous characters often encountered
-there at night, any one of whom he had courage
-enough to have throttled at the moment he was
-flying from what was little more than a mere
-phantom.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the moon had risen, and was illuminating
-at intervals the north-east side of the hill,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span>
-leaving all in comparative darkness again as she
-got behind the thick clouds which hung heavily
-in the sky; but the light was of no value to one
-who was moved only by the impulse of a distraction.
-Yet, as he stood for a moment, and looked
-back upon the city, with that Warrender’s Close
-in the heart of it, and that house in the close, and
-that room with the rushlight within the house, and
-that bed in the room, and that figure so still and
-silent in the bed, he became conscious of a circumstance
-which had escaped him. He found that
-in his wild wandering, apparently without any
-other aim than to allay unbearable feelings by
-exertion, he had been unconsciously following,
-step by step, the very track which he and his
-now lost Jean had taken in a walk of the afternoon
-of the Sunday preceding his departure for
-Glasgow. The thought thus coming as a discovery
-was in itself a mystery, and he felt it to
-be a kind of duty—though with what sanction
-of a higher power he knew not—to continue that
-same track of the Sunday walk which had been
-consecrated by the sweet intercourse of two loving
-hearts. In execution of which purpose he kept
-moving towards the east shoulder of the hill, and
-such hold had this religious fancy taken of him,
-that he looked about for places in the track where
-some part of their conversation had occurred,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span>
-which, from some peculiarity in it, had remained
-upon his memory. Nay, so weak did he become
-in his devotion, that he threw himself down on
-the cold grass at spots where Jean had required
-a rest, and had leant her head upon his shoulder,
-and had been repaid by some note of endearment.
-But in these reclining postures, which assumed the
-form of a species of worship, he remained only till
-the terrible thought of his privation again rose
-uppermost in his mind, forcing him to start to his
-feet by a sudden spring, and to go on again, and
-brush through the whins that grew on the hill-side,
-as if he courted their obstruction as a relief.</p>
-
-<p>It is said that our ideas produce time, and our
-feelings devour it; and this is true at least where
-the feelings are of apprehension and fear of some
-inevitable event to occur in the future. He had
-still the ordeal to pass through. The sun would
-rise, in the light of which he would be forced to
-look on the dead face, and in place of considering
-the time occupied by these wanderings to and fro
-long and weary, the moments, minutes, hours,
-passed with such rapidity that the moon had gone
-far on in her journey, and the gray streaks of dawn
-were opening up a view to the east, before he could
-realise the passage of the time which had been, as
-it were, swallowed up by his desire to postpone
-what, by the laws of nature and society, he was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span>
-bound to endure. How many times he had gone
-round the hill and up to the top, and down to
-Duddingstone, and along by the village road, and
-in through the bog, to begin his rounds again, he
-could not have told. But at length the sun glared
-threateningly in his face. Time defied him, and
-at length he saw the smoke of the chimneys begin
-to rise from the city. The red peat he had seen
-in the grate of his own kitchen would at least
-yield none. The household gods had deserted his
-hearth. Death and silence now reigned there. He
-heard eight o’clock sound from St Giles’s. The
-people were beginning to move in all directions—all
-in search of pleasure, the ultimate end of all
-man’s exertions—and he could no longer find a
-refuge in darkness or distance; so he began to
-move in the direction of the town with the weariness
-and lassitude of exhaustion rendering his legs
-rigid and his feet heavy, in addition to the hopelessness
-of a stricken heart. When he got to the
-Watergate, he began to see faces of people whom
-he knew, and who knew him; but he felt no desire
-to speak, and they doubtless from delicacy
-passed, without showing any desire to stop him.
-At length he arrived at the head of Warrender’s
-Close, and now he felt as if he were more submissive
-to the necessity of what seemed to be fate,
-moving his limbs with more will—even with something<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span>
-like a wish on his mind to put an end to a
-long agony. Down and down step by step, the
-drooping head responsive in its nods to the movement
-of his body; up the stair step after step deliberately,
-resolutely; along the outer passage;
-now opposite his own door. That door was now
-closed, giving indication that the servant, or some
-friend or neighbour, had been in the house since
-he left. He tapped gently. The door was opened
-almost upon the instant, and Mr John Dalrymple
-was immediately encompassed by the arms of a
-woman screaming in the exultation of immoderate
-joy.</p>
-
-<p>“John, dear John, how delighted I am to see
-you,—for oh, we have been in such dreadful fear
-about you since Peggy found your portmanteau
-in the lobby; but, thank God, you are come at
-last, and just in time for a fine warm breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p>The ejaculation, or rather screaming of which
-words was very easy, because very natural, to Mrs
-Jean Dalrymple, in the happy circumstances in
-which she found herself after so much apprehension
-produced by the mystery connected with the
-portmanteau, but as for Mr John Dalrymple speaking
-even to the extent of a single syllable was out
-of the question, unless some angel other than she
-of the house had touched his lips with the fire of
-inspiration, in place of his receiving the kisses of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span>
-his wife. And this was so far well, for he certainly
-would have made a bungle of any attempt at the
-moment to express his feelings, besides laying
-himself open to a heavier charge of folly than that
-which already stood at the wrong side of his account
-of wisdom, or even common sense. So
-quietly taking off his hat he led the way into the
-breakfast-parlour, where he saw the breakfast
-things all neatly laid, beside a glowing fire, before
-which lay his brindled cat, not the least happy of
-the three; whilst Peggy, who had some forgotten
-thing to put on the table, had a pleasant smile on
-her face, just modified in a slight degree with a
-little apprehension which probably neither the master
-nor mistress could comprehend.</p>
-
-<p>“I will tell you, Jeannie, all about the portmanteau,
-and perhaps something more, when we sit
-down to breakfast,” words which in the meantime
-were satisfactory to Mrs Jean; and the event they
-conditioned for soon arrived, for the wife was all
-curiosity and despatch, and Peggy all duty and
-attention.</p>
-
-<p>The story was very soon told, nor did Mrs Jean
-interrupt the narrative by a single word as she sat
-with staring eyes and open mouth listening to the
-strange tale.</p>
-
-<p>“There is the letter with the dead seal,” said he,
-as he handed it over to her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span>Mrs Jean read it, and then began to examine it
-as if she was scrutinising the form of the written
-words.</p>
-
-<p>“That is the handwriting of Bob Balfour, my
-old admirer,” said she, at length, with animation.
-“I know his hand as well as I know yours, and he
-has done this in revenge for your having taken me
-from him. I will show you proof.”</p>
-
-<p>And going to a cabinet she took therefrom some
-letters, which she handed to her husband. These
-proved two things: first, that the letter with the
-black seal, purporting to be signed by Surgeon
-Morgan, was in the handwriting of Balfour, though
-considerably disguised; and secondly, that he had
-been an ardent lover of Jean, and, perhaps, on that
-account an enemy to the man who had been fortunate
-enough to secure her affections and her
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“All clear enough; but I shall have my revenge,
-too!” cried the husband. “In the meantime there
-are some things to be explained. Why did you
-not write?”</p>
-
-<p>“I wrote to you last night,” said Jean. “You
-had posted your letter too late.”</p>
-
-<p>“And why was not Peggy in the house last
-night at twelve, when I came home?”</p>
-
-<p>“Peggy must answer that herself,” answered
-Mrs Jean, smiling, and looking from her husband<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span>
-to Peggy, and from Peggy to her husband, as she
-spoke; “but I think I know what her answer will
-be.”</p>
-
-<p>And that answer was indeed very simple,
-amounting to no more than the very natural fact
-that Peggy, after her mistress had retired to rest,
-had gone up the common stair to Widow Henderson’s,
-whose son Jock was courting Peggy at the
-time with all commendable assiduity, and considerable
-chance of success.</p>
-
-<p>But our story, though thus so satisfactorily explained,
-is not yet done. Nay, as we have said,
-its termination was in the court, where Mr Dalrymple
-sued Balfour for damages and <i>solatium</i> for
-his cowardly and cruel act. Nor was this action
-itself an ordinary matter, for it interested the lawyers
-of the day, not by the romantic facts which
-led to it, but the legal principles which flowed out
-of it. Balfour’s counsel objected to the relevancy,
-that is, denied there was in a lie or practical joke
-any cause of action. This defence gave rise to
-the informations we have mentioned, for the point
-raised was new and difficult. It was argued by
-Balfour that lies in the form of hoaxes are told
-every day, some good and some bad. Men know
-this, and ought to be upon their guard, which can
-be their only security,—for if such lies were actionable,
-one-half of society would be at law with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span>
-other. And as for any injury inflicted on Mr
-Dalrymple, it was doubtful whether the pleasure
-he experienced that morning when enclosed in the
-arms of his wife, did not more than compensate
-for his prior sufferings. On the other hand the
-pursuer argued, that by the law of Scotland there
-is no wrong without a legal remedy, and that
-having suffered by the cruel deceit both in his
-feelings and in his purse, (for he left his business
-unfinished,) he was entitled to recover. We have
-been unable to find the judgment.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_034.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_013.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Mrs Halliday.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE are little bits of romance spread
-here and there in the routine of ordinary
-life, but for which we should be like
-the fairy Aline, somewhat weary of always the
-same flowers blooming, and the same birds singing,
-and the same play of human motives and
-passions. They are something of the nature of
-episodes which, as in the case of epic poems, are
-often the most touching and beautiful in the whole
-work. Yet the beauty is seldom felt by the actors
-themselves, who are frequently unfortunate; and
-so it is that they suffer that we may enjoy the
-pathos of their suffering, after it has gone through
-the hands of art. We are led to say this as a
-kind of prelude to one of those episodical dramas
-which occurred some eighty years ago, and for
-twenty of them formed a household story, as well
-from the singularity of the principal circumstances
-as from the devotion of the personages. But we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span>
-must go back a little from the main incidents to
-introduce to the reader a certain Patrick Halliday,
-a general agent for the sale of English broadcloth,
-whose place of business was in the Lawnmarket,
-and dwelling-house in a tenement long called Peddie’s
-Land, situated near the Old Assembly Close.
-It belongs not much to our story to say that Mr
-Halliday was pretty well-to-do in the world,
-though probably even with youth and fair looks,
-if he had been a poor man, he would not have
-secured as he did the hand of a certain young
-lady, at that time more remarkable than he. Her
-name was Julia Vallance. We know no more of
-her except one particular, which many people
-would rather be known by than by wealth, or even
-family honours, and that was personal beauty—not
-of that kind which catches the eye of the common
-people, and which is of ordinary occurrence, but of
-that superior order which, addressing itself to a
-cultivated taste, secures an admiration which can
-be justified by principles. And so it came to pass
-that Julia had before her marriage attained to the
-reputation—probably not a matter of great ambition
-to herself, certainly not at all times very enviable—of
-being the belle of the old city. Nor is this
-saying little, when we claim it in the face of the
-world as a truth that Edinburgh, in spite of its
-smoke, has at all times been remarkable for many<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span>
-varieties, dark and fair, of fine women. A result
-this which, perhaps, we owe to a more equal mixture
-of the two fine races, the Celt and Saxon,
-than ever took place in England. But Julia had
-brought her price, and her market having been
-made, she could afford to renounce the admiration
-of a gaping public in consideration of the love of a
-husband who was as kind to her as he was true.
-As regards their happiness as man and wife, we
-will take that in the meantime as admitted, the
-more by reason that in due time after the marriage
-they had a child; and, no doubt, they would have
-had many in succession had it not been for the
-strange occurrence which forms the fulcrum of our
-tale.</p>
-
-<p>Apart from the family in Peddie’s Land, and in
-no manner connected with it, either by blood or
-favour, was that of Mr Archibald Blair, a young
-man living in Writers’ Court, of whom we can say
-little more than that he was connected with the
-Borgue family in the Stewartry, an advocate, and
-also married. We are not informed of either the
-name or lineage of his young wife, and far less can
-we say aught of the perfections or imperfections
-she derived from nature. We are only left to
-presume that if there had been no love, there
-would probably have been no marriage, and in
-this case, also, we have the fact of a child having<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span>
-been born to help the presumption of that which,
-naturally enough, may be taken as granted.</p>
-
-<p>The two families, far asunder in point of grade,
-and equally far from any chance of acquaintanceship,
-went on in their several walks; nor are we
-entitled to say, from anything previously known
-of them, that they even knew of each other’s
-existence—unless, to be sure, the reputation of
-Julia for her personal perfections might have come
-to Blair’s ears as it did to many who had perhaps
-never seen her; but, then, the marriage of a beauty
-is generally the end of her fame, as it is of her
-maiden career; and those who, before that event,
-are entitled to look and admire, and, perhaps, wish
-to whisper their aspirations, not less than to gaze
-on her beauty, leave the fair one to the happy man
-to whom the gods have assigned her.</p>
-
-<p>We must now allow four years to have passed,
-during all which time Patrick Halliday and his
-wife—still, we presume, retaining her beauty, at
-least in the matronly form—were happy as the
-day is long, or, rather we should say, as the day is
-short, for night is more propitious to love than day.
-Nothing was known to have occurred to break the
-harmony which had begun in love, and surely
-when we have, as there appeared to be here, the
-three requisites of happiness mentioned by the
-ancients—health, beauty, and wealth, there was no<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span>
-room for any suspicion that the good deities repented
-of their gifts. But all this only tended to
-deepen the shadows of a mystery which we are
-about to revive at this late period.</p>
-
-<p>One day, when Patrick Halliday returned from
-a journey to Carlisle, he was thunderstruck by the
-intelligence communicated to him by his servant,
-that his wife had disappeared two days before, and
-no one could tell whither she had gone. The servant,
-by her own report, had been sent to Leith
-on a message, and had taken the daughter, little
-Julia, with her; and when she came back, she
-found the door unlocked, and her mistress gone.
-She had made inquiries among the neighbours, she
-had gone to the acquaintances of the family, she
-had had recourse to every one and every place
-where it was likely she would get intelligence of
-her—all to no effect. Not a single individual
-could even say so much as that he or she had
-seen her that day, and at length, wearied out by
-her inquiries, she had had recourse to the supposition
-that she had followed her husband to Carlisle.</p>
-
-<p>The effect of this strange intelligence was simply
-stupifying. Halliday dropt into a chair, and, compressing
-his temples with his trembling hands,
-seemed to try to retain his consciousness against
-the echoes of words which threatened to take it
-away. For a time he had no power of thought,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span>
-and even when the ideas began again to resume
-their train, their efforts were broken and wild, tending
-to nothing but confusion.</p>
-
-<p>He put question after question to the servant,
-every answer throwing him back upon new suppositions,
-all equally fruitless. The only notion that
-seemed to give him any relief was, that she had gone
-to a distance, to some of her friends—wild enough,
-yet better than blank despair; and as for infidelity,
-the thought never once occurred to him, where there
-was no ground on which to rear even a doubt.</p>
-
-<p>At length, on regaining something like composure,
-he rose from his seat, and began to walk
-drearily through the house. He opened his desk
-and found that a considerable sum of money he
-had left there was untouched. He next opened
-the press in the wall, where she kept her clothes.
-He could not see anything wanting—the gown
-was there which latterly she had been in the habit
-of putting on when she went out to walk with little
-Julia; her two bonnets, the good and the better—the
-one for everyday and the one for Sunday—hung
-upon their pegs. Her jewels, too, which were
-in a drawer of her cabinet, were all there, with the
-exception of the marriage-ring she was in the habit
-of wearing every day. There was nothing wanting,
-save her ordinary body clothes, including the
-fringed yellow wrapper in which, during the forenoon,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span>
-she used to perform her domestic duties, and
-which he had often thought became her better
-than even her silks. Wherever she had gone, she
-must have departed in her undress and bareheaded—nay,
-her slippers must have been on her feet,
-for not only were they away, but the high-heeled
-shoes by which she replaced them when she went
-to walk were in the place where they usually lay.</p>
-
-<p>In the midst of all this mystery, the relations
-and others, who had been quickened into a high-wrought
-curiosity by the inquiries made by the
-servant, dropt in one after another in the expectation
-that the missing wife would have returned with
-her husband, but they went away more astonished
-than before, and leaving the almost frantic husband
-to an increase of his apprehension and fears.</p>
-
-<p>The dark night came on, and he retired to bed,
-there to have the horrors of a roused fancy added to
-the deductions of a hapless and demented reason.</p>
-
-<p>In the morning he rose after a sleepless and
-miserable night, tried to eat a little breakfast with
-the playful little Julia, the image of her mother,
-by his side, asking him every now and then, in the
-midst of her prattle, what had become of mammy,
-rose and went forth, scarcely knowing whither to
-go. Directing his steps almost mechanically towards
-his place of business, he ascertained that his
-clerk knew no more of the missing wife than the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span>
-others. On emerging again from his office, he was
-doomed to run the ordinary gauntlet of inquiries,
-and not less of strange looks where the inquirers
-seemed afraid to put the question. Others tried to
-read him by a furtive glance, and went away with
-their construction. No one could give him a word
-of comfort, if, indeed, he had not sometimes reason
-to suspect that there were of his anxious friends
-some who were not ill pleased that he had lost, no
-doubt by elopement, a wife who outshone theirs.</p>
-
-<p>At length he found his way to the bailie’s office,
-where he got some of the town constables to institute
-a secret search among the closes, and thus the
-day passed resultless and weary, leaving him to
-another night of misery.</p>
-
-<p>Next day brought scarcely any change, except
-in the wider spread throughout the city of the
-news, which, in the circumstances, degenerated
-into the ordinary scandal. Nor did the husband
-make any endeavour to check this, by stating to
-any one the part of the mystery connected with
-the clothes—a secret which he kept to himself,
-and brooded over with a morbid feeling he perhaps
-could not have explained to himself. And
-that day passed also, leaving at its close an increased
-curiosity on the part of the public, but
-with no change in the conviction that the lady had
-merely played her husband false.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span>The next day was not so barren—nay, it was
-pregnant with a fact calculated to increase the
-excitement without ameliorating the scandal. On
-going up the High Street, Halliday met one of the
-officers who had been engaged in the search, and
-who told him that another citizen had disappeared
-in a not less mysterious way. The question, “Who
-is it?” was put, but not answered, except by
-another question.</p>
-
-<p>“Was Mrs Halliday acquainted with Mr Archibald
-Blair, advocate, in Writers’ Court?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” was the answer of the husband; “and
-why do you put the question?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because Mrs Blair requested me,” replied the
-officer. “She is in great distress about her husband,
-and I think you had better see her.”</p>
-
-<p>And so thought Patrick Halliday, as he hurried
-away to Writers’ Court, much in the condition of
-one who would rush into the flames to avoid the
-waves; for, dreadful as the death of his beloved
-wife would be to him, more dreadful still was the
-thought that she had eloped with another man,
-and that man might be Archibald Blair. On reaching
-the house, where he was admitted upon the instant,
-he found a counterpart of his own domestic
-tragedy—everything telling the tale of weariness,
-anxiety, and fear; comers and goers with lugubrious
-countenances; and Mrs Blair herself in a chair<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span>
-the picture of that very misery he had himself endured,
-and was at that very moment enduring.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you?” she cried, as he approached
-her. “Are you come with good news or bad?”</p>
-
-<p>“My name is Halliday, madam,” replied he.
-“I understand you wish to see me.”</p>
-
-<p>“As much as you may perhaps wish to see me,”
-answered the lady. “The town has been ringing
-for days with the news of the sudden disappearance
-of your wife, who is said to be——,” and she faltered
-at the word, “very beautiful. Is it true, and
-on what day did she disappear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Too true, madam,” groaned the unhappy man.
-“Tuesday was the day on which she was found
-amissing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tuesday! Oh, unfortunate day!” rejoined she.
-“The very one, sir, when my Archibald left me,
-perhaps never to return. Can you tell me,” she
-continued, as she sobbed hysterically, “whether
-your wife and my husband were ever at any time
-acquainted? Oh, I fear your answer, but I must
-hear it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think,” replied he, “that my wife ever
-knew of the existence of your husband. Even <i>I</i>
-never heard of his name, though I now understand
-he was a promising advocate. I can, therefore,
-give you small satisfaction; and, I presume, I can
-get as little from you when I ask you, what I presume<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span>
-is unnecessary, whether you ever heard that
-my wife was in any way acquainted with Mr
-Blair?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied she; “neither he nor I ever mentioned
-her name, nor did it once come to my ears
-that Archibald was ever seen in the company of
-any woman answering to the description of your
-wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Most wonderful circumstance, madam,” replied
-Halliday, into whose mind a thought at the moment
-came, suggested by the mystery of the left
-clothes. “Pray, madam,” he continued, “can you
-draw no conclusion from Mr Blair’s desk or wardrobe
-whether or not he had provided himself for
-the necessities of a journey?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is the very wonder of all the wonders
-about this strange case, sir,” she answered. “I
-have made a careful search, knowing the money
-that was in the house, and having sent and inquired
-whether he had drawn any from the bank,
-I am satisfied that he had not a penny of money
-upon him. As for his wardrobe, every article is
-there, with the exception of what he used when he
-went to take a walk in the morning—a light dress,
-with a round felt hat in place of the square one.
-Even his cane stands there in the lobby. Where
-could he have gone in such an undress, and without
-money?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>A pertinent question, which was just the counterpart
-of that which Patrick Halliday had put to
-himself. The resemblance between the two cases
-struck him as wonderful, and no doubt if he had
-stated to Mrs Blair the analogous facts connected
-with his wife’s wardrobe, the untouched money, and
-the missing slippers, that lady would have shared
-in his wonder; but he felt disinclined to add to
-her apprehensions by acquainting her with facts
-which could lead to no practical use. There was
-sufficient community of feeling between them without
-going into further minutiæ, and the conversation
-ended with looks of fearful foreboding.</p>
-
-<p>Patrick Halliday left the house of the advocate
-only to saunter like one broke loose from Bedlam,
-going hither and thither without aim; learning, as
-he went, that the absence of Mr Blair had got
-abroad abreast of his own evil, and that the public
-had adopted the theory that his wife and the advocate
-had gone off together. The conclusion was
-only too natural, nor would it in all likelihood have
-been much modified even though all the facts inferring
-some other solution had come to be known.
-Even he himself was coming gradually to see that
-the disappearance of the two occurring at the same
-time, almost at the same hour, could not be countervailed
-by the other facts. But behind all this
-there was the apparent difficulty to be overcome<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span>
-that two individuals so well known in a news-loving
-city should have been in the habit of meeting,
-wherever the place might be, without any one having
-ever seen them—nay, the almost impossible
-thing that a woman without a bonnet, arrayed in
-a yellow wrapper, and with coloured slippers on
-her feet, could have passed through any of the
-streets without being recognised, and that the
-same immunity from all observation should have
-been enjoyed by a public man so well known—dressed,
-too, in a manner calculated to attract
-notice. There was certainly another theory, and
-some people entertained the possibility, if not the
-reasonableness of it, that the two clandestine lovers
-might have concealed themselves for an obvious
-purpose in some of those houses whose keepers
-have an interest in the concealment of their guilty
-lodgers. But this theory must have appeared a
-very dubious one, for it involved a degree of imprudence,
-if not recklessness, amounting to voluntary
-ruin, where a little foresight might have secured
-their object without further sacrifice than the care
-required in the preservation of their guilty secret.
-But, unlikely as this theory was, it was not left untested,
-for special visits and inquiries were made in
-all places known as likely to offer refuge to persons
-in their circumstances and condition.</p>
-
-<p>All was still in vain; another day passed, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span>
-another, till the entire week proved the inutility of
-both search and inquiry. The ordinary age of a
-wonder was attained, with the usual consequence
-of the beginning of that decay which is inherent
-in all things. Yet it is with these moral organisms
-as with the physical—they cast their seeds to come
-up again as memories. A month elapsed, and then
-another, and another, till these periods carried the
-mere diluted interest of the early days. So it is
-that the big animal, the world, on which man is
-one of the small parasites, supplies the sap as the
-desires require, and changes it as the appetite
-changes, with that variety which is the law of
-nature. Even as regarded Patrick Halliday and
-Mrs Blair, the moral granulation began gradually
-and silently to fill up the excavated sores in their
-hearts, and by and by it ought by rule to have
-come about that the cicatrices would follow, and
-then the smoothing of the covering, even to the
-pellucid skin. And as for the public, new wonders,
-from the ever-discharging womb of events, were
-rising up every day, so that the story of the once
-famed Julia Halliday and the advocate Blair was
-at length assuming the sombre colours of one of
-the acted romances of life. But it takes long to
-make a complete romance. There is a vitality in
-moral events as in some physical ones which revives
-in overt symptoms, and so it was in the case<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span>
-we are concerned with. A whole year had at length
-passed, and brooding silence had waxed thick over
-the now comparatively-old event; but the silence
-was to be broken by the speaking of an inanimate
-thing as strange in itself as the old mystery.</p>
-
-<p>One day, when Patrick Halliday had returned
-from his office in the upper part of the city to
-Peddie’s Land for the purpose of getting a letter
-which he had by mistake left on the table in the
-morning, he found that the servant had gone out
-as usual for the purpose of taking little Julia for an
-airing; but, getting entrance by his own key, he
-proceeded along the lobby to the parlour, on opening
-the door of which, and entering, his eye was
-attracted to something on the floor. The room
-was at the time shaded by the hangings drawn
-together to keep out the rays of the sun, and, not
-distinguishing the object very well, he thought it
-was some plaything of Julia’s. On taking it up he
-found, to his amazement, that it was one of the
-slippers of his wife. It had a damp musty smell,
-which he found so unpleasant that he threw it
-down on the floor again, and then began to think
-where in the world it had come from, or how it
-came to be there. The servant might explain it
-when she came in; but why she should have gone
-out with that remaining to be explained he could
-not understand. Meanwhile his only conclusion<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span>
-was, that sufficient search had not been made for
-the slippers, and that the dog, which was out with
-the maid, had dragged the article from some nook
-or corner which had escaped observation. Under
-this impression he felt inclined to seek for the
-neighbour of that which had been so strangely
-found, altogether oblivious of the fact that, if the
-slipper had been left by the runaway, she must
-have departed either bare-footed or in her stocking-soles;
-for her shoes, so far as he could know,
-had been accounted for.</p>
-
-<p>But he was not to be called upon to make this
-search; something else awaited him; for, as he sat
-enveloped in the darkness of this new mystery, his
-eye, wandering about in the shaded room, was
-attracted by another object. Rising, as if by a
-start, he proceeded to the spot, and took up, to his
-further amazement, a man’s shoe. He at first supposed
-that it was one of his own; but on looking
-at the silver buckle, on which were engraved—not
-an uncommon thing at the time—two initial letters,
-(these were “A. B.,”) he was at no loss for the
-name. It was that of the missing advocate. This
-shoe, like the slipper, was covered with white
-mould, and smelt of an odour different from and
-more disagreeable than mere must. He was now
-in more perplexity than ever, nor could he bring
-his mind to a supposition of how these things came<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span>
-to be there. It was the time of popular superstitions,
-when intelligences in the shape of ghosts and
-hobgoblins, and all forms of good and devilish
-beings, seemed to have nothing else to do than to
-entertain themselves with the fancies, feelings, and
-passions of men, and we might not be surprised to
-find that Patrick Halliday was brought under the
-feeling of an indescribable awe—nay, it is doubtful
-if even the veritable spirits of his wife and her
-paramour, if they had then and there appeared in
-that shaded room before him, would have produced
-a stronger impression upon him than did those
-speechless yet eloquent things. A moral vertigo
-was on him; he threw himself again into a chair,
-and felt his knees knocking against each other, as
-if the nerves, paralysed by the deep impression
-upon the brain, were no longer under the influence
-of the will.</p>
-
-<p>After sitting for a time in this state of perplexity
-and awe, from which he could not extricate himself,
-the servant, with his daughter, returned. He
-called her to his presence, and asked her, pointing
-to the shoe and the slipper, “how those things
-came to be there?”</p>
-
-<p>The girl was seized with as great wonder as he
-himself had been, and there was even a greater
-cause for astonishment on her part, insomuch as,
-according to her declaration, she had cleaned out<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span>
-and dusted the parlour within half an hour of going
-forth, and these articles were certainly not in the
-room then. As for the outer door, she had left it
-fastened in the usual way, and the windows were
-carefully drawn down before her departure. Where
-<i>could</i> they have come from, she questioned both
-her master and herself, with an equal chance of a
-satisfactory answer from either. Then she would
-not have been a woman if she could have resisted
-the claims of superstition in a case so inexplicable,
-so extraordinary, so unparalleled even in winter
-fireside stories. And so she looked at her master,
-and he looked at her, in blank wonder, without
-either of them having the power of venturing even
-a surmise as to how or by what earthly or unearthly
-means those ominous things, so terrible in the associations
-by which they were linked to their owners,
-came to be where they were.</p>
-
-<p>After some longer time uselessly occupied,
-Patrick Halliday bethought himself of going to
-Writers’ Court, so taking up the silver-buckled
-shoe, and putting it into his large coat pocket, he
-proceeded to Mrs Blair’s. He found her in that
-state of reconciled despondency to which she had
-been reduced for more than two months; but the
-moment she saw Patrick Halliday enter, she sprang
-up as if she had been quickened by the impulse of
-a new-born hope rising amidst the clouds of a long-settled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span>
-despair. The movement was soon stayed
-when her keenness scanned the face of the man;
-but a new feeling took possession of her when she
-saw him draw out of his pocket the silver-buckled
-shoe with which she had been as familiar as with
-her own.</p>
-
-<p>“Where, in the Lord’s name!—” she cried, without
-being able to say more, while she seized spasmodically
-the strange object, still covered as it was
-with the mould, and with the silver obscured by
-the passage of time. And, gazing at it, she heard
-Halliday’s account of how he came to be in possession
-of it, along with the slipper.</p>
-
-<p>“Have you the neighbour in the house?” he
-inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no,” said she; “but I am certain that that
-is one of the shoes Archibald had on the day he
-disappeared. Oh, sir, I can scarcely look at these
-initials; and there is such a death-like odour about
-it that it sickens me.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is the same with the slipper,” said he. “It
-would seem that both of them had been taken off
-the feet of corpses.”</p>
-
-<p>“Strange mystery altogether,” added she, with
-a deep sigh. “Oh, I could have wished I had not
-seen these—it only serves to renew my care, without
-satisfying my natural desire to know the fate
-of one I loved so dearly.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span>“It is so with me as well, madam,” rejoined Mr
-Patrick; “but the finding of this shoe and slipper
-may satisfy us of the connexion between your husband
-and my wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes,” ejaculated she; “but oh, merciful
-God! what a wretched satisfaction to the bereaved
-wife and the deserted child. You are a man, and
-can bear up. A poor woman must sit in solitude
-and mourn, while the flesh wastes day by day
-under the weary spirit.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you can suggest nothing to help me to an
-explanation of this new mystery?” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing; all is darker than ever,” replied she.
-“But, sir, you have got the only trace that for a
-long year has been found of this most unfortunate—I
-fear, unhappy pair, and it will be for you to
-improve it in some way. Something more will follow.
-I will go over with you myself to your house.
-A woman’s eyes are sharper than a man’s. I
-would like to examine the house, and judge for
-myself.”</p>
-
-<p>And the lady, rising, went and dressed herself.
-In a few minutes more they were on the way to
-Peddie’s Land; probably, as they went along, objects
-of speculation to those who knew the strange
-link by which their fortunes were joined. Nor was
-it unlikely that evil tongues might suggest that as
-their partners had played them false, they intended<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span>
-to make amends by a kind of poetical retribution.
-Alas! how different from their thoughts, how
-unlike their feelings, how far distant from their
-object!</p>
-
-<p>On arriving at the house, a new wonder was to
-meet them, almost upon the threshold. The servant
-ran forward to Halliday, holding in her hand
-the partner of the silver-buckled shoe which her
-master had in his pocket. She was utterly unable
-to say a word, her eyes were strained not less in
-width than in intensity, her mouth was open like
-that of an idiot, and motioning and muttering,
-“Come, come,” she led her master and Mrs Blair
-on through two or three rooms till she came to a
-small closet, at the back of which there was a door,
-now for the first time in Patrick Halliday’s experience
-found open. In explanation of which peculiarity
-we require to suspend our narrative for a
-minute or two, to enable us to inform the reader,
-that the house then occupied by Halliday had, five
-years before, and immediately preceding his marriage,
-been in possession of George Morgan, a
-wool-dealer.</p>
-
-<p>Morgan’s warehouse, where he stored his wool,
-entered from a close to the west, through a pend,
-between Peddie’s Land and the large tenement
-adjoining. The run of the warehouse was thus at
-right angles to that of the dwelling-house, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span>
-Morgan was thereby enabled to knock out a small
-door at the back of a press, through which he could
-conveniently pass to his place of business without
-being at the trouble of going down the close to the
-main entry. After Morgan’s death, the house and
-warehouse went to his heirs, from whom Halliday
-rented the former, the other having been let to
-some other person for three years, after which it
-had been without a tenant. We may state also
-that Halliday was at first quite aware of the existence
-of the door at the back of the press, and had
-even taken the precaution of getting it locked; but
-as no requisition had been made by the tenant of
-the warehouse to have the communication more
-securely barred, the door had been left in the condition
-we have described.</p>
-
-<p>Resuming our story: the servant, when she came
-to the point where we left her, stopped and trembled;
-but by this time Halliday had begun to see
-whither these pointings tended, and pushing the
-girl aside with a view to examine the door, he was
-astonished to find that it opened to his touch—a
-fact better known by Nettle, his dog, who had, as
-the shoes testified, been there before.</p>
-
-<p>On entering the warehouse, all the windows of
-which were shut except one, through which a ray
-of light struggled to illuminate merely a part of
-the room, the party beheld a sight which in all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span>
-likelihood would retain a vividness in their memories
-after all other images of earthly things had
-passed away. Right in the middle of the partial
-light admitted by the solitary window lay the
-bodies of two persons—a man and a woman. The
-latter had on her a yellow morning gown trimmed
-with green. One slipper was on, the other off; her
-head, which was uncovered, was surmounted by
-the high toupee of the times, which consisted of the
-collected hair brushed up and supported by a concealed
-cushion. The man had on a morning dress,
-with a round felt hat, which still retained its place
-on his head. There was no corruption in the bodies
-of that kind called moist. They were nearly
-shrivelled, but that to an extent which reduced
-them to little other than skeletons covered with a
-brown skin—a state of the bodies which probably
-resulted from the dry air of the wareroom, heated
-as it was by a smithy being immediately below it,
-the smoke of which was conveyed by a flue up the
-side of the tenement. The two bodies lay clasped
-in each other’s arms, the faces were so close that
-the noses almost met; the eyes were open, and
-though the balls were shrunk so much that they
-could not be seen, the lids, which had shrunk also,
-were considerably apart. These were the bodies
-of Julia Halliday and Archibald Blair.</p>
-
-<p>There was not a word spoken by the searchers.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span>
-Their eyes told them all that was necessary to
-convince them of the identity of those who lay
-before them. Nor, when Halliday took up a
-paper which lay at the head of Blair, did he think
-it necessary to make any observation of surprise
-at what was in keeping with what they saw.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, read,” said Mrs Blair, as she gasped in the
-midst of her agony.</p>
-
-<p>Halliday, holding up the paper so as to receive
-the light, read as follows:—</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Whoever you may be, man or woman, who
-first discovers the bodies of me and her who lies
-by my side will please, as he or she hopes for
-mercy, deliver this paper either to Mr Patrick
-Halliday of Peddie’s Land, or Mrs Archibald Blair
-in Writers’ Court, that they may take the means
-of getting us decently interred. Julia Halliday
-and I, Archibald Blair, met and looked and loved.
-These few words contain the secret of our misfortune,
-and must be the excuse of our crime in taking
-away our lives. Our love was too strong to
-be quelled by resolution, too sacred to be corrupted
-by coarse enjoyment of the senses, too
-hopeless to be borne amidst the impediments of
-our mutual obligations to our spouses. We felt
-and believed that it was only our mortal bodies
-that belonged to our partners, our spirits were ours<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span>
-and ours alone by that decree which made the
-soul, with its sympathies and its elections, before
-ever the world was, or marriage, which is only a
-convention of man’s making. We loved, we
-sinned not, yet we were unhappy, because we
-could not fulfil the obligations of affection to those
-we had sworn at the altar to love and honour.
-Often have we torn ourselves from each other
-with vows on our lips of mutual avoidance, but
-these efforts were vain. We could not live
-estranged, and we flew again to each other’s arms,
-again to vow, again to meet, again to be blessed,
-again to be tortured. This life was unendurable;
-and, left to the alternative of parting or dying, we
-selected the latter. The poison was bought by me
-in two separate vials. As I write, Julia holds hers
-in her hands, and smiles as she is about to swallow
-the drug. We have resolved to lie down face to
-face, so as to be able to look into each other’s eyes
-and watch jealously Death as he drags us slowly
-from each other. I have now swallowed my draft,
-smiling the while in Julia’s face. She does the
-same. The pen trembles in my hand. Farewell,
-my wife: Julia mutters, ‘Farewell, my husband.’
-Against neither have we ever sinned.</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Archibald Blair.</span>”</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_060.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Mary Brown.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IF the reader of what I am going to relate
-for his or her edification, or for perhaps
-a greater luxury, viz., wonder, should be
-so unreasonable as to ask for my authority, I shall
-be tempted, because a little piqued, to say that no
-one should be too particular about the source of
-pleasure, inasmuch as, if you will enjoy nothing
-but what you can prove to be a reality, you will,
-under good philosophical leadership, have no great
-faith in the sun—a thing which you never saw, the
-existence of which you are only assured of by a
-round figure of light on the back of your eye, and
-which may be likened to tradition; so all you have
-to do is to believe like a good Catholic, and be contented,
-even though I begin so poorly as to try to
-interest you in two very humble beings who have
-been dead for many years, and whose lives were
-like a steeple without a bell in it, the intention of
-which you cannot understand till your eye reaches<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span>
-the weathercock upon the top, and then you wonder
-at so great an erection for so small an object.
-The one bore the name of William Halket, a young
-man, who, eight or nine years before he became of
-much interest either to himself or any other body,
-was what in our day is called an Arab of the City—a
-poor street boy, who didn’t know who his
-father was, though, as for his mother, he knew her
-by a pretty sharp experience, insomuch as she
-took from him every penny he made by holding
-horses, and gave him more cuffs than cakes in return.
-But Bill got out of this bondage by the
-mere chance of having been taken a fancy to by
-Mr Peter Ramsay, innkeeper and stabler, in St
-Mary’s Wynd, (an ancestor, we suspect, of the
-Ramsays of Barnton,) who thought he saw in the
-City Arab that love of horse-flesh which belongs
-to the Bedouin, and who accordingly elevated him
-to the position of a stable-boy, with board and as
-many shillings a week as there are days in that
-subdivision of time.</p>
-
-<p>Nor did William Halket—to whom for his
-merits we accord the full Christian name—do any
-discredit to the perspicacity of his master, if it
-was not that he rather exceeded the hopes of his
-benefactor, for he was attentive to the horses, civil
-to the farmers, and handy at anything that came
-in his way. Then, to render the connexion reciprocal,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span>
-William was gratefully alive to the conviction
-that if he had not been, as it were, taken from
-the street, the street might have been taken from
-him, by his being locked up some day in the Heart
-of Midlothian. So things went on in St Mary’s
-Wynd for five or six years, and might have gone
-on for twice that period, had it not been that at a
-certain hour of a certain day William fell in love
-with a certain Mary Brown, who had come on that
-very day to be an under-housemaid in the inn;
-and strange enough, it was a case of “love at first
-sight,” the more by token that it took effect the
-moment that Mary entered the stable with a glass
-of whisky in her hand sent to him by Mrs Ramsay.
-No doubt it is seldom that a fine blooming young
-girl, with very pretty brown hair and very blue
-eyes, appears to a young man with such a recommendation
-in her hand, but we are free to say that
-the whisky had nothing to do with an effect which
-is well known to be the pure result of the physical
-attributes of the individual. Nay, our statement
-might have been proved by the counterpart effect
-produced upon Mary herself, for she was struck by
-William at the same moment when she handed
-him the glass; and we are not to assume that the
-giving of a pleasant boon is always attended with
-the same effect as the receiving of it.</p>
-
-<p>But, as our story requires, it is the love itself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span>
-between these two young persons whose fates were
-so remarkable we have to do with—not the causes,
-which are a mystery in all cases. Sure it is,
-humble in position as they were, they could love
-as strongly, as fervently, perhaps as ecstatically, as
-great people—nay, probably more so, for education
-has a greater chance of moderating the passion
-than increasing it; and so, notwithstanding
-of what Plutarch says of the awfully consuming
-love between Phrygius and Picrea, and also what
-Shakespeare has sung or said about a certain
-Romeo and a lady called Juliet, we are certain
-that the affection between these grand personages
-was not <i>more</i> genuine, tender, and true than
-that which bound the simple and unsophisticated
-hearts of Will Halket and Mary Brown.
-But at best we merely play on the surface of a
-deep subject when we try with a pen to describe
-feelings, and especially the feelings of love. We
-doubt, if even the said pen were plucked from
-Cupid’s wing, it would help us much. We are at
-best only left to a choice of expressions, and perhaps
-the strongest we could use are those which
-have already been used a thousand times—the two
-were all the world to each other, the world outside
-nothing at all to them; so that they could have
-been as happy on the top of Mount Ararat, or on
-the island of Juan Fernandez, provided they should<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span>
-be always in each other’s company, as they were
-in St Mary’s Wynd. And as for whispered protestations
-and chaste kisses—for really their love
-had a touch of romance about it you could hardly
-have expected, but which yet kept it pure, if not in
-some degree elevated above the loves of common
-people—these were repeated so often about the
-quiet parts of Arthur’s Seat and the Queen’s Park,
-and the fields about the Dumbiedykes and Duddingstone
-Loch, that they were the very moral
-aliments on which they lived. In short, to Mary
-Brown the great Duke of Buccleuch was as nothing
-compared to Willie Halket, and to Willie
-Halket the beautiful Duchess of Grammont would
-have been as nothing compared to simple Mary
-Brown. All which is very amiable and very necessary,
-for if it had been so ordained that people
-should feel the exquisite sensations of love in proportion
-as they were beautiful, or rich, or endowed
-with talent, (according to a standard,) our world
-would have been even more queer than that kingdom
-described by Gulliver, where the ugliest individual
-is made king or queen.</p>
-
-<p>Things continued in this very comfortable state
-at the old inn in St Mary’s Wynd for about a year,
-and it had come to enter into the contemplation of
-Will that upon getting an increase of his wages he
-would marry Mary and send her to live with her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span>
-mother, a poor hard-working washerwoman, in Big
-Lochend Close; whereunto Mary was so much inclined,
-that she looked forward to the day as the
-one that promised to be the happiest that she had
-yet seen, or would ever see. But, as an ancient
-saying runs, the good hour is in no man’s choice;
-and about this time it so happened that Mr Peter
-Ramsay, having had a commission from an old
-city man, a Mr Dreghorn, located as a planter in
-Virginia, to send him out a number of Scottish
-horses, suggested to William that he would do well
-to act as supercargo and groom. Mr Dreghorn
-had offered to pay a good sum to the man who
-should bring them out safe, besides paying his
-passage over and home. And Mr Ramsay would
-be ready to receive Will into his old place again
-on his return. As for Mary, with regard to whom
-the master knew his man’s intentions, she would
-remain where she was, safe from all temptation,
-and true to the choice of her heart. This offer
-pleased William, because he saw that he could
-make some money out of the adventure, whereby
-he would be the better able to marry, and make a
-home for the object of his affections; but he was
-by no means sure that Mary would consent; for
-women, by some natural divining of the heart, look
-upon delays in affairs of love as ominous and dangerous.
-And so it turned out that one Sabbath<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span>
-evening, when they were seated beneath a tree in
-the King’s Park, and William had cautiously introduced
-the subject to her, she was like other women.</p>
-
-<p>“The bird that gets into the bush,” she said, as
-the tears fell upon her cheeks, “sometimes forgets
-to come back to the cage again. I would rather
-hae the lean lintie in the hand than the fat finch
-on the wand.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you forget, Mary, love,” was the answer of
-Will, “that you can feed the lean bird, but you
-can’t feed me. It is I who must support you. It
-is to enable me to do that which induces me to go.
-I will come with guineas in my pocket where there
-are now only pennies and placks, and you know,
-Mary, the Scotch saying, ‘A heavy purse makes a
-light heart.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And an unsteady one,” rejoined Mary. “And
-you may bring something else wi’ you besides the
-guineas; may be, a wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“One of Mr Dreghorn’s black beauties,” said
-Will, laughing. “No, no, Mary, I am too fond of
-the flaxen ringlets, the rosy cheeks, and the blue
-eyes, and you know, Mary, you have all these, so
-you have me in your power. But to calm your
-fears and stop your tears I’ll tell you what I’ll
-do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Stay at hame, Will, and we’ll live and dee thegither.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span>“No,” replied Will, “but, like the genteel lover
-I have read of, I will swear on your Bible that I
-will return to you within the year, and marry you
-at the Tron Kirk, and throw my guineas into the
-lap of your marriage-gown, and live with you until
-I die.”</p>
-
-<p>For all which and some more we may draw upon
-our fancy, but certain it is, as the strange story
-goes, that Will did actually then and there—for
-Mary had been at the Tron Kirk and had her Bible
-in her pocket, (an article the want of which is not
-well supplied by the scent-bottle of our modern
-Marys,)—swear to do all he had said, whereupon
-Mary was so far satisfied that she gave up murmuring—perhaps
-no more than that. Certain also
-it is that before the month was done, Will, with his
-living kicking charges, and after more of these said
-tears from Mary than either of them had arithmetic
-enough to enable them to count, embarked
-at Leith for Richmond, at which place the sugar-planter
-had undertaken to meet him.</p>
-
-<p>We need say nothing of the voyage across the
-Atlantic—somewhat arduous at that period—nor
-need we pick up Will again till we find him in
-Richmond with his horses all safe, and as fat and
-sleek as if they had been fed by Neptune’s wife,
-and had drawn her across in place of her own steeds.
-There he found directions waiting from Mr Dreghorn<span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span>
-to the effect that he was to proceed with the
-horses to Peach Grove, his plantation, a place far
-into the heart of the country; but Will was content,
-for had he not time and to spare within the
-year, and he would see some more of the new
-world, which, so far as his experience yet went,
-seemed to him to be a good place for a freeman
-to live in. So off he went, putting up at inns by
-the way as well supplied with food and fodder as
-Mr Peter Ramsay’s, in St Mary’s Wynd, and
-showing off his nags to the planters, who wondered
-at their bone and muscle, the more by
-reason they had never seen Scotch horses before.
-As he progressed, the country seemed to Will
-more and more beautiful, and by the time he
-reached Peach Grove he had come to the unpatriotic
-conclusion that all it needed was Mary
-Brown, with her roses, and ringlets, and eyes,
-passing like an angel—lovers will be poets—among
-these ebon beauties, to make it the finest
-country in the world.</p>
-
-<p>Nor when the Scotsman reached Peach Grove
-did the rosy side of matters recede into the shady,
-for he was received in a great house by Mr Dreghorn
-with so much kindness, that, if the horses
-rejoiced in maize and oats, Will found himself, as
-the saying goes, in five-bladed clover. But more
-awaited him, even thus much more, that the planter,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span>
-and his fine lady of a wife as well, urged him to
-remain on the plantation, where he would be well
-paid and well fed; and when Will pleaded his engagement
-to return to Scotland within the year,
-the answer was ready that he might spend eight
-months in Virginia at least, which would enable
-him to take home more money—an answer that
-seemed so very reasonable, if not prudent, that
-“Sawny” saw the advantage thereof and agreed.
-But we need hardly say that this was conceded
-upon the condition made with himself, that he
-would write to Mary all the particulars, and also
-upon the condition acceded to by Mr Dreghorn,
-that he would take the charge of getting the letter
-sent to Scotland.</p>
-
-<p>All which having been arranged, Mr Halket—for
-we cannot now continue to take the liberty of
-calling him Will—was forthwith elevated to the
-position of driving negroes in place of horses, an
-occupation which he did not much relish, insomuch
-that he was expected to use the lash, an instrument
-of which he had been very chary in his treatment
-of four-legged chattels, and which he could not
-bring himself to apply with anything but a sham
-force in reference to the two-legged species. But
-this objection he thought to get over by using the
-sharp crack of his Jehu-voice, as a substitute for
-that of the whip; and in this he persevered, in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span>
-spite of the jeers of the other drivers, who told
-him the thing had been tried often, but that the
-self-conceit of the negro met the stimulant and
-choked it at the very entrance to the ear; and this
-he soon found to be true. So he began to do as
-others did, and he was the sooner reconciled to the
-strange life into which he had been precipitated by
-the happy condition of the slaves themselves, who,
-when their work was over, and at all holiday hours,
-dressed themselves in the brightest colours of red
-and blue and white, danced, sang, ate corn-cakes
-and bacon, and drank coffee with a zest which
-would have done a Scotch mechanic, with his
-liberty to produce a lock-out, much good to see.
-True, indeed, the white element of the population
-was at a discount at Peach Grove. But in addition
-to the above source of reconciliation, Halket became
-day by day more captivated by the beauty of the
-country, with its undulating surface, its wooded
-clumps, its magnolias, tulip-trees, camellias, laurels,
-passion-flowers, and palms, its bright-coloured
-birds, and all the rest of the beauties for which it
-is famous all over the world. But nature might
-charm as it might—Mary Brown was three thousand
-miles away.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the time passed pleasantly, for he
-was accumulating money, Mary’s letter would be
-on the way, and the hope of seeing her within the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span>
-appointed time was dominant over all the fascinations
-which charmed the senses. But when the
-month came in which he ought to have received a
-letter, no letter came—not much this to be thought
-of, though Mr Dreghorn tried to impress him with
-the idea that there must be some change of sentiment
-in the person from whom he expected the
-much-desired answer. So Halket wrote again,
-giving the letter, as before, to his master, who assured
-him it was sent carefully away, and while it
-was crossing the Atlantic he was busy in improving
-his penmanship and arithmetic, under the hope
-held out to him by his master that he would, if he
-remained, be raised to a book-keeper’s desk; for
-the planter had seen early that he had got hold
-of a long-headed, honest, sagacious “Sawny,” who
-would be of use to him. On with still lighter wing
-the intermediate time sped again, but with no
-better result in the shape of an answer from her
-who was still the object of his day fancies and his
-midnight dreams. Nor did all this kill his hope.
-A third letter was despatched, but the returning
-period was equally a blank. We have been counting
-by months, which, as they sped, soon brought
-round the termination of his year, and with growing
-changes too in himself, for as the notion began
-to worm itself into his mind that his beloved Mary
-was either dead or faithless, another power was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span>
-quietly assailing him from within, no other than
-ambition in the most captivating of all shapes,
-Mammon. We all know the manner in which the
-golden deity acquires his authority, nor do we
-need to have recourse to the conceit of the old
-writer who tells us that the reason why gold has
-such an influence upon man lies in the fact that it
-is of the colour of the sun, which is the fountain of
-light, and life, and joy. Certain it is, at least, that
-Halket having been taken into the counting-house
-on a raised salary, began “to lay by,” as the
-Scotch call it, and by and by, with the help of a
-little money lent to him by his master, he began
-by purchasing produce from the neighbouring plantations,
-and selling it where he might, all which he
-did with advantage, yet with the ordinary result
-to a Scotsman, that while he turned to so good
-account the king’s head, the king’s head began to
-turn his own.</p>
-
-<p>And now in place of months we must begin to
-count by lustrums, and the first five years, even
-with all the thoughts of his dead, or, at least, lost
-Mary, proved in Halket’s case the truth of the
-book written by a Frenchman, to prove that a
-man is a plant, for he had already thrown out
-from his head or heart so many roots in the Virginian
-soil that he was bidding fair to be as firmly
-fixed in his new sphere as a magnolia, and if that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>
-bore golden blossoms, so did he; yet, true to his
-first love, there was not among all these flowers
-one so fair as the fair-haired Mary. Nay, with all
-hope not yet extinguished, he had even at the end
-of the period resolved upon a visit to Scotland,
-when strangely enough, and sadly too, he was told
-by Mr Dreghorn that having had occasion to hear
-from Mr Peter Ramsay on the subject of some
-more horse dealings, that person had reported to
-him that Mary Brown, the lover of his old stable-boy,
-was dead. A communication this which, if it
-had been made at an earlier period, would have
-prostrated Halket altogether, but it was softened
-by his long foreign anticipations, and he was thereby
-the more easily inclined to resign his saddened
-soul to the further dominion of the said god, Mammon,
-for as to the notion of putting any of those
-beautiful half-castes he sometimes saw about the
-planter’s house at Peach Grove, in the place of her
-of the golden ringlets, it was nothing better than
-the desecration of a holy temple. Then the power
-of the god increased with the offerings, one of which
-was his large salary as manager, a station to which
-he was elevated shortly after he had received the
-doleful tidings of Mary’s death. Another lustrum
-is added, and we arrive at ten years, and yet
-another, and we come to fifteen; at the end of
-which time Mr Dreghorn died, leaving Halket as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span>
-one of his trustees, for behoof of his wife, in whom
-the great plantation vested. If we add yet another
-lustrum, we find the Scot—fortunate, save for one
-misfortune that made him a joyless worshipper of
-gold—purchasing from the widow, who wished to
-return to England, the entire plantation under the
-condition of an annuity.</p>
-
-<p>And Halket was now rich, even beyond what he
-had ever wished, but the chariot-wheels of Time
-would not go any slower—nay, they moved faster,
-and every year more silently, as if the old Father
-had intended to cheat the votary of Mammon into
-a belief that he would live for ever. The lustrums
-still passed: another five, another, and another, till
-there was scope for all the world being changed,
-and a new generation taking the place of that with
-which William Halket and Mary Brown began;
-and he was changed too, for he began to take
-on those signs of age which make the old man a
-painted character; but in one thing he was not
-changed, and that was the worshipful steadfastness,
-the sacred fidelity, with which he still treasured
-in his mind the form and face, the words and
-the smiles, the nice and refined peculiarities that feed
-love as with nectared sweets, which once belonged
-to Mary Brown, the first creature that had moved
-his affections, and the last to hold them, as the
-object of a cherished memory for ever. Nor with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span>
-time so deceptive, need we be so sparing in dealing
-out those periods of five years, but say at once
-that at last William Halket could count twelve of
-them since first he set his foot on Virginian soil:
-yea, he had been there for sixty summers, and he
-had now been a denizen of the world for seventy-eight
-years. In all which our narrative has been
-strange, but we have still the stranger fact to set
-forth, that at this late period he was seized with
-that moral disease (becoming physical in time)
-which the French call <i>mal du pays</i>, the love of the
-country where one was born and first enjoyed the
-fresh springs that gush from the young heart. Nor
-was it the mere love of country, as such, for he was
-seized with a particular wish to be where Mary lay
-in the churchyard of the Canongate, to erect a
-tombstone over her, to seek out her relations and
-enrich them, to make a worship out of a disappointed
-love, to dedicate the last of his thoughts
-to the small souvenirs of her humble life. Within
-a month this old man was on his way to Scotland,
-having sold the plantation, and taken bills with
-him to an amount of little less than a hundred
-thousand pounds.</p>
-
-<p>In the course of five weeks William Halket
-put his foot on the old pier of Leith, on which
-some very old men were standing, who had been
-urchins when he went away. The look of the old<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span>
-harbour revived the image which had been imprinted
-on his mind when he sailed, and the running
-of the one image into the other produced the
-ordinary illusion of all that long interval appearing
-as a day; but there was no illusion in the change,
-that Mary Brown was there when he departed, and
-there was no Mary Brown there now. Having
-called a coach he told the driver to proceed up
-Leith Walk, and take him to Peter Ramsay’s Inn,
-in St Mary’s Wynd; but the man told him there
-was no inn there, nor had been in his memory.
-The man added that he would take him to the
-White Horse in the Canongate, and thither accordingly
-he drove him. On arriving at the inn
-he required the assistance of the waiter to enable
-him to get out of the coach, nor probably did the
-latter think this any marvel, after looking into a
-face so furrowed with years, so pale with the weakness
-of a languid circulation, so saddened with
-care. The rich man had only an inn for a home,
-nor in all his native country was there one friend
-whom he hoped to find alive. Neither would a
-search help him, as he found on the succeeding
-day, when, by the help of his staff, he essayed an
-infirm walk in the great thoroughfare of the old
-city. The houses were not much altered, but the
-signboards had got new names and figures, and as
-for the faces, they were to him even as those in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span>
-Crete to the Cretan, after he awoke from a sleep
-of forty-seven years—a similitude only true in this
-change, for Epimenidas was still as young when
-he awoke as when he went to sleep, but William
-Halket was old among the young and the grown,
-who were unknown to him as he was indeed
-strange to them. True, too, as the coachman said,
-Peter Ramsay’s Inn, where he had heard Mary
-singing at her work, and the stable where he had
-whistled blithely among his favourite horses, were
-no longer to be seen—<i>etiam cineres perierunt</i>—their
-very sites were occupied by modern dwellings.
-What of that small half-sunk lodging in Big Lochend
-Close, where Mary’s mother lived, and where
-Mary had been brought up, where perhaps Mary
-had died. Would it not be a kind of pilgrimage to
-hobble down the Canongate to that little lodging,
-and might there not be for him a sad pleasure even
-to enter and sit down by the same fireplace where
-he had seen the dearly-beloved face, and listened
-to her voice, to him more musical than the melody
-of angels?</p>
-
-<p>And so after he had walked about till he was
-wearied, and his steps became more unsteady and
-slow, and as yet without having seen a face which
-he knew, he proceeded in the direction of the Big
-Close. There was, as regards stone and lime, little
-change here; he soon recognised the half-sunk<span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span>
-window where, on the Sunday evenings, he had
-sometimes tapped as a humorous sign that he was
-about to enter, which had often been responded to
-by Mary’s finger on the glass, as a token that he
-would be welcome. It was sixty years since then.
-A small corb would now hold all that remained of
-both mother and daughter. He turned away his
-head as if sick, and was about to retrace his steps.
-Yet the wish to enter that house rose again like a
-yearning, and what more in the world than some
-souvenir of the only being on earth he ever loved
-was there for him to yearn for? All his hundred
-thousand pounds were now, dear as money had
-been to him, nothing in comparison of the gratification
-of seeing the room where she was born—yea,
-where probably she had died. In as short a time
-as his trembling limbs would carry him down the
-stair, which, in the ardour of his young blood he
-had often taken at a bound, he was at the foot of
-it; there was there the old familiar dark passage,
-with doors on either side, but it was the farthest
-door that was of any interest to him. Arrived at
-it he stood in doubt. He would knock, and he
-would not; the mystery of an undefined fear was
-over him, and yet, what had he to fear, for half a
-century the inmates had been changed, no doubt,
-over and over again, and he would be as unknowing
-as unknown? At length the trembling finger<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span>
-achieves the furtive tap, and the door was opened
-by a woman, whose figure could only be seen by
-him in coming between him and the obscure light
-that came in by the half-sunk window in front; nor
-could she, even if she had had the power of vision,
-see more of him, for the lobby was still darker.</p>
-
-<p>“Who may live here?” said he, in the expectation
-of hearing some name unknown to him.</p>
-
-<p>The answer, in a broken cracked voice, was not
-slow—</p>
-
-<p>“Mary Brown; and what may you want of
-her?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mary Brown!” but not a word more could he
-say, and he stood as still as a post, not a movement
-of any kind did he show for so long a time
-that the woman might have been justified in her
-fear of a very spirit.</p>
-
-<p>“And can ye say nae mair, sir?” rejoined she.
-“Is my name a bogle to terrify human beings?”</p>
-
-<p>But still he was silent, for the reason that he
-could not think—far less speak, nor even for some
-minutes could he achieve more than the repetition
-of the words, “Mary Brown.”</p>
-
-<p>“But hadna ye better come in, good sir?” said
-she. “Ye may ken our auld saying: ‘They that
-speak in the dark may miss their mark;’ for words
-carry nae light in their een ony mair than me, for,
-to say the truth, I am old and blind.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span>And, moving more as an automaton than as one
-under a will, Halket was seated on a chair with
-this said old and blind woman by his side, who sat
-silent and with blank eyes waiting for the stranger
-to explain what he wanted. Nor was the opportunity
-lost by Halket, who, unable to understand
-how she should have called herself Mary Brown,
-began, in the obscure light of the room, to scrutinise
-her form and features, and in doing this he went
-upon the presumption that this second Mary Brown
-only carried the name of the first; but as he looked
-he began to detect features which riveted his eyes;
-where the re-agent was so sharp and penetrating,
-the analysis was rapid—it was also hopeful—it was
-also fearful. Yes, it was true that that woman was
-<i>his</i> Mary Brown. The light-brown ringlets were
-reduced to a white stratum of thin hair; the blue
-eyes were gray, without light and without speculation;
-the roses on the cheeks were replaced by a
-pallor, the forerunner of the colour of death; the
-lithe and sprightly form was a thin spectral body,
-where the sinews appeared as strong cords, and the
-skin seemed only to cover a skeleton. Yet withal
-he saw in her that identical Mary Brown. That
-wreck was dear to him; it was a relic of the idol
-he had worshipped through life; it was the only
-remnant in the world which had any interest for
-him; and he could on the instant have clasped her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span>
-to his breast, and covered her pale face with his
-tears. But how was he to act? A sudden announcement
-might startle and distress her.</p>
-
-<p>“There was a Mary Brown,” said he, “who was
-once a housemaid in Mr Peter Ramsay’s Inn in St
-Mary’s Wynd.”</p>
-
-<p>“And who can it be that can recollect that?”
-was the answer, as she turned the sightless orbs on
-the speaker. “Ye maun be full o’ years. Yes,
-that was my happy time, even the only happy time
-I ever had in this world.”</p>
-
-<p>“And there was one William Halket there at
-that time also,” he continued.</p>
-
-<p>Words which, as they fell upon the ear, seemed
-to be a stimulant so powerful as to produce a jerk
-in the organ; the dulness of the eyes seemed penetrated
-with something like light, and a tremor
-passed over her entire frame.</p>
-
-<p>“That name is no to be mentioned, sir,” she said,
-nervously, “except aince, and nae mair; he was my
-ruin; for he pledged his troth to me, and promised
-to come back and marry me, but he never came.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor wrote you?” said Halket.</p>
-
-<p>“No, never,” replied she; “I would hae gien the
-world for a scrape o’ the pen o’ Will Halket; but
-it’s a’ past now, and I fancy he is dead and gone
-to whaur there is neither plighted troth, nor marriage,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span>
-nor giving in marriage; and my time, too,
-will be short.”</p>
-
-<p>A light broke in upon the mind of Halket, carrying
-the suspicion that Mr Dreghorn had, for the
-sake of keeping him at Peach Grove, never forwarded
-the letters, whereto many circumstances
-tended.</p>
-
-<p>“And what did you do when you found Will
-had proved false?” inquired Halket. “Why
-should that have been your ruin?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because my puir heart was bound up in him,”
-said she, “and I never could look upon another
-man. Then what could a puir woman do? My
-mother died, and I came here to work as she
-wrought: ay, fifty years ago, and my reward has
-been the puir boon o’ the parish bread; ay, and,
-waur than a’ the rest, blindness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mary,” said Halket, as he took her emaciated
-hand into his, scarcely less emaciated, and divested
-of the genial warmth of life.</p>
-
-<p>The words carried the old sound, and she started
-and shook.</p>
-
-<p>“Mary!” he continued, “Will Halket still lives.
-He was betrayed, as you have been betrayed. He
-wrote three letters to you, all of which were kept
-back by his master, for fear of losing one who he
-saw would be useful to him; and, to complete the
-conspiracy, he reported you dead upon the authority<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span>
-of Peter Ramsay. Whereupon Will betook
-himself to the making of money, but he never
-forgot his Mary, whose name has been heard as
-often as the song of the birds in the groves of
-Virginia.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you are Will himself!” cried she. “I ken
-now the sound o’ your voice in the word ‘Mary,’
-even as you used to whisper it in my ear in the
-fields at St Leonard’s. Let me put my hand upon
-your head, and move my fingers ower your face.
-Yes, yes; oh, mercy, merciful God, how can my
-poor worn heart bear a’ this!”</p>
-
-<p>“Mary, my dear Mary!” ejaculated the moved
-man, “come to my bosom and let me press you to
-my heart; for this is the only blissful moment I
-have enjoyed for sixty years.”</p>
-
-<p>Nor was Mary deaf to his entreaties, for she resigned
-herself as in a swoon to an embrace, which
-an excess of emotion, working on the shrivelled
-heart and the wasted form, probably prevented her
-from feeling.</p>
-
-<p>“But, O Willie!” she cried, “a life’s love lost;
-a lost life on both our sides.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not altogether,” rejoined he, in the midst of
-their mutual sobs. “It may be—nay, it is—that
-our sands are nearly run. Yea, a rude shake
-would empty the glass, so weak and wasted are
-both of us; but still there are a few grains to pass,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span>
-and they shall be made golden. You are the only
-living creature in all this world I have any care
-for. More thousands of pounds than you ever
-dreamt of are mine, and will be yours. We will
-be married even yet, not as the young marry, but
-as those marry who may look to their knowing
-each other as husband and wife in heaven, where
-there are no cruel interested men to keep them
-asunder; and for the short time we are here you
-shall ride in your carriage as a lady, and be attended
-by servants; nor shall a rude breath of
-wind blow upon you which it is in the power of
-man to save you from.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ower late, Willie; ower late,” sighed the exhausted
-woman, as she still lay in his arms. “But
-if all this should please my Will—I canna use
-another name, though you are now a gentleman—I
-will do even as you list, and that which has been
-by a cruel fate denied us here we may share in
-heaven.”</p>
-
-<p>“And who shall witness this strange marriage?”
-said he. “There is no one in Edinburgh now that
-I know or knows me. Has any one ever been
-kind to you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Few, few indeed,” answered she. “I can count
-only three.”</p>
-
-<p>“I must know these wonderful exceptions,” said
-he, as he made an attempt at a grim smile; “for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span>
-those who have done a service to Mary Brown have
-done a double service to me. I will make every
-shilling they have given you a hundred pounds.
-Tell me their names.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is John Gilmour, my landlord,” continued
-she, “who, though he needed a’ his rents
-for a big family, passed me many a term, and forbye
-brought me often, when I was ill and couldna
-work, many a bottle o’ wine; there is Mrs Paterson
-o’ the Watergate, too, who aince when I gaed to
-her in sair need gave me a shilling out o’ three that
-she needed for her bairns; and Mrs Galloway o’
-Little Lochend, slipt in to me a peck o’ meal ae
-morning when I had naething for breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p>“And these shall be at our marriage, Mary,”
-said he. “They shall be dressed to make their
-eyes doubtful if they are themselves. John Gilmour
-will wonder how these pounds of his rent he
-passed you from have grown to hundreds. Mrs
-Paterson’s shilling will have grown as the widow’s
-mite never grew, even in heaven; and Mrs Galloway’s
-peck of meal will be made like the widow’s
-cruse of oil—it will never be finished while she is
-on earth.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon Mary raised her head. The blank
-eyes were turned upon him, and something like a
-smile played over the thin and wasted face. At
-the same moment a fair-haired girl of twelve years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span>
-came jumping into the room, and only stopped
-when she saw a stranger.</p>
-
-<p>“That is Helen Kemp,” said Mary, who knew
-her movements. “I forgot Helen; she lights my
-fire, and when I was able to gae out used to lead
-me to the park.”</p>
-
-<p>“And she shall be one of the favoured ones of
-the earth,” said he, as he took by the hand the
-girl, whom the few words from Mary had made
-sacred to him, adding, “Helen, dear, you are to be
-kinder to Mary than you have ever been;” and,
-slipping into the girl’s hand a guinea, he whispered,
-“You shall have as many of these as will be a
-bigger tocher to you than you ever dreamed of,
-for what you have done for Mary Brown.”</p>
-
-<p>And thus progressed to a termination a scene
-perhaps more extraordinary than ever entered into
-the head of a writer of natural things and events
-not beyond the sphere of the probable. Nor did
-what afterwards took place fall short of the intentions
-of a man whose intense yearnings to make
-up for what had been lost led him into the extravagance
-of a vain fancy. He next day took a
-great house and forthwith furnished it in proportion
-to his wealth. He hired servants in accordance,
-and made all the necessary arrangements for
-the marriage. Time which had been so cruel to
-him and his sacred Mary was put under the obligation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span>
-of retribution. John Gilmour, Mrs Paterson,
-Mrs Galloway, and Helen Kemp were those,
-and those alone, privileged to witness the ceremony.
-We would not like to describe how they
-were decked out, nor shall we try to describe the
-ceremony itself. But vain are the aspirations of
-man when he tries to cope with the Fates! The
-changed fortune was too much for the frail and
-wasted bride to bear. She swooned at the conclusion
-of the ceremony, and was put into a silk-curtained
-bed. Even the first glimpse of grandeur
-was too much for the spirit whose sigh was vanity,
-all is vanity, and, with the words on her lips, “A
-life’s love lost,” she died.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_087.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_contents.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Merrillygoes.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE world has been compared to many
-things,—a playhouse, a madhouse, a penitentiary,
-a caravanserai, and so forth;
-but I think a show-box wherein all, including man,
-is turned by machinery, is better than any of them.
-And every one looks through his own little round
-hole at all the rest, he being both object and subject.
-How the scenes shift too! the belief of one
-age being the laughing-stock of the next. Witches
-and brownies and fairies and ghosts and bogles
-have lost their quiddity, and given birth to quips
-and laughs; but I have here, as a simple storyteller,
-to do with one example of these vanished
-beliefs, what was in folk-lore called the “Merrillygoes,”
-sometimes in the old Scotch dictionaries
-spelled “Mirrligoes.” It was a supposed affection
-of the eyes, in which the victim or patient, as you
-suppose the visitation brought on by natural or
-supernatural powers, fancied he saw men and
-women and inanimate things which were not at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span>
-the time before him. I think the affection was
-different from the “glamour” which was generally
-attributed to the wrath of fairies; and both indeed
-might, after all, be resolved into the pseudoblepsy
-of the old, and the monomania of the new
-nosologies. But dismissing all learning—which,
-however potent to puff up man’s pride, and then
-prick the bladder of his conceit, has no concern
-with a story—I at once introduce to you Mr
-David Tweedie. He was one of those Davids
-who, for some Scotch reason, are called Dauvit;
-and, like other simple men, he had a wife, whose
-name, I think, was Semple, Robina Semple, certainly
-not Simple. These worthies figured in
-Berenger’s Close of Edinburgh some time about
-the provostship of the unfortunate Alexander Wilson;
-and were not only man and wife by holy
-Kirk, but a copartnership, insomuch as, Dauvit
-being a tailor, she after marriage, and having no
-children to “fash her,” became a tailor also, sitting
-on the same board with him, using the same goose,
-yea, pricking the same flea with emulous needle.</p>
-
-<p>Yet our couple were in some respects the most
-unlike each other in the world; Robina being a
-sharp, clear-witted, nay, ingenious woman—Dauvit
-a mere big boy. I do not know if I could give
-the reader a better explanation of the expression
-I have used than by referring him to the notion he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span>
-might form of Holbein’s picture of his son, whom
-he quaintly and humorously painted as a man, but
-retaining all the features, except size, of a boy:
-the chubby cheeks, small snub nose, pinking eyes,
-and delicate colours. Nor was Dauvit a big chubby
-man merely as respected the body, for he was
-also little better than chubby in mind; at least in
-so far as regards credulity, passiveness, and softness.
-He had a marvellous appetite for worldly
-wonders, the belief being in the direct ratio of the
-wonderfulness, and he gave credit to the last thing
-he heard, for no other reason than that it was the
-last thing; one impression thus effacing another,
-so that the soft round lump remained always much
-the same. All which peculiarities were, it may
-easily be supposed, not only known to, but very
-well appreciated by, his loving, but perhaps not
-over-faithful, Binny.</p>
-
-<p>If you keep these things in your mind, you will
-be able the better to estimate the value of the
-facts as I proceed to tell you that one morning
-Dauvit was a little later in getting out of bed
-than was usual with him, by reason that he had
-on the previous night been occupied with a suit of
-those sacredly-imperative things called in Scotland
-“blacks,” that is, mourning. But then the time
-was not lost; for Robina was up and active, very
-busily engaged in preparing breakfast. Not that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span>
-Dauvit condescended to take much notice of these
-domestic duties of Binny, because he had ample
-faith not only in her housewifery, but the wonderful
-extent of her understanding; only it just happened,
-as indeed anything <i>may</i> happen in a world
-where we do not know why anything <i>does</i> happen,
-that as he lay very comfortably under the welcome
-pressure of the soft blankets, with his eyes looking
-as it were out of a hole, he heard a tap at the door,
-which tap was just as like that of the letter-carrier
-as any two blunts of exactly the same length could
-possibly be. Nor did his observation stop here;
-for he saw with these same eyes, as if confirming
-his ears, Binny go to the door and open it; then
-came the words of doubtless the said letter-carrier,
-“That’s for Dauvit;” and at the same instant a
-letter was put into his wife’s hands, and thereafter
-disappeared at the hole of her pocket, where there
-were many things that David knew nothing about.</p>
-
-<p>Strange as this seemed to Mr Tweedie, even the
-last act of pocketing would not have appeared to
-him so very curious if at the moment of secreting
-the letter she had not very boldly, and even with a
-kind of smile upon her face, looked fully into the
-open eyes of her husband. But more still, this
-sagacious and honest woman immediately thereafter
-retired into the inner room, where, no doubt,
-she made herself acquainted with the contents of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span>
-the communication, whatever it might be, and
-from which she came again to resume, as she did
-resume, her preparations for breakfast just as if
-nothing had happened beyond what was common.
-Of course I need not say that Dauvit was astonished;
-but his astonishment was an increasing
-quantity in proportion to the time that now passed
-without her going forward to the bedside and reading
-the letter to him, as she had often done before;
-and if we might be entitled to wonder why he
-didn’t at once put the question, “What letter was
-that, Binny?” perhaps the answer which would
-have been given by David himself might have
-been that his very wonder prevented him from
-asking for an explanation of the wonder—just as
-miracles shut people’s mouths at the same moment
-that they make them open their eyes.</p>
-
-<p>However this might be—and who knows but that
-David might have a pawky curiosity to try Binny?—the
-never a word did he say; but, rising slowly
-and quietly, he dressed himself, in that loose way
-in which of all tradesmen the tailors most excel,
-for a reason of which I am entirely ignorant. He
-then sat down by the fire; and Binny having
-seated herself on the other side, the operation of
-breakfast began without a word being said on
-either part, but with mutual looks, which on the
-one side, viz., Robina’s, were very well understood,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span>
-but on the other not at all. A piece of pantomime
-all this which could not last very long, for
-the good reason that impatience is the handmaiden
-of curiosity; and David at length, in spite of a bit
-of bread which almost closed up his mouth, got
-out the words—</p>
-
-<p>“What letter was that, Binny, which the letter-carrier
-handed in this mornin’?”</p>
-
-<p>“Letter! there was nae letter, man,” was the
-answer of Binny, accompanied with a look of surprise,
-which might in vain compete with the wonder
-immediately called up in the eyes of her simple
-husband.</p>
-
-<p>“Did I no see it with my ain een?” was the
-very natural ejaculation.</p>
-
-<p>“No, you didn’t; you only thought ye saw it,”
-said the wife; “and thae twa things have a gey
-difference between them.”</p>
-
-<p>“What <i>do</i> ye mean, Robina, woman?”</p>
-
-<p>“The merrillygoes!”</p>
-
-<p>“The merrillygoes,” rejoined the wondering
-David; “my een niver were in that condition.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>You</i> may think sae, Dauvit,” rejoined Binny;
-“but I happen to ken better. On Wednesday
-night, when we were in bed, and the moon shining
-in at the window, did I no hear you say,
-‘Binny, woman, what are ye doing up at this
-eery hour?’ It was just about twelve; and upon<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span>
-lifting my head and looking ower at ye, I saw
-your een staring out as gleg as a hawk’s after a
-sparrow. It had begun then.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ou, I had been dreaming,” said David.</p>
-
-<p>“Dreaming with your een open!”</p>
-
-<p>“That is indeed strange enough,” rejoined
-David. “Did ye really see my een open?”</p>
-
-<p>“Did ye ever hear me tell ye a lee, man? Am
-I no as true as the Bible? and think ye I dinna
-ken the strange light o’ the merrillygoes, when I
-have seen it in the een o’ my ain father?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is that really true, Binny? I’m beginnin’ to
-get fear’d. But what o’ your father, lass?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ye may weel ask,” said the wife. “He had
-been awa’ at Falkirk Tryst with his ewes, and it
-was about seven o’clock when he cam’ hame. We
-were then in the farm o’ Kimmergame. Weel, he
-was coming up the lang loan, and it was gloaming;
-and just when he was about twenty yards
-from his ain door, he saw twa men hurrying along
-with a coffin a’ studded with white nails. They
-were only a yard or twa before him, and the moment
-he saw them he stopped till he saw where
-they were going; and yet where could they be
-going but to his ain house; and nae doubt his
-wife would be dead, for the lang coffin couldna
-have fitted any other person in the house; but he
-was soon made sure enough, for he saw the men<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span>
-with the coffin enter into his ain door, and there
-he stood in a swither o’ fear; but he was a brave
-man, and in he went, never stopping till he got
-into his ain parlour, where my mother was sitting
-at her tea, and nae sooner did she see him than
-she broke out in a laugh o’ perfect joy at his
-hamecome. But the never a word he ever said
-about the coffin, because he didn’t wish to terrify
-his wife with evil omens; and besides, he understood
-the vision perfectly. And, Dauvit, if ye’re
-a wise man ye will submit to the hand o’ God,
-wha sees fit to bring thae visitations upon us for
-some wise end.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very true,” said David, to whom the affair of
-the letter was rather much even for <i>his</i> credulity;
-“but still, Binny, lass, I canna just come to it that
-I was deceived.”</p>
-
-<p>“Weel, weel, stick to it, my man, and mak me,
-your ain wife, a leear.”</p>
-
-<p>“That canna be either,” rejoined David; “and
-by my faith, I’m at a loss what to think or what
-to do; for if it really be that the infliction’s upon
-me, how, in the Lord’s name, am I to ken the real
-thing from the fause? My head rins right round
-at the very thought o’t. And then I fancy there’s
-nae remedy in the power o’ man.”</p>
-
-<p>“I fear no,” replied Binny. “Ye maun just
-pray; but I have heard my father say that it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span>
-came on him after he had been confined with an
-ill-working stomach to the house, and exercise
-drove it away. Ye’ve been sitting ower close.
-Take scouth for a day. Awa’ ower to Burntisland,
-and get payment from John Sprunt o’ the three
-pounds he owes for his last suit. Stay ower the
-night. I say nothing about the jolly boose ye’ll
-have thegither, but it may drive thae fumes and
-fancies out o’ your head. Come ower with the
-first boat in the morning, and I will have your
-breakfast ready for you.”</p>
-
-<p>The prudence of this advice David was not slow
-to see, though he had, maugre his simplicity, considerable
-misgivings about the affair of the letter;
-nor did he altogether feel the absolute conviction
-that he was under the influence of the foresaid
-mysterious power. But independently of the prudence
-of her counsel, he felt it as a command, and
-therefore behoved to obey. For we may as well
-admit that David might doubt of the eternal obligation
-of a certain decalogue by reason of its
-being abrogated; but as for the commands of Mrs
-Robina, they were subject to no abrogation, and
-certainly no denial whatever. So David went and
-dressed himself in his “second-best”—a particular
-mentioned here with an after-view—and having
-got from the hands of her, who was thus both wife
-and medical adviser, a drop of spirits to help him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span>
-<i>on</i>, and the merrillygoes <i>off</i>, he set forth on his
-journey.</p>
-
-<p>Proceeding down Leith Wynd, he found himself
-in Leith Walk; but however active his limbs, thus
-relieved on so short a warning from “the board,”
-and however keen and far-sighted his eyes, as they
-scanned all the people he met, he could not shake
-off certain doubts whether the individuals he met
-were in reality creatures of flesh and blood, or
-mere visions. The sacred words of Mrs Robina
-were a kind of winged beliefs, which, by merely
-striking on the ear, performed for him what many
-a man has much trouble in doing for himself—that
-is, thinking; so that upon the whole the tendency
-of his thoughts was in a great degree favourable
-to sadness and terror. The sigh was heaved
-again and again; being sometimes for a longer
-period delayed, as the hope of a jolly boose with
-his friend Sprunt held a partial sway in his troubled
-mind. But by and by the activity required by his
-search for a boat, the getting on board, the novelty
-of the sail, the undulating movements, and all the
-interests which belong to a “traveller by sea and
-land,” drove away the cobwebs that hung about
-the brain; and by the time he got to Burntisland
-he was much as he used to be. But, alas, he little
-knew that this journey, propitious as it appeared,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span>
-was not calculated to produce the wonderful effects
-expected from it.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner had he landed on the pier than he
-made straight for the house of his friend, which
-stood by the roadside, a little removed from the
-village. He saw it in the distance; and quickening
-his steps, came to an angle which enabled him
-to see into Mr Sprunt’s garden; and we may, considering
-how much the three pounds, the boose,
-the fun, the cure was associated with the figure of
-that individual, imagine the satisfaction felt by Mr
-Tweedie when he saw the true body of John
-Sprunt in that very garden, busily engaged, too,
-in the delightful occupation of garden-work, and
-animated, we may add of our own supposition,
-with a mind totally oblivious of the three pounds
-he owed to the Edinburgh tailor. But well and
-truly may we speak of the uncertainty of mundane
-things. David had only turned away his
-eyes for an instant, and yet in that short period,
-as he found when he again turned his head, the
-well-known figure of his old friend, pot-companion,
-and debtor in three pounds, had totally
-disappeared. The thing looked like what learned
-people call a phenomenon. How could Sprunt
-have disappeared so soon? Where could he have
-gone to be invisible, where there was no summer-house
-to receive him, and where the time did not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span>
-permit of a retreat into his own dwelling? David
-stood, and began to think of the words of Robina.
-There could be no doubt that his eyes had been at
-fault again; it was not John Sprunt he had seen—merely
-a lying image. And so even on the instant
-the old sadness came over him again, with
-more than one long sigh; nor in his depression
-and simplicity was he able to bring up any such
-recondite thing as a thought suggesting the connexion
-between John’s disappearance and the fact
-that he owed Mr David Tweedie—whom he
-could have seen in the road—the sum of three
-pounds.</p>
-
-<p>In which depressed and surely uncomfortable
-condition our traveller proceeded towards the
-house, more anxious, indeed, to disprove his terrors
-than to get his money. He knocked at the
-door, which, by the by, was at the end of the
-house; and his knock was answered by Mrs
-Sprunt herself, a woman who could have acted
-Bellona in an old Greek piece.</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad John is at hame,” were David’s first
-words.</p>
-
-<p>“And I would be glad if that were true, Mr
-Dauvit,” replied she; “but it just happens no to
-be true. John went off to Kirkaldy at six o’clock
-this morning to try and get some siller that’s due
-him there.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span>“Let me in to sit down,” muttered David, with
-a kind of choking in his voice.</p>
-
-<p>And following the good dame into the parlour,
-Mr Tweedie threw himself into the arm-chair in a
-condition of great fear and perturbation. Having
-sat mute for a minute or two, probably to the
-wonderment of the dame, he began to rub his
-brow with his handkerchief, as if taking off a little
-perspiration could help him in his distress.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs Sprunt,” said he, “I could have sworn
-that I saw John working in the yard.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereat Mrs Sprunt broke out into a loud laugh,
-which somehow or another seemed to David as
-ghostly as his visions; and when she had finished
-she added, “Something wrong, Dauvit, with your
-een.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gudeness gracious and ungracious!” said
-David. “Is this possible? Can it really be?
-Whaur, in the name o’ Heeven, am I to look for
-a real flesh-and-blood certainty?”</p>
-
-<p>“And yet ye seem to be sober, Dauvit.”</p>
-
-<p>“As a judge,” replied he. But, after a pause,
-“Can I be sure even o’ <i>you</i>?” he cried, as he
-started up; the while his eyes rolled in a manner
-altogether very unlike the douce quiet character
-he bore. “Let me satisfy mysel that you are
-really Mrs Janet Sprunt in the real body.”</p>
-
-<p>And making a sudden movement, with his arms<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>
-extended towards the woman, he tried to grip her;
-but it was a mere futile effort. Mrs Sprunt was
-gone through the open door in an instant, and
-David was left alone with another confirmation of
-his dreaded suspicion, muttering to himself, “There
-too, there too,—a’ alike; may the Lord have mercy
-upon His afflicted servant! Robina Tweedie, ye
-were right after a’, and that letter was a delusion like
-the rest—a mere eemage—a’ eemages thegither.”</p>
-
-<p>After which soliloquy he again sat down in the
-easy-chair, held his hands to his face, and groaned
-in the pain of a wounded spirit. But even in the
-midst of this solemn conviction that the Lord had
-laid His hand upon him, he could see that sitting
-there could do him no good; and, rising up, he
-made for the kitchen. There was no one there;
-he tried another room, which he also found empty;
-and issuing forth from the unlucky house, he encountered
-an old witch-looking woman who was
-turning the corner, as if going in the direction of
-another dwelling.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you see Mrs Sprunt even now?” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“No likely,” answered the woman; “when she
-tauld me this mornin’ she was going to Petticur.
-She has a daughter there, ye ken.”</p>
-
-<p>Melancholy intelligence which seemed to have a
-logical consistency with the other parts of that
-day’s remarkable experiences; nor did David<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-seem to think that anything more was necessary
-for the entire satisfaction of even a man considerably
-sceptical, and then who in those days doubted
-the merrillygoes?</p>
-
-<p>“What poor creatures we are!” said he. “I
-came here for a perfect cure, and I gae hame with
-a heavy care.”</p>
-
-<p>And with these words, which were in reality an
-articulated groan, Mr David Tweedie made his
-way back towards the pier, under an apprehension
-that as he went along he would meet with some
-verification of a suspicion which, having already
-become a conviction, not only required no more
-proof, but was strong enough to battle all opposing
-facts and arguments; so he went along with his
-chin upon his breast, and his eyes fixed upon the
-ground, as if he were afraid to trust them with
-a survey of living beings, lest they might cheat
-him as they had already done. It was about half-past
-twelve when he got to the boat; and he was
-further disconcerted by finding that the wind,
-which had brought him so cleverly over, would
-repay itself, like over-generous givers, who
-take back by one hand what they give by the
-other. And so it turned out; for he was fully
-two hours on the passage, all of which time was
-occupied by a reverie as to the extraordinary calamity
-that had befallen him. And how much more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span>
-dreary his cogitations as he thought of the increased
-unhappiness of Robina, when she ascertained
-not only the failure of getting payment of
-his debt, but the total wreck of her means of cure!</p>
-
-<p>At length he got to Leith pier; but his landing
-gave him no pleasure: he was still haunted with
-the notion that he would encounter more mischances;
-and he hurried up Leith Walk, passing
-old friends whom he was afraid to speak to. Arrived
-at the foot of Leith Wynd, he made a detour
-which brought him to the foot of Halkerston’s
-Wynd, up which he ascended, debouching into the
-High Street. And here our story becomes so incredible,
-that we are almost afraid to trust our
-faithful pen to write what David Tweedie saw on
-his emerging from the entry. There, coming up
-the High Street, was Mrs Robina Tweedie herself,
-marching along steadily, dressed in David’s best
-suit. He stood and stared with goggle eyes, as if
-he felt some strange pleasure in the fascination.
-The vision was so concrete, that he could identify
-his own green coat made by his own artistic fingers.
-There were the white metal buttons, the broadest
-he could get in the whole city—nay, one of them
-on the back had been scarcely a match, and he
-recognised the defect; his knee-breeches too, so
-easily detected by their having been made out of
-a large remnant of a colour (purple) whereof there<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span>
-was not another bit either to be bought or “cabbaged,”—nay,
-the very brass knee-buckles of which
-he was so proud; the “rig-and-fur” stockings of
-dark brown; the shoe-buckles furbished up the
-last Sunday; the square hat he had bought from
-Pringle; and, to crown all, his walking-stick with
-the ivory top. So perfect indeed was the “get-up”
-of his lying eyes, that, if he had not been
-under the saddening impression of his great visitation,
-he would have been well amused by the
-wonderful delusion. Even as it was, he could not
-help following the phantom, as it went so proudly
-and jantily along the street. And what was still
-more extraordinary, he saw Mucklewham, the
-city guardsman, meet her and speak to her in a
-private kind of way, and then go away with her.
-But David had a trace of sense in his soft nature.
-He saw that it was vain as well as hurtful to gratify
-what was so clearly a delusion; it would only
-deepen the false images in eyes already sufficiently
-“glamoured;” and so he stopped suddenly short
-and let them go—that is, he would cease <i>to look</i>,—and
-they, the visions, would cease <i>to be</i>. In all
-which how little did he know that he was prefiguring
-a philosophy which was some time afterwards
-to become so famous! Nay, are we not
-all under the merrillygoes in this world of phantoms?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“You say you see the things that be:</div>
-<div class="verse">I say you only think you see.</div>
-<div class="verse">Not even that. It seems to me</div>
-<div class="verse">You only think you think you see.</div>
-<div class="verse">Then thinking weaves so many a lie,</div>
-<div class="verse">Methinks this world is ‘all my eye.’”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>But even in his grief and sacred fear he could not
-help saying to himself, “Gude Lord! if that eemage
-werena frightfu’, would it no be funny? And what
-will Robina say? Nae doubt she is at this very
-moment sitting at her tea in Berenger’s Close,
-thinking upon my calamity. What <i>will</i> she say
-when I tell her that I saw her in the High Street
-dressed in my Sunday suit, walking just as if she
-were Provost Wilson himsel? I wouldna wonder
-if she should get into ane o’ her laughing fits, even
-in very spite o’ her grief for the awful condition of
-her loving husband. At any rate, it’s time I were
-hame, when I canna tell what I am to see next,
-nor can even say which end o’ me is uppermost.”</p>
-
-<p>Nor scarcely had he finished his characteristic
-soliloquy, when a hand was laid on his shoulder.
-It was that of the corporal; but how was David
-to know that? Why, he felt Bill’s hand; and to
-make things more certain, he even laid his own
-hand upon the solid shoulder of the sturdy city
-guardsman; adding, for still greater proof—</p>
-
-<p>“Did you meet and speak to any one up the
-street there?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span>“The niver a living soul,” said the corporal, “as
-I’m a sinner; but come along, man, to the Prophet
-Amos’s,” (a well-known tavern in the Canongate,)
-“and let us have a jolly jug, for I’m to be on duty
-to-night, and need something to cheer me up; and
-the colour of ale will sit better on your cheeks
-when you go home to Robina than that saffron.
-Are you well enough, David? I think I might as
-well ask the question of a half-hanged dog.”</p>
-
-<p>“Half or hale hanged,” replied David, as he
-eyed his friend suspiciously, “I canna be the waur
-o’ a jug o’ ale.”</p>
-
-<p>An answer which was perhaps the result of sheer
-despair, for the conviction of the “real unreality”
-of what he had seen was now so much beyond
-doubt that he began to submit to it as a doom;
-and what is irremediable becomes, like death, to
-be bearable, nay, even accommodating to the
-routine of life; and so the two jogged along till
-they came to the Prophet’s, where they sat down
-to their liquor and, we may add, loquacity, of
-which latter Mucklewham was so profuse, that any
-other less simple person than David might have
-thought that the guardsman wanted to speak
-against time. But David suspected nothing, and
-he was the more inclined to be patient that his
-friend had promised to pay the score.</p>
-
-<p>“And when saw ye Robina?” said David.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span>“Not for a good round year, my bairn,” said
-the big corporal.</p>
-
-<p>“Gude Lord, did ye no see her and speak to
-her even this day?”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the big guardsman laughed a horse
-(guardsman’s) laugh; and pointing his finger to
-his eye he twirled the same, that is the finger,
-merrily round. A movement which David too
-well understood; and after heaving a deep sigh, he
-took a deep pull at the ale, as if in a paroxysm of
-despair.</p>
-
-<p>And so they drank on, till David having risen
-and left the room for a breath of fresh air, found
-on his return that his generous friend had vanished.
-Very wonderful, no doubt. But, then, had he not
-taken his jug with him?—no doubt to get it replenished—and
-he would return with a filled
-tankard. Vain expectation! Mucklewham was
-only another Sprunt, another lie of the visual
-sense. Did David Tweedie really need this new
-proof? David knew he didn’t; neither did he
-require the additional certainty of his calamity by
-having to pay only for his own “shot.” The Prophet
-did not ask for more, nor did he think it
-necessary to say why; perhaps he would make
-the corporal pay his own share afterwards. The
-whole thing was as clear as noon: David had been
-drinking with one who had no stomach wherein to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span>
-put his liquor, and for the good reason that he had
-no body to hold that stomach.</p>
-
-<p>“Waur than the case o’ the letter, or Sprunt,
-(hiccup,) or Robina dressed in my claes,” said he
-lugubriously, “for I only <i>saw</i> them, but I handled
-the corporal, sat with him, drank with him, heard
-him speak; yet baith he and the pewter jug were
-off in a moment, and I hae paid (hic) only for ae
-man’s drink. But is it no a’ a dream thegither?
-I wouldna wonder I am at this very moment in
-my bed wi’ Robina lying at my back.”</p>
-
-<p>And rising up, he discovered that he was not
-very well able to keep his legs, the more by reason
-that he had poured the ale into an empty stomach;
-there was, besides, a new confusion in his brain, as
-if that organ had not already enough to do with
-any small powers of maintaining itself in equilibrium
-which it possessed. But he behoved to get
-home; and to Berenger’s Close he accordingly
-went, making sure as he progressed of at least one
-truth in nature, amidst all the dubieties and delusions
-of that most eventful day: that the shortest
-way between two points is the deflecting one. And
-what was Binny about when he entered his own
-house? Working the button-holes of a vest which
-had been left by David unfinished. No sooner did
-she see David staggering in than she threw the
-work aside.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span>“Hame already? and in that state too!” she
-cried. “You must have been seeing strange ferlies
-in the High Street, while I was sitting here busy
-at my wark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Strange enough, lass; but if you can tell me
-whether or no I am Dauvit Tweedie, your lawfu’
-husband or the Prophet Moses, or the Apostle
-Aaron, or (hic) the disciple Deuteronomy, or the
-deevil, it’s mair than I can.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon David dropt his uncertain body in a
-chair, doubting perhaps if even the chair was really
-a chair.</p>
-
-<p>“And it wasna just enough,” rejoined she, “that
-you had an attack of the merrillygoes, but you
-must add pints o’ ale to make your poor wits mair
-confounded.”</p>
-
-<p>A remark which Robina thought herself entitled
-to make, irrespective of the question which for a
-hundred years has been disputed, viz., whether she
-had sent the corporal to take David to Prophet
-Amos’s and fill him drunk with ale, and then shirk
-the score?</p>
-
-<p>“But haste ye to bed, my man,” she added,
-“that’s the place for you, where you may snore
-awa’ the fumes o’ Prophet Amos’s ale, and the
-whimwhams o’ your addled brain.”</p>
-
-<p>An advice which David took kindly, though he
-did not need it; for, educated as he may be said<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span>
-to have been by the clever Robina, he was fortunately
-one of those favoured beings pointed at in
-the wise saying that the power of education is
-seldom effectual except in those happy cases where
-it is superfluous. So it was the ale that sent him
-to bed and to sleep as well—a condition into which
-he sunk very soon. And it was kindly granted to
-him, insomuch as it was a kind of recompense for
-what he had suffered during that day of wonders:
-it saved him from the possibility of hearing a conversation
-in the other room between Robina and
-the corporal, in the course of which it was asked
-and answered whether David had recognised Robina
-in her male decorations; and whether he had
-any suspicions as to the true character of the deep
-plot they were engaged in working out.</p>
-
-<p>What further took place in the house of Mr
-Tweedie that night we have not been able, notwithstanding
-adequate inquiry, to ascertain; but
-of this important fact we are well assured, that
-next morning David awoke in a much improved
-condition. To account for this we must remember
-his peculiar nature, for to him “the yesterday,”
-whatever yesterday it might be, was always a <i>dies
-non</i>; it had done its duty and was gone, and it
-had no business here any more than an impudent
-fellow who tries to live too long after the world is
-sick of him. Indeed, we know that he ate such a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span>
-breakfast, and with such satisfaction, that no ideas
-of a yesterday had any chance of resisting the feelings
-of the moment; and once gone, they had too
-much difficulty to get into the dark chamber again
-to think of trying it. He was “on the board” by
-ten o’clock. For he had work to do, and as Robina’s
-purpose was in the meantime served, she
-said no more of the merrillygoes. She had perhaps
-something else to do; for shortly after eleven
-she went out, perhaps to report to the corporal the
-sequel to that which he already knew. But whatever
-her object, her absence was not destined to
-be so fruitful of good to her as her presence wherever
-she might go; for it so happened that as
-David was sitting working, and sometimes with
-his face overcast with a passing terror of a return
-of his calamity, he found he required a piece of
-cloth of a size and colour whereof there were some
-specimens in an old trunk. To that repository of
-cabbage, as it is vulgarly called, he went; and in
-rummaging through the piebald contents he came
-upon a parcel in a corner. On opening it, he found
-to his great wonderment no fewer than a hundred
-guineas of pure gold. The rays from the shiny
-pieces seemed to enter his eyes like spikes, and fix
-the balls in the sockets; if he felt a kind of fascination
-yesterday as he looked at his wife in male
-attire, though a mere vision, he experienced the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span>
-influence now even more, however doubtful he was
-of the reality of the glittering objects. He seized,
-he clutched them, he shut his eyes, and opened
-them again as he opened his hands; they did <i>not</i>
-disappear; but then Robina herself might appear,
-and under this apprehension, which put to flight
-his doubts, he carried them off, and secreted them
-in a private drawer of which he had the key;
-whereupon he betook himself again to the board.
-By and by Robina returned; but the never a word
-David said of the guineas, because he had still
-doubts of the veracity of his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>And so the day passed without anything occurring
-to suggest either inquiry or answer. During
-the night David slept so soundly that he was even
-oblivious of his prize; and it was not till eleven
-next forenoon, when his wife went out, that he
-ventured to look into the drawer; but now the
-terrible truth was revealed to him: the guineas
-were gone, and he had been again under delusion.
-The merrillygoes once more! and how was he to
-admit the fact to Robina, after his attempted appropriation!</p>
-
-<p>But, happily, there was no necessity for admitting
-his own shame, for about four o’clock John
-Jardine the letter-carrier called and told him that
-his wife had eloped with the corporal. The intelligence
-was no doubt very dreadful to David,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span>
-who loved his wife so dearly that he could have
-subscribed to the saying “that the husband will
-always be deceived when the wife condescends to
-dissemble;” but Mrs Robina Tweedie did not so
-condescend; and David now began to see certain
-things and to recollect certain circumstances which,
-when put together, appeared even to his mind
-more strange than the merrillygoes. And his eyes
-were opened still further by a letter from Kirkcudbright
-from a Mr Gordon, wishing to be informed
-why he had not acknowledged the receipt of the
-hundred guineas left him by his uncle, and which
-had been sent in a prior letter in the form of a
-draft on the Bank of Scotland. Mr David Tweedie
-now went to the bank, and was told that the
-money had been paid to a man in a green coat
-and white metal buttons, square hat, and walking-stick,
-who represented himself as David Tweedie.</p>
-
-<p>Our story, it will be seen, has pretty nearly explained
-itself; yet something remains to be told.
-A whole year elapsed, when one morning Mrs
-Robina Tweedie appeared before honest David,
-with a lugubrious face and a lugubrious tale, to
-the effect that although she had been tempted to
-run away with the corporal, she had almost immediately
-left him—a pure, bright, unsullied wife;
-but during all this intermediate time she had felt
-so ashamed and conscience-stricken, that she could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>
-not return and ask forgiveness. All which David
-heard, and to all which he answered—</p>
-
-<p>“Robina—nae mair Tweedie, lass—ye ken I
-was afflicted with a strange calamity when ye left
-me. I thought I saw what wasna to be seen. It
-comes aye back upon me now and then; and I
-ken it’s on me this mornin’. I may think I see
-you there standin’ before me, even as I saw you in
-my broad-tailed coat that day in the High Street;
-but I ken it’s a’ a delusion. In fact, my dear Robina,
-<i>I dinna see you, I dinna even feel your body</i>,”
-(pushing her out by the cuff of the neck;) “the
-merrillygoes, lass! the merrillygoes!”</p>
-
-<p>And David shut the door on the ejected Robina—thereafter
-living a very quiet and comparatively
-happy life, free from all glamour or any other
-affection of the eyes, and seeing just as other
-people see. Yea, with his old friend Sprunt and
-his wife he had many a joke on the subject, forgiving
-John for running away that morning to
-shirk his creditor, as well as Mrs Janet for being
-terrified out of the house by the wild rolling eyes
-of the unhappy David.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_114.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_115.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Six Toes.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_a.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">A MAN who makes a will generally knows
-pretty well the person to whom he leaves
-a legacy, but it does not follow that other
-people are to have the same enlightenment as to
-the identity of the legatee. I make the remark in
-reference to a common story connected with the
-will of honest Andrew Gebbie, who officiated once
-as a ruling elder in the Church of Trinity College,
-Edinburgh, and was supposed to have done so
-much good to the people by his prayers, exhortations
-and psalm-singing, that it was utterly unnecessary
-for his getting to heaven, where he had
-sent so many others, that he should bequeath a
-single plack or bawbee to the poor when he died.
-Yet whether it was that the good man Andrew
-determined to make sure work of his salvation, or
-that he had any less ambitious object in view, certain
-it is that some time before he died he made a
-will by his own hand, and without the help of a
-man of the law, in spite of the Scotch adage—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“Who saves a fee and writes his will</div>
-<div class="verse">Is friendly to the lawyers still;</div>
-<div class="verse">For these take all the will contains,</div>
-<div class="verse">And give the heir all that remains.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>And by this said will honest Andrew bequeathed
-the sum of three hundred pounds sterling money
-to “Mistress Helen Grey, residing in that street of
-the old town called Leith Wynd,” without any
-further identification or particularisation whatsoever,
-nor did he say a single word about the cause
-of making this somewhat generous bequest, or
-anything about the merits or services of the legatee.
-A strange circumstance, seeing that the individual
-being a “Nelly Grey” had long been a
-favourite of the poets, (and, therefore, rather indefinite,)
-as she indeed still figures in more than
-one very popular song, wherein she is even called
-bonny Nelly Grey.</p>
-
-<p>Then, to keep all matters in harmony, he appointed
-three clergymen—the minister of his own
-church, the minister of the Tolbooth, and the minister
-of the Tron—as his executors for carrying
-his said will into execution, probably thinking that
-Nelly Grey’s three hundred, and her soul to boot,
-could not be in better hands than those of such
-godly men. So, after living three weeks longer in
-a very bad world, the worthy testator was gathered
-to his fathers, and it might perhaps have been as
-well that his said will had been gathered along<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span>
-with him,—as indeed happened in a recent case,
-where a sensible man, probably in fear of the lawyers,
-got his will placed in the same coffin with
-him,—though no doubt he forgot that worms, if
-not moths, do corrupt there also, and sometimes
-thieves, in the shape of body-snatchers, do break
-through and steal. Passing all which we proceed
-to say that the executors entered upon their duties.
-As regards the other legatees they found no difficulty
-whatever, most probably because legatees
-are a kind of persons who are seldom out of the
-way when they are wanted. They accordingly
-made their appearance, and without a smile, which
-would have been unbecoming, got payment of their
-legacies. But as for this Helen Grey, with so large
-a sum standing at her credit, she made no token
-of any kind, nor did any of the relations know
-aught concerning her, though they wondered exceedingly
-who she could be, and how she came to
-be in so strange a place as their kinsman’s testament.
-Not that the three executors, the ministers,
-shared very deeply in this wondering, because they
-knew that their elder, honest Andrew, was a good
-and godly man, and had had good and godly, and
-therefore sufficient reasons, (probably in the poverty
-and piety of Helen,) for doing what he had done.</p>
-
-<p>If indeed these gentlemen wondered at all, it was
-simply that any poor person living in such a place<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span>
-as Leith Wynd should be so regardless of money,
-as to fail to make her appearance among the grave
-and happy legatees. The question, who can she
-be, passed from the one to the other like a bad
-shilling. Not one of them could answer. Father
-Tron, and Father Tolbooth, and Father Trinity,
-were all at fault; the noses of their ingenuity
-could not smell out the object of their wish. But
-then they had been trusting so far as yet to the
-relatives, and had not made personal inquiry in
-Leith Wynd, which, if they had been men of business,
-they would have done at once.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said Father Trinity at length, “I think I
-have it now when I recollect there was an honest
-woman of that name who was a member of my
-congregation some years ago, and, if I am not
-mistaken, she was in honest Andrew Gebbie’s
-visiting district, and he took an interest in her
-soul.”</p>
-
-<p>“The thing is patent,” rejoined Father Tron.
-“Our lamented elder hath done this good thing
-out of the holy charity that cometh of piety.”</p>
-
-<p>“And a most beautiful example of the fruits of
-godliness,” added Father Tolbooth.</p>
-
-<p>“Beautiful indeed!” said Trinity. “For we
-have here to keep in view that Elder Andrew had
-many poor friends, but he hath chosen to prefer
-the relationship of the spirit to that of mere earthly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span>
-connexion. And his reward will verily be reaped
-in heaven.”</p>
-
-<p>“We must give the good man a paragraph in
-the <i>Mercury</i>,” resumed Father Tolbooth. “And
-now, brother of Trinity, it will be for you to
-find Helen Grey out, and carry to her the glad
-tidings.”</p>
-
-<p>“A pleasant commission,” rejoined Father
-Trinity, as he rose to depart.</p>
-
-<p>And taking his way to Leith Wynd, he soon
-reached that celebrated street, nor was it long till
-he passed “The Happy Land,” that dreaded den
-of burglars, thieves, and profligate women, which
-the Scotch, according to their peculiar humour,
-had so named. That large building he behoved
-to pass with a sigh as the great forlorn hope of the
-city, and coming to some of the brokers whose
-shops were farther down, he procured some information
-which sent him up a dark close, to the end
-of which having got, he ascended to a garret in a
-back tenement, and, knocking at the door, was answered
-by an aged woman.</p>
-
-<p>“Does Helen Grey live here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, sir!” replied she. “If ye ca’ living the
-breathing awa o’ the breath o’ life. It’s a sad
-thing when auld age and poverty come thegither.”</p>
-
-<p>“An old saying, Helen,” replied the father.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span>
-“Yet there is a third one which sanctifieth the
-other two, and bringeth all into harmony, peace,
-and love, and that is religion. But do you not
-know your old minister?”</p>
-
-<p>“Brawly, brawly, sir,” replied she; “but the
-truth is, I didna like to speak first; and now, sir,
-I’m as proud as if I had got a fortune.”</p>
-
-<p>“And so perhaps you have,” added the father.
-“But come, sit down. I’ve got something to
-say;” and having seated himself he continued.
-“Was Maister Andrew Gebbie, our worthy elder,
-in the habit of visiting you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, and he did aince or twice come and
-see me; but never mair,” replied she. “Yet he
-was sae kind as to bring me the last time this
-book o’ psalms and paraphrases, and there’s some
-writing in’t which I couldna read.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let me see it,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>And the woman having handed him the book—</p>
-
-<p>“To Mrs Janet Grey,” said the minister, as he
-read the inscription.</p>
-
-<p>“A mistake, for my name is Helen,” said she.
-“But it was weel meant in Mr Gebbie, and it’s a’
-the same.”</p>
-
-<p>“A staff to help her on to the happy land,” continued
-the reverend doctor, reading.</p>
-
-<p>“No ‘The Happy Land’ near bye?” interjected
-Helen.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span>“Not likely,” continued the doctor with a smile.
-“But I have good news for you, Helen.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good news for me!” said the woman. “That
-must come frae an airth no within the four quarters
-o’ the earthly compass. I thought a’ gude news for
-<i>me</i> had ta’en wings, and floun awa to the young
-and the happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“It seems not,” said he; “for Elder Andrew
-has left you a legacy of three hundred pounds.”</p>
-
-<p>“Stop, stop, sir!” ejaculated the frightened
-legatee. “It canna be, and though it was sae, I
-couldna bear the grandeur. It would put out the
-sma’ spark o’ life that’s left in my auld heart.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no!” said he. “It is only an earthly inheritance,
-Helen, to keep you in ease and comfort
-in your declining years, till you succeed to that
-inheritance which knoweth no decay, and fadeth
-not away.”</p>
-
-<p>“But is it really possible, good sir?” she continued,
-a little reconciled to that whereunto there
-is a pretty natural predisposition in human nature.
-“But I havena blessed Elder Andrew yet. May
-the Lord receive Andrew Gebbie’s soul into endless
-glory!”</p>
-
-<p>“Amen!” said the reverend doctor. “I will
-speak of this again to you, Helen.”</p>
-
-<p>And with these words he left the still confused
-woman, who would very likely still feel a difficulty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span>
-in comprehending the length and breadth of the
-goodness of a man who had seen her only a few
-times, and given her a psalm-book, and called her
-Janet in place of Helen—a mistake he must have
-rectified before he made his will.</p>
-
-<p>Next day the reverend doctor of Trinity had
-another meeting in the office of the law-agent to
-the trust, Mr George Crawford, whereat he recounted
-how he had found out the legatee; how
-strange it was that the poor woman was entirely
-ignorant of her good fortune; how grateful she
-was; and, above all, how strange that the saintly
-elder had only seen her a few times, and knew so
-little of her that he had made the foresaid mistake
-in her name. All which did seem strange to the
-brethren, not any one of whom would even have
-thought of giving more than perhaps a pound to
-such a person. But as the motives of men are
-hidden from the eyes of their fellows, and are indeed
-like the skins of onions, placed one above
-another, so they considered that all they had to do
-was to walk by the will.</p>
-
-<p>“We have no alternative,” said Father Tron;
-“nor should we wish any, seeing that the money
-could not be better applied; for has not the son
-of Sirach said, ‘Give unto a godly man, and not
-unto a sinner.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And,” added Tolbooth, “we are also commanded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>
-to give of our substance to the poor, and
-‘do well unto those that are lowly.’”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Father Trinity. “Mr Gebbie’s
-object was clear enough; it was sufficient for him
-that the woman was poor; therein lay his reward;
-and I presume we have nothing to do but to
-authorise Mr Crawford to pay the money.”</p>
-
-<p>“Which I will do, gentlemen,” said the writer,
-“if you authorise me; but I frankly confess to you
-that I am not altogether satisfied, because I knew
-Mr Andrew Gebbie intimately, and, godly as he
-was, I can hardly think he was the man to make a
-comparative stranger the medium of the accumulation
-of compound interest to be got back in
-heaven. Besides, Helen Grey is so common a
-name, that I believe I could get several in Edinburgh;
-and if we were to pay to the wrong woman,
-you might be bound to refund out of your own
-stipends, which would not be a very pleasant
-thing.”</p>
-
-<p>A speech which, touching the word stipend,
-brought a very grave look into the faces of the
-brethren.</p>
-
-<p>“A most serious, yea, a momentous consideration,”
-said Tron, followed by the two others.</p>
-
-<p>Nor had the groan got time to die away when
-the door opened, and there stood before them a
-woman of somewhere about forty, a little shabby<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span>
-in her apparel, though with a decayed flush of
-gaudy colour in it here and there; somewhat
-blowsy too—the tendency to the tint of the peony
-being more evident about the region of the nose,
-where there was a spot or two very clearly predisposed
-to the sending forth, under favourable circumstances,
-of a pimple; rather bold-looking in
-addition, even in presence of holy men who wielded
-the Calvinistic thunders of the day, and followed
-them up with the refreshing showers of grace and
-love.</p>
-
-<p>“I understand,” said she, “that Elder Andrew
-Gebbie has left me a legacy o’ three hundred
-pounds, and I will thank you for the siller.”</p>
-
-<p>On hearing which the three fathers looked at
-each other in amazement, and it was clear they
-did not like the appearance of the new claimant.</p>
-
-<p>“Who are you?” said Trinity.</p>
-
-<p>“Helen Grey!” replied she. “I live in Leith
-Wynd. Mr Andrew Gebbie and me were man and
-wife.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where are your marriage lines?” asked
-Tron.</p>
-
-<p>“I hae nane,” replied she. “It was a marriage
-by giving and taking between ourselves—a gude
-marriage by the law.”</p>
-
-<p>“And no witnesses?” said Tron.</p>
-
-<p>“The deil ane but the Lord.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span>“Wh-e-w!” whistled Father Tron, not audibly,
-only as it were within the mouth.</p>
-
-<p>“It is very true,” said Father Trinity, as he
-looked askance at the claimant, and contrasted her
-in his mind with the other Nelly, who he was satisfied
-was the real Nelly Pure, “that Mr Andrew
-Gebbie left that sum of money to a certain Helen
-Grey, but we have no evidence to show that you
-are the right woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“The right woman!” ejaculated she, with a bold
-laugh; “and how could I be the wrong ane, when
-I cut Andrew Gebbie’s corns for ten years?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, a chiropodist!” said Father Tron.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m nae corn-doctor, sir,” replied she, with
-something like offended pride: “I never cut
-another man’s corns in my life.”</p>
-
-<p>“We are nearly getting into that lightness of
-speech which betokeneth vanity,” said another of
-the brethren. “It is a serious matter; and we
-must require of you, Mrs Grey—seeing that the
-marriage cannot, even by your own statement, be
-taken into account, for want of evidence—to prove
-that you were upon such terms of friendship with
-Mr Gebbie as to make it probable that he would
-leave you this large sum of money.”</p>
-
-<p>“Friendship!” cried the woman again. “Ay,
-for ten years, and wha can tell where the flee
-may stang? It was nae mair than he should have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span>
-dune. I am Helen Grey, and I insist upon my
-rights.”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said Father Trinity, “there is another
-Helen Grey in Leith Wynd, with whom Mr Gebbie
-was acquainted, and to whom he made a present
-of a psalm-book.”</p>
-
-<p>“And did he no gie me a psalm-book too!”
-quoth the woman. “I have it at hame, and you
-are welcome to see my name on’t written by the
-elder’s ain hand. But did this second Helen Grey
-cut the good elder’s corns for ten lang years, I
-wonder? Tell me that, gentlemen, and I’ll tell
-you something mair that will make your ears ring
-as they never did at a psalm.”</p>
-
-<p>“Still this irreverend nonsense about corns:
-woman, are you mad?” said Tron. “Give us the
-names of respectable people who knew of this
-asserted friendship between you and the deceased
-elder.”</p>
-
-<p>“The deil ane kent o’t, sir, but ourselves!” was
-the sharp answer of the woman. “And if it comes
-to that, I can prove naething; but I tell you there’s
-mair in the corns than ye wot.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! she wants to prove the <i>footing</i> she was on
-with Mr Gebbie,” punned Mr Crawford with a
-laugh, and the grave brethren could not help joining
-in what Tron called a fine example of the
-figure called <i>paronomasia</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span>“That’s just it,” said the woman. “I will prove
-that I knew the length o’ his big tae, and may be
-mair.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what more?” asked Father Tron.</p>
-
-<p>“That Mr Gebbie had six toes on his left foot!”
-answered she.</p>
-
-<p>“And what of that?” inquired the agent, as he
-pricked up his ears at what might turn out a more
-special means of knowledge than they were dreaming
-of.</p>
-
-<p>“A great deal,” continued the woman. “Sae
-muckle that I need nae mair, for be it kenned to
-ye that Mr Gebbie was aye ashamed o’ what he
-thought a deformity, and concealed it from a’
-living mortals except me. If ye’ll prove that
-there’s anither person in a’ Edinburgh, in Scotland,
-or in the hail world, wha kens that Elder
-Andrew had six toes on his left foot, I’ll give up
-a’ right to the three hundred pounds!”</p>
-
-<p>“So there is something in the corns after all,”
-whispered Mr Crawford to Trinity, and the others
-hearing the remark began to think, and think, and
-look at each other, as if they felt that the woman
-had fairly shut them up to a test of her truthfulness
-easily applied. So telling her to call back next
-day at the same hour, they requested her to leave
-them. And after she was gone, the four gentlemen
-began gradually to relax from their gravity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span>
-as they saw the ingenuity of the woman, for it was
-quite apparent that if it should turn out that no
-one—servant, relative, or doctor—could tell this
-wonderful fact about the six toes of their own
-knowledge, however derived, and that this Helen
-Grey was the sole confidential custodier thereof—the
-conclusion was all but certain that she knew
-it by being intrusted with the cutting of the holy
-man’s corns, as she had asserted. And a confidence
-of this kind, (setting aside the irregular
-marriage,) implied a friendship so close as to justify
-the legacy. What in the meantime remained to be
-done was for the agent to see any persons connected
-with the elder’s household who were likely
-to know the fact, and being an honourable man he
-behoved to do this without what is called a leading
-question.</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, that same afternoon Mr Crawford
-busied himself to the effect of having seen the
-good elder’s housekeeper, as well as the doctor
-who had attended him upon his last illness, with
-perhaps a dozen of other likely people, such as the
-other legatees and relations, all of whom were entirely
-ignorant of the fact set forth by the woman,
-viz., that Mr Gebbie had six toes on his left foot.
-And next day the trustees met again, when Mr
-Crawford told them, before touching on the corns,
-that an agent had called upon him from the other<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span>
-Helen first seen, demanding payment to her. He
-then told the trustees the result of his inquiries—that
-not a single person of all he had seen knew
-anything of the abnormal foot. At this the clergymen
-wondered more and more, and how long they
-might have sat there and wondered it might have
-been difficult to say, had it not been for an ingenious
-idea started by Tron, and suggested by the
-old story about King Charles and the fish in the
-bucket of water.</p>
-
-<p>“The woman is laughing at us,” said he, “and
-we are inquiring whether certain people knew a
-fact without making ourselves acquainted with the
-prior fact, whether that prior fact had ever any
-existence except in the brain of this bad woman,
-whose evidence goes to traduce the character of a
-holy elder of the Church of Scotland.”</p>
-
-<p>The brethren again laughed at this ingenious
-discovery of Father Tron’s, and thereupon began
-to veer round in favour of good Nelly <i>prima</i>. In
-a few minutes more entered Blowsabel again, holding
-in her hand a psalm-book with some words of
-an inscription on it in the handwriting of the elder,
-but subscribed “a friend,” whereas, as the reader
-may recollect, the inscription in the book given to
-the first Helen, (with the misnomer of Janet,) was
-in the name of Andrew Gebbie—a fact rather in
-favour of Nelly <i>secunda</i>, insomuch as it harmonised<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span>
-with her statement that the friendship between the
-elder and her had been kept a secret known only
-to themselves.</p>
-
-<p>“That goes for what it’s worth,” said she, as she
-received back the book. “And now,” she continued,
-addressing Mr Crawford, “you can tell me
-whether you were able to find, within the hail o’
-Edinburgh, a single person who knew that Elder
-Andrew had six taes on his left foot.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have found no one,” was the answer, “for
-the good reason that Andrew Gebbie had no more
-toes on his left foot than you yourself have on
-yours.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon Helen <i>secunda</i> burst out into a laugh.
-After which, said she, “I will prove it, as sure as I
-am a living woman!”</p>
-
-<p>“The man is dead and buried!” replied Mr
-Crawford, with a voice of triumph.</p>
-
-<p>“That makes nae difference,” said she; “unless
-it be that the worms have eaten awa the sixth tae;
-and, by my faith, I’ll see to it!”</p>
-
-<p>And with these words she went away, leaving
-the trustees in as great a difficulty as ever. Nor
-had she been long gone when a man of the name
-of Marshall, the procurator who had taken up the
-case of the first Helen, entered and said, “he had
-got evidence to show that a neighbour, who had
-been present at the last interview between the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span>
-elder and his client, had heard the worthy man
-declare, that he had been moved to pity by her
-age and poverty, and had promised to do something
-for her, to enable her to pass her remaining
-years in comfort.”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said the agent, “there is, I am sorry to
-say, another Helen in the field; and you must
-drive her off before we can pay your client the
-money.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I know who she is,” was the answer.
-“That woman’s word is not to be relied upon; for
-she is what she is.” And then he added, “I am
-determined to see justice done to my client—who,
-at least, is an honest woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now you see, gentlemen,” said Mr Crawford,
-after the first Helen’s agent had departed—“you
-see how this extraordinary affair stands. The two
-claimants are determined to fight it out: so that,
-if you pay the money to the good woman, you
-will, as I said before, run a risk of being obliged
-to pay the other one afterwards out of your
-stipends.”</p>
-
-<p>“Our stipends are the holy tenths, set apart to
-the work of the Lord from the beginning of the
-world,” answered the brethren, “and cannot be
-touched, except by sacrilegious hands!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then,” continued the agent, “there is only
-one thing we can do; and that is, to throw the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>
-case into court by what we call a multiplepoinding,
-and let the claimants fight against each other.”</p>
-
-<p>A proposition this to which the trustees felt
-themselves bound to agree, though with very much
-reluctance; for they saw that the case would become
-public, and there would be ill-disposed people
-that would be inclined to put a false construction
-upon the motives of the worthy elder of Trinity.
-But then, to comfort them, they felt assured that
-the story of the toes was a pure invention; and
-the elder being buried, there was no possibility of
-proving the same.</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the meeting separated. Next day
-Mr Crawford commenced his law proceedings;
-and in due time, a record having been prepared,
-the advocates behoved to plead the causes of their
-respective clients.</p>
-
-<p>Then stood up Mr Anderson, the advocate of
-the first Helen, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“Your lordships must see that—if you lay out
-of view as a mere invention, which it is, the story
-of the six toes—the preponderance of the evidence
-lies with my client. There is a psalm-book in each
-case; but mine has the name of the testator to the
-inscription: and you have, in addition, the testimony
-of one respectable person who heard Mr
-Gebbie declare his intention to enable this poor
-old woman to live. On the other side you have<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span>
-no evidence whatever that the elder ever set his
-foot—corns or no corns—on the floor of the Helen
-<i>secunda</i>. There was no such <i>footing</i> of intimacy
-as that contended for on the other side; and that
-I am justified in calling the story of the six toes
-an invention will appear when I say that, according
-to the authority of learned men, a <i>lusus naturæ</i>
-of this kind does not occur once in ten thousand
-births: so that it is ten thousand to one against
-the assumption. In addition, there is the character
-of the deceased, whose whole life and conversation
-are against the presumption that he would
-go to Leith Wynd, and get a woman of doubtful
-character to operate upon a foot of which he is
-said to have been ashamed. For all which reasons
-I claim the three hundred pounds for my client.”</p>
-
-<p>Then stood up Mr Sharp, the advocate of the
-second Helen, and said:—</p>
-
-<p>“It is no wonder at all why my learned friend
-has a difficulty about his <i>locus standi</i>, seeing he is
-so delicate about the feet. I feel no delicacy on
-that fundamental point. And it is because my
-corns of legal right and justice are pared that I
-stand here with so much ease, and assert that Mr
-Gebbie having imparted to my client a secret which
-he never communicated to living mortal besides,
-that secret could only have been the result of an
-intimacy and confidence sufficient to justify this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span>
-legacy in her favour of three hundred pounds.
-My friend says, that there are many chances
-against such a freak of nature as six toes. That
-is true. But he confounds the thing with the assertion
-of the thing. And were there not a presumption
-in favour of a person speaking the truth
-rather than falsehood, what would become of that
-testimony which is the foundation of our holy religion,
-not less than of the decisions of our courts of
-justice? But it is in the power of this court to
-ascertain the truth of my assertion. The body of
-the worthy elder can be exhumed; and if it shall
-appear that it has six toes on the left foot, the presumption
-of the intimacy of friendship which will
-justify the legacy is complete. On the other side
-there is no such presumption. The elder only
-visited the first Helen once or twice, and what was
-to induce him to leave her so large a sum to the
-deprivation of his poor relations?”</p>
-
-<p>Then the President spoke as follows:—</p>
-
-<p>“It appears to the Court that, in this very extraordinary
-case, we never can get at the truth
-without testing, by proof, the statement made by
-the second Helen in regard to the six toes, because
-if it is really a fact that the testator carried this
-number on his left foot, and by parity that that
-number carried him, it is impossible to get quit of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span>
-the presumption that the fact was communicated
-confidentially when the operation of paring was
-resorted to; and as confidence implies friendship,
-and friendship intimacy, we must assume that
-there must have been such an amount of mutual
-liking on the part of these individuals as would
-justify the legacy which is the subject-matter of
-this multiplepoinding. The Court will therefore
-issue an order for the exhumation of the body of
-Andrew Gebbie, for the purpose of ascertaining
-whether the testator’s foot was formed in the manner
-asserted by the claimant.”</p>
-
-<p>The commission was accordingly issued. The
-body of the elder was examined as it lay in the
-coffin, and the result of the examination, as stated
-in the report, was: “That the left foot was furnished
-with six toes, the sixth or supernumerary
-one being much smaller than the one next to it. It
-also appeared that the toes of this foot were supplied
-with a number of very hard corns, which bore
-the marks of having been often pared by some very
-careful hand.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the case was again taken up, when
-judgment was given for the second Helen, who
-was thus remarkably well paid for her attention
-to the corns of the worthy elder. When the decision
-was reported to the reverend executors, Father<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span>
-Tron shook his head with great gravity, Tolbooth
-did the same, and so did Trinity: nay, they all
-shook their heads at the same time: but what
-they intended to signify thereby was never known,
-for the reason that it was never declared.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_136.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_137.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Mysie Craig.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN detailing the curious circumstances of
-the following story, I am again only
-reporting a real law case to be found
-in the Court of Session Records, the turning-point
-of which was as invisible to the judges as to the
-parties themselves—that is, until the end came;
-a circumstance again which made the case a kind
-of developed romance. But as an end implies a
-beginning, and the one is certainly as necessary
-as the other, we request you to accompany us—taking
-care of your feet—up the narrow spiral
-staircase of a tenement called Corbet’s Land, in
-the same old town where so many wonderful
-things in the complicated drama—or dream, if
-you are a Marphurius—of human life have occurred.
-Up which spiral stair having got by the
-help of our hands, almost as indispensable as that
-of the feet—we find ourselves in a little human
-dovecot of two small rooms, occupied by two
-persons not unlike, in many respects, two doves—Widow<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span>
-Craig and her daughter, called May,
-euphuised by the Scotch into Mysie. The chief
-respects in which they might be likened, without
-much stress, to the harmless creatures we have
-mentioned, were their love for each other, together
-with their total inoffensiveness as regarded the
-outside world; and we are delighted to say this,
-for we see so many of the multitudinous sides of
-human nature dark and depraved, that we are apt
-to think there is no bright side at all. Nor shall
-we let slip the opportunity of saying, at the risk of
-being considered very simple, that of all the gifts
-of felicity bestowed, as the Pagan Homer tells,
-upon mankind by the gods, no one is so perfect
-and beautiful as the love that exists between a
-good mother and a good daughter.</p>
-
-<p>For so much we may be safe by having recourse
-to instinct, which is deeper than any secondary
-causes we poor mortals can see. But beyond this,
-there were special reasons tending to this same
-result of mutual affection, which come more within
-the scope of our observation. In explanation of
-which we may say that the mother, having something
-in her power during her husband’s life, had
-foreseen the advantages of using it in the instruction
-of her quick and intelligent daughter in an
-art of far more importance then than now—that
-of artistic needlework. Nay, of so much importance<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span>
-was this beautiful art, and to such perfection
-was it brought at a time when a lady’s petticoat,
-embroidered by the hand, with its profuse imitations
-of natural objects, flowers, and birds, and
-strange devices, would often cost twenty pounds
-Scots, that a sight of one of those operose achievements
-of genius would make us blush for our time
-and the labours of our women. Nor was the perfection
-in this ornamental industry a new thing,
-for the daughters of the Pictish kings confined in
-the castle were adepts in it; neither was it left
-altogether to paid sempstresses, for great ladies
-spent their time in it, and emulation quickened
-both the genius and the diligence. So we need
-hardly say it became to the mother a thing to be
-proud of, that her daughter Mysie proved herself
-so apt a scholar that she became an adept, and
-was soon known as one of the finest embroideresses
-in the great city. So, too, as a consequence, it
-came to pass that great ladies employed her, and
-often the narrow spiral staircase of Corbet’s Land
-was brushed on either side by the huge masses of
-quilted and emblazoned silk that, enveloping the
-belles of the day, were with difficulty forced up to,
-and down from, the small room of the industrious
-Mysie.</p>
-
-<p>But we are now speaking of art, while we should
-have more to say (for it concerns us more) of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span>
-character of the young woman who was destined to
-figure in a stranger way than in making beautiful
-figures on silk. Mysie was one of a class; few in
-number they are indeed, but on that account more
-to be prized. Her taste and fine manipulations
-were but counterparts of qualities of the heart—an
-organ to which the pale face, with its delicate
-lines, and the clear liquid eyes, was a suitable index.
-The refinement which enabled her to make her
-imitation of beautiful objects on the delicate material
-of her work was only another form of a
-sensibility which pervaded her whole nature—that
-gift which is only conceded to peculiar organisations,
-and is such a doubtful one, too, if we go, as
-we cannot help doing, with the poet, when he sings
-that “chords that vibrate sweetest pleasures,”
-often also “thrill the deepest notes of woe.” Nay,
-we might say that the creatures themselves seem
-to fear the gift, for they shrink from the touch of
-the rough world, and retire within themselves as if
-to avoid it, while they are only courting its effects
-in the play of an imagination much too ardent for
-the duties of life. And, as a consequence, how
-they seek secretly the support of stronger natures,
-clinging to them as do those strange plants called
-parasites, which, with their tender arms and something
-so like fingers, cling to the nearest stem of a
-stouter neighbour, and embracing it, even though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span>
-hollow and rotten, cover it, and choke it with a
-flood of flowers. So true is it that woman, like
-the generous vine, lives by being supported and
-held up; yet equally true that the strength she
-gains is from the embrace she gives, and so it is
-also that goodness, as our Scottish poet Home
-says, often wounds itself, and affection proves the
-spring of sorrow.</p>
-
-<p>All which might truly be applied to Mysie Craig;
-but as yet the stronger stem to which she clung
-was her mother, and it was not likely, nor was it
-in reality, that that affection would prove to her
-anything but the spring of happiness, for it was
-ripened by love, and the earnings of the nimble
-fingers, moving often into the still hours of the
-night, not only kept the wolf from the door, but
-let in the lambs of domestic harmony and peace.
-Would that these things had so continued; but
-there are other wolves than those of poverty, and
-the “ae lamb o’ the fauld” cannot be always under
-the protection of the ewe; and so it happened on
-a certain night, not particularised in the calendar,
-that our Mysie, having finished one of these floral
-petticoats on which she had been engaged for
-many weeks, went forth with her precious burden
-to deliver the same to its impatient owner—no
-other than the then famous Anabella Gilroy, who
-resided in Advocate’s Close. Of which fine lady,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span>
-by the way, we may say that of all the gay creatures
-who paraded between “the twa Bows,” no
-one displayed such ample folds of brocaded silk,
-nodded her pon-pons more jantily, or napped
-with a sharper crack her high-heeled shoes, all to
-approve herself to “the bucks” of the time, with
-their square coats brocaded with lace, their three-cornered
-hats on the top of their bob-wigs, their
-knee-buckles and shoe-buckles. And certainly not
-the least important of those, both in his own estimation
-and that of the sprightly Anabella, was
-George Balgarnie, a young man who had only a
-year before succeeded to the property of Balgruddery,
-somewhere in the north, and of whom
-we might say that in forming him Nature had
-taken so much pains with the building up of the
-body, that she had forgotten the mind, so that he
-had no more spiritual matter in him than sufficed
-to keep his blood hot, and enable his sensual organs
-to work out their own selfish gratifications; or, to
-perpetrate a metaphor, he was all the polished
-mahogany of a piano, without any more musical
-springs than might respond to one keynote of
-selfishness. And surely Anabella had approved
-herself to the fop to some purpose, for when our
-sempstress with her bundle had got into the parlour
-of the fine lady, she encountered no other
-than Balgarnie—a circumstance apparently of very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span>
-small importance, but we know that a moment of
-time is sometimes like a small seed, which contains
-the nucleus of a great tree, perhaps a poisonous
-one. And so it turned out that while Anabella
-was gloating over the beautiful work of the timid
-embroideress, Balgarnie was busy admiring the
-artist, but not merely, perhaps not at all, as an
-artist—only as an object over whom he wished to
-exercise power.</p>
-
-<p>This circumstance was not unobserved by the
-little embroideress, but it was only observed to be
-shrunk from in her own timid way, and probably
-it would soon have passed from her mind, if it had
-not been followed up by something more direct
-and dangerous. And it was; for no sooner had
-Mysie got to the foot of the stairs than she encountered
-Balgarnie, who had gone out before her;
-and now began one of those romances in daily life
-of which the world is full, and of which the world
-is sick. Balgarnie, in short, commenced that kind
-of suit which is nearly as old as the serpent, and,
-therefore, not to be wondered at; neither are we to
-wonder that Mysie listened to it, because we have
-heard so much about “lovely woman stooping to
-folly,” that we are content to put it to the large
-account of natural miracles. And not very miraculous
-either, when we remember, that if the low-breathed
-accents of tenderness awaken the germ<span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span>
-of love, they awaken at the same time faith and
-trust; and such was the beginning of the romance
-which was to go through the normal stages—the
-appointment to meet again—the meeting itself—the
-others that followed—the extension of the
-moonlight walks, sometimes to the Hunter’s Bog
-between Arthur’s Seat and Salisbury Crags, and
-sometimes to the song-famed “Wells o’ Weary.”
-All which were just as sun and shower to the germ
-of the plant: the love grew and grew, and the faith
-grew and grew also which saw in him that which it
-felt in itself. Nay, if any of those moonlight-loving
-elves that have left their foot-marks in the fairy
-rings to be seen near St Anthony’s Well had whispered
-in Mysie’s ear, “Balgarnie will never make
-you his wife,” she would have believed the words
-as readily as if they had impugned the sincerity of
-her own heart. In short, we have again the analogue
-of the parasitic plant: the very fragility and
-timidity of Mysie were at once the cause and consequence
-of her confidence. She would cling to
-him and cover him with the blossoms of her affection;
-nay, if there were unsoundness in the stem,
-these very blossoms would cover the rottenness.</p>
-
-<p>This change in the life of the little sempstress
-could not fail to produce some corresponding
-change at home. We read smoothly the play we
-have acted ourselves—and so the mother read love<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span>
-in the daughter’s eyes, and heard it, too, in her
-long sighs; nor did she fail to read the sign that
-the song which used to lighten her beautiful work
-was no longer heard; for love to creatures so
-formed as Mysie Craig is too serious an affair for
-poetical warbling. But she said nothing—for while
-she had faith in the good sense and virtue of her
-daughter, she knew also that there was forbearance
-due to one who was her support. Nor, as yet, had
-she reason to fear, for Mysie still plied her needle,
-and the roses and the lilies sprang up in all their
-varied colours out of the ground of the silk or satin
-as quickly and as beautifully as they were wont,
-though the lilies of her cheeks waxed paler as the
-days flitted. And why the latter should have been
-we must leave to the reader; for ourselves only
-hazarding the supposition that, perhaps, she already
-thought that Balgarnie should be setting about to
-make her his wife—an issue which behoved to be
-the result of their intimacy sooner or later, for that
-in her simple mind there should be any other issue
-was just about as impossible as that, in the event of
-the world lasting as long, the next moon would not,
-at her proper time, again shine in that green hollow,
-between the Lion’s Head and Samson’s Ribs, which
-had so often been the scene of their happiness.
-Nay, we might say that though a doubt on the
-subject had by any means got into her mind, it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span>
-would not have remained there longer than it took
-a shudder to scare the wild thing away.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, all this was only a question of time;
-but certain it is that by and by the mother could
-see some connexion between Mysie’s being more
-seldom out on those moonlight nights than formerly,
-and a greater paleness in her thin face, as
-if the one had been the cause of the other; but
-still she said nothing, for she daily expected that
-Mysie would herself break the subject to her, and
-so she was left only to increasing fears that her
-daughter’s heart and affections had been tampered
-with, and perhaps she had fears that went farther.
-Still, so far as yet had gone, there was no remission
-in the labours of Mysie’s fingers, as if in the
-midst of all—whatever that all might be—she recognised
-the paramount necessity of bringing in
-by those fingers the required and usual amount of
-the means of their livelihood. Nay, somehow or
-other, there was at that very time when her cheek
-was at the palest, and her sighs were at their
-longest, and her disinclination to speak was at the
-strongest, that the work increased upon her; for
-was not there a grand tunic to embroider for Miss
-Anabella, which was wanted on a given day—and
-were there not other things for Miss Anabella’s
-friend, Miss Allardice, which were not to be delayed
-beyond that same day. And so she stitched<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span>
-and stitched on and on, till sometimes the little
-lamp seemed to go out for want of oil, while the
-true cause of her diminished light was really the
-intrusion of the morning sun, against which it had
-no chance. It might be, too, that her very anxiety
-to get these grand dresses finished helped to keep
-out of her mind ideas which could have done her
-small good, even if they had got in.</p>
-
-<p>But at length the eventful hour came when the
-gentle sempstress withdrew the shining needle,
-made clear by long use, from the last touch of the
-last rose; and, doubtless, if Mysie had not been
-under the cloud of sorrow we have mentioned, she
-would have been happier at the termination of so
-long a labour than she had ever been, for the
-finishing evening had always been a great occasion
-to both the inmates; nay, it had been always
-celebrated by a glass of strong Edinburgh ale—a
-drink which, as both a liquor and a liqueur, was
-as famous then as it is at this day. But of what
-avail was this work-termination to her now? Was
-it not certain that she had not seen Balgarnie for
-two moons, and though the impossibility of his not
-marrying her was just as impossible as ever, why
-were these two moons left to shine in the green
-hollow and on the rising hill without the privilege
-of throwing the shadows of Mysie Craig and George
-Balgarnie on the grass, where the fairies had left<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span>
-the traces of their dances? Questions these which
-she was unable to answer, if it were not even that
-she was afraid to put them to herself. Then, when
-was it that she felt herself unable to tie up her
-work in order to take it home, and that her mother,
-seeing the reacting effect of the prior sleepless
-nights in her languid frame, did this little duty
-for her, even as while she was doing it she looked
-through her tears at her changed daughter? But
-Mysie would do so much. While the mother should
-go to Miss Allardice, Mysie would proceed to Miss
-Anabella—and so it was arranged. They went
-forth together, parting at the Netherbow; and
-Mysie, in spite of a weakness which threatened to
-bring her with her burden to the ground, struggled
-on to her destination. At the top of Advocate’s
-Close she saw a man hurry out and increase his
-step even as her eye rested on him; and if it had
-not appeared to her to be among the ultimate impossibilities
-of things, natural as well as unnatural,
-she would have sworn that that man was George
-Balgarnie; but then, it just so happened that Mysie
-came to the conclusion that such a circumstance
-was among these ultimate impossibilities.</p>
-
-<p>This resolution was an effort which cost her
-more than the conviction would have done, though
-doubtless she did not feel this at the time, and so
-with a kind of forced step she mounted the stair,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span>
-but when she got into the presence of Miss Gilroy
-she could scarcely pronounce the words—</p>
-
-<p>“I have brought you the dress, ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I am so delighted, Miss Craig, that I
-could almost take you into my arms,” said the
-lady; “but what ails ye, dear? You are as white
-as any snow I ever saw, whereas you ought to have
-been as blithe as a bridesmaid, for don’t you know
-that you have brought me home one of my marriage
-dresses? Come now, smile when I tell you
-that to-morrow is my wedding-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wedding-day,” muttered Mysie, as she thought
-of the aforesaid utter impossibility of herself not
-being soon married to George Balgarnie, an impossibility
-not rendered less impossible by the resolution
-she had formed not to believe that within five
-minutes he had flown away from her.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Miss Craig, and surely you must have
-heard who the gentleman is, for does not the town
-ring of it from the castle to the palace, from Kirk-o’-Field
-to the Calton?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have not been out,” said Mysie.</p>
-
-<p>“That accounts for it,” continued the lady;
-“and I am delighted at the reason, for wouldn’t
-it have been terrible to think that my marriage
-with George Balgarnie of Balgruddery was a thing
-of so small a note as not to be known everywhere?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span>If Mysie Craig had appeared shortly before to
-Miss Gilroy paler than any snow her ladyship had
-ever seen, she must now have been as pale as some
-other kind of snow that nobody ever saw. The
-dreadful words had, indeed, produced the adequate
-effect—but not in the most common way, for we
-are to keep in view that it is not the most shrinking
-and sensitive natures that are always the
-readiest to faint; and there was, besides, the aforesaid
-conviction of impossibility which, grasping
-the mind by a certain force, deadened the ear to
-words implying the contrary. Mysie stood fixed
-to the spot, as if she were trying to realise some
-certainty she dared not think was possible, her
-lips apart, her eyes riveted on the face of the lady—mute
-as that kind of picture which a certain
-ancient calls a silent poem, and motionless as a
-figure of marble.</p>
-
-<p>An attitude and appearance still more inexplicable
-to Anabella, perhaps irritating as an unlucky
-omen, and, therefore, not possessing any
-claim for sympathy—at least, it got none.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you the Mysie Craig,” she cried, as she
-looked at the girl, “who used to chat to me about
-the dresses you brought, and the flowers on them?
-Ah, jealous and envious, is that it? But, you forget,
-George Balgarnie never could have made <i>you</i>
-his wife—a working needlewoman; he only fancied<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span>
-you as the plaything of an hour. He told me so
-himself when I charged him with having been
-seen in your company. So, Mysie, you may as
-well look cheerful. Your turn will come next,
-with some one in your own station.”</p>
-
-<p>There are words which stimulate and confirm—there
-are others that seem to kill the nerve and
-take away the sense, nor can we ever tell the effect
-till we see it produced; and so we could not have
-told beforehand—nay, we would have looked for
-something quite opposite—that Mysie, shrinking
-and irritable as she was by nature, was saved from
-a faint, (which had for some moments been threatening
-her,) by the cruel insult which thus had been
-added to her misfortune. She had even power to
-have recourse to that strange device of some natures,
-that of “affecting to be not affected;” and,
-casting a glance at the fine lady, she turned and
-went away without uttering a single word. But
-who knows the pain of the conventional concealment
-of pain, except those who have experienced
-the agony of the trial? Even at the moment when
-she heard that George Balgarnie was to be married,
-and that she came to know that she had been for
-weeks sewing the marriage dress of his bride, she
-was carrying under her heart the living burden
-which was the fruit of her love for that man. Yet
-not the burden of shame and dishonour, as our<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span>
-story will show, for she was justified by the law of
-her country—yea, by certain words once written
-by an apostle to the Corinthians, all which may as
-yet appear a great mystery; but, as regards Mysie
-Craig’s agony, as she staggered down Miss Gilroy’s
-stairs on her way home, there could be no doubt
-or mystery whatever.</p>
-
-<p>Nor, when she got home, was there any comfort
-there for the daughter who had been so undutiful
-as to depart from her mother’s precepts, and conceal
-from her not only her unfortunate connexion
-with a villain, but the condition into which that
-connexion had brought her. But she was, at least,
-saved from the pain of a part of the confession, for
-her mother had learned enough from Miss Allardice
-to satisfy her as to the cause of her daughter’s
-change from the happy creature she once was,
-singing in the long nights as she wrought unremittingly
-at her beautiful work, and the poor,
-sighing, pale, heart-broken thing she had been for
-months. Nor did she fail to see, with the quick
-eye of a mother, that as Mysie immediately on
-entering the house laid herself quietly on the bed,
-and sobbed in her great agony, that she had
-learned the terrible truth from Miss Gilroy that
-the robe she had embroidered was to deck the
-bride of her destroyer. Moreover, her discretion
-enabled her to perceive that this was not the time<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span>
-for explanation, for the hours of grief are sacred,
-and the heart must be left to do its work by opening
-the issues of Nature’s assuagement, or ceasing
-to beat. So the night passed, without question or
-answer; and the following day, that of the marriage,
-was one of silence, even as if death had
-touched the tongue that used to be the medium of
-cheerful words and tender sympathies—a strange
-contrast to the joy, if not revelry, in Advocate’s
-Close.</p>
-
-<p>It was not till after several days had passed that
-Mysie was able, as she still lay in bed, to whisper,
-amidst the recurring sobs, in the ear of her mother,
-as the latter bent over her, the real circumstances
-of her condition; and still, amidst the trembling
-words, came the vindication that she considered
-herself to be as much the wife of George Balgarnie
-as if they had been joined by “Holy Kirk;” a
-statement which the mother could not understand,
-if it was not to her a mystery, rendered even more
-mysterious by a reference which Mysie made to
-the law of the country, as she had heard the same
-from her cousin George Davidson, a writer’s clerk
-in the Lawnmarket. Much of which, as it came
-in broken syllables from the lips of the disconsolate
-daughter, the mother put to the account of
-the fond dreams of a mind put out of joint by the
-worst form of misery incident to young women.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span>
-But what availed explanations, mysteries or no
-mysteries, where the fact was patent that Mysie
-Craig lay there, the poor heart-broken victim of
-man’s perfidy—her powers of industry broken and
-useless—the fine weaving genius of her fancy,
-whereby she wrought her embroidered devices to
-deck and adorn beauty, only engaged now on portraying
-all the evils of her future life; and, above
-all, was she not soon to become a mother?</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, and in the midst of all this misery,
-the laid-up earnings of Mysie’s industry wore away,
-where there was no work by those cunning fingers—now
-thin and emaciated; and before the days
-passed, and the critical day came whereon another
-burden would be imposed on the household, there
-was need for the sympathy of neighbours in that
-form which soon wears out—pecuniary help. That
-critical day at length came. Mysie Craig gave
-birth to a boy, and their necessities from that hour
-grew in quicker and greater proportion than the
-generosity of friends. There behoved something
-to be done, and that without delay. So when
-Mysie lay asleep, with the innocent evidence of
-her misfortune by her side, Mrs Craig put on her
-red plaid and went forth on a mother’s duty, and
-was soon in the presence of George Balgarnie and
-his young wife. She was under an impulse which
-made light of delicate conventionalities, and did<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>
-not think it necessary to give the lady an opportunity
-of being absent; nay, she rather would have
-her to be present—for was she, who had been so
-far privy to the intercourse between her husband
-and Mysie, to be exempt from the consequences
-which she, in a sense, might have been said to
-have brought about?</p>
-
-<p>“Ye have ruined Mysie Craig, sir!” cried at
-once the roused mother. “Ye have ta’en awa her
-honour. Ye have ta’en awa her health. Ye have
-ta’en awa her bread. Ay, and ye have reduced
-three human creatures to want, it may be starvation;
-and I have come here in sair sorrow and
-necessity to ask when and whaur is to be the
-remeid?”</p>
-
-<p>“When and where you may find it, woman!”
-said the lady, as she cast a side-glance to her husband,
-probably by way of appeal for the truth of
-what she thought it right to say. “Mr Balgarnie
-never injured your daughter. Let him who did
-the deed yield the remeid!”</p>
-
-<p>“And do you stand by this?” said Mrs
-Craig.</p>
-
-<p>But the husband had been already claimed as
-free from blame by his wife, who kept her eye fixed
-upon him; and the obligation to conscience, said
-by sceptics to be an offspring of society, is sometimes
-weaker than what is due to a wife, in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-estimation of whom a man may wish to stand in
-a certain degree of elevation.</p>
-
-<p>“You must seek another father to the child of
-your daughter,” said he, lightly. And, not content
-with the denial, he supplemented it by a laugh, as
-he added, “When birds go to the greenwood, they
-must take the chance of meeting the goshawk.”</p>
-
-<p>“And that is your answer?” said she.</p>
-
-<p>“It is; and you need never trouble either my
-wife or me more on this subject,” was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>“Then may the vengeance o’ the God of justice
-light on the heads o’ baith o’ ye!” added Mrs Craig,
-as she went hurriedly away.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was her threat intended as an empty one,
-for she held on her way direct to the Lawnmarket,
-where she found George Davidson, to whom she
-related as much as she had been able to get out of
-Mysie, and also what had passed at the interview
-with Balgarnie and his lady. After hearing which,
-the young writer shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“You will get a trifle of aliment,” said he; “perhaps
-half-a-crown a week, but no more; and Mysie
-could have made that in a day by her beautiful
-work.”</p>
-
-<p>“And she will never work mair,” said the mother,
-with a sigh.</p>
-
-<p>“For a hundred years,” rejoined he, more to
-himself than to her, and probably in congratulation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span>
-of himself for his perspicacity, “and since ever
-there was a college of justice, there never was a
-case where a man pulled up on oath for a promise
-of marriage admitted the fact. It is a good Scotch
-law—only we want a people to obey it. But what,”
-he added again, “if we were to try it, though it
-were only as a grim joke and a revenge in so sad
-and terrible a case as that of poor Mysie Craig!”</p>
-
-<p>Words which the mother understood no more
-than she did law Latin; and so she was sent away
-as sorrowful as she had come, for Davidson did not
-want to raise hopes which there was no chance of
-being fulfilled; but he knew as a Scotchman that
-a man who trusts himself to “a strae rape” in the
-hope of its breaking, may possibly hang himself,
-and so it happened that the very next day a summons
-was served upon George Balgarnie, to have
-it found and declared by the Lords of Session that
-he had promised to marry Mysie Craig, whereupon
-a child had been born by her; or, in fault of that,
-he was bound to sustain the said child. Thereupon,
-without the ordinary law’s delay, certain proceedings
-went on, in the course of which Mysie
-herself was examined as the mother to afford
-what the lawyers call a <i>semiplena probatio</i>, or half
-proof, to be supplemented otherwise, and thereafter
-George Balgarnie stood before the august
-fifteen. He denied stoutly all intercourse with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span>
-Mysie, except an occasional walk in the Hunter’s
-Bog; and this he would have denied also, but he
-knew that he had been seen, and that it would be
-sworn to by others; and then came the last question,
-which Mr Greerson, Mysie’s advocate, put in
-utter hopelessness. Nay, so futile did it seem to
-try to catch a Scotchman by advising him to put
-his head in a noose on the pretence of seeing how
-it fitted his neck, that he smiled even as the words
-came out of his mouth—</p>
-
-<p>“Did you ever promise to marry Mysie Craig?”</p>
-
-<p>Was prudence, the chief of the four cardinal
-virtues, ever yet consistent with vice? Balgarnie
-waxed clever—a dangerous trick in a witness. He
-stroked his beard with a smile on his face, and
-answered—</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Yes, once—when I was drunk!</i>”</p>
-
-<p>Words which were immediately followed by the
-crack of a single word in the dry mouth of one of
-the advocates—the word “<span class="smcap">Nicked</span>.”</p>
-
-<p>And nicked he was; for the presiding judge, addressing
-the witness, said—</p>
-
-<p>“The drunkenness may be good enough in its
-own way, sir; but it does not take away the effect
-of your promise—nay, it is even an aggravation, insomuch
-as having enjoyed the drink, you wanted
-to enjoy with impunity what you could make of
-the promise also.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span>If Balgarnie had been a reader he might have
-remembered Waller’s verse—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“That eagle’s fate and mine are one,</div>
-<div class="indent">Which on the shaft that made him die</div>
-<div class="verse">Espied a feather of his own,</div>
-<div class="indent">Wherewith he wont to soar so high.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>So Mysie gained her plea, and the marriage with
-Anabella, for whom she had embroidered the marriage-gown,
-was dissolved. How matters progressed
-afterwards for a time we know not; but
-the Scotch know that there is wisdom in making
-the best of a bad bargain, and in this case it was
-a good one; for, as the Lady of Balgruddery,
-Mysie Craig did no dishonour to George Balgarnie,
-who, moreover, found her a faithful wife,
-and a good mother to the children that came of
-this strange marriage.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_159.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_160.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Pinched Tom.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN searching again Lord Kilkerran’s Session
-Papers in the Advocates’ Library,
-I observed a strange remark written on
-the margin of one of them—“Beware of pinched
-Tom”—the meaning of which I was at a loss to
-find. His lordship was known to be a very grave
-man, as well as an excellent lawyer, and all so unlike
-the Newtons and Harmands, who made the
-blind Lady Justice laugh by the antics of that
-other lady sung by Beranger—Dame Folly—that
-I was put to my wit’s end, although I admit that,
-by a reference to a part of the printed Session
-Papers opposite to which the remark was made,
-I thought I could catch a glimmering of his lordship’s
-intention. The law case occupying the
-papers comprehended a question of disputed succession,
-and that question involved the application
-of a curious law in Scotland, which still remains.</p>
-
-<p>I believe we borrowed it from that great repertory
-from which our forefathers took so much wisdom—the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span>
-Roman code; but be that as it may, (and
-it’s no great matter in so far as regards my story,)
-certain it is that it is a part of our jurisprudence,
-that where a marriage is dissolved by the death of
-the wife within a year and a day of the celebration
-thereof, without leaving a living child, the tocher
-goes back to the wife’s friends. Of course nothing
-is more untrue than that bit of connubial
-wit: that while we hold, according to the
-Bible, that a man and his wife are <i>one</i>, we also
-very sensibly hold that the husband is <i>that
-one</i>. Then the child behoves to be a living
-child; but what constituted a living child often
-turned out to be as difficult a question as what
-constitutes a new birth of a living Christian, according
-to our good old sturdy Calvinism; for
-as all doctors know that a child will, on coming
-into the world, give a breath or two with a shiver,
-and then go off like a candle not properly lighted,
-it became a question whether, in such a case, the
-child could be said to have lived. Sometimes, too,
-the living symptom is less doubtful, as in the case,
-also very common, where the little stranger gives
-a tiny scream, the consequence of the filling of the
-lungs by the rushing in of the air, and having experienced
-a touch of the evils of life, makes up its
-mind to be off as quickly as possible from a wicked
-world. Now this last symptom our Scotch law<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span>
-accepts as the only evidence which can be received
-that the child had within it a living-spirit, or, as
-we call it, an immortal soul. It would be of no
-importance that it opened and shut its eyes, moved
-its hands, or kicked or sprawled in any way you
-please; all this is nothing but infantine pantomime,
-and the worst pantomime, too, that it has
-no possible meaning that any rational person could
-understand, and so, therefore, it goes for nothing.
-In short, our law holds that, unless “baby squeak,”
-there is no evidence that baby ever lived. Nor is
-any distinction made between the male and the
-female, although we know so well that the latter
-is much more inclined to make a noise than the
-other, were it for nothing else than to exhibit a
-first attempt to do that at which the sex are so
-good when they grow up and get husbands.</p>
-
-<p>To bring back the reader to Lord Kilkerran’s
-remark—“Beware of Pinched Tom”—the case to
-which the note applied comprehended the question
-whether the child had been heard to cry, and
-though the connexion might be merely imaginary
-on my part, I recollected in the instant having
-heard the story I now relate of Mr Thomas Whitelaw,
-a merchant burgess of Edinburgh, who figured
-somewhere between the middle and the end of last
-century, and took for wife a certain Janet Monypenny.
-In which union “the sufficient reason”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span>
-which always exists, though we do not always
-know it, was on the part of the said Thomas the
-certainty that Janet’s name (defying Shakespeare’s
-question) was a real designative of a quality, that
-being that she possessed, in her own right, not
-merely many a penny, but so many thousand
-pennies, that they amounted to somewhere about
-two thousand merks, a large sum in those olden
-days. And this money was perhaps the more
-valuable, that the heiress had an unfortunate right
-by inheritance to consumption, whereby she ran a
-risk of being taken away, leaving her money unconsumed
-in the hands of her husband; an event,
-this latter, which our merchant burgess could certainly
-have turned to more certain account if he
-had provided against the law we have mentioned
-by entering into an antenuptial contract of marriage,
-wherein it might have been set forth that,
-though the marriage should be dissolved by the
-death of the wife before “year and day,” without
-a living child being born thereof, yet the husband’s
-right to the tocher would remain. But then Burgess
-Thomas did not know of any such law, while
-Mr George Monypenny, the brother of Mrs Janet,
-knew it perfectly, the more by token that he was
-a writer, that is, a legal practitioner, at the Luckenbooths.
-And though Mr George might have made
-a few pennies by writing out the contract, he never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span>
-hinted to his intended brother-in-law of the propriety
-of any such act, because he knew that he
-had a chance of coming to more pennies, by the
-death of his sister, within the year and the day.</p>
-
-<p>So the marriage was entered into without more
-use of written paper than what we call the marriage
-lines, and Writer George was satisfied until
-he began to see that Mrs Whitelaw was likely to
-be a mother before the expiry of the year and the
-day; but then he had the consolation—for, alas!
-human nature was the same in those olden times
-that it is now—of seeing that, while poor Janet
-was increasing in one way, she was decreasing in
-another, so that it was not unlikely that there
-would be not only a dead child, but a dead
-mother; and then he would come in as nearest
-of kin for the tocher of two thousand merks, of all
-which speculations on the part of the unnatural
-brother, Burgess Thomas knew nothing. But it
-so happened that Mrs Euphan Lythgow, the most
-skilly howdie or midwife in Edinburgh at that
-time, was the woman who was to bring the child
-into the world, and she had seen indications enough
-to satisfy her that there was a probability that
-things would go on in the very way so cruelly
-hoped for by the man of the law; nay, she had
-her eyes—open enough at all times—more opened
-still by some questions put to her by the wily expectant,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-and so she held it to be her duty to go
-straight to Burgess Thomas.</p>
-
-<p>“I fear,” said she, “baith for the mother and
-the bairn, for she is worn awa to skin and bane,
-and if she bear the heir she will only get lighter,
-as we ca’ it, to tak on a heavier burden, even
-that o’ death. The bairn may live, but it’s only a
-chance.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereat Burgess Thomas looked sad, for he
-really loved his wife, but it might just happen
-that a thought came into his head that death had
-no power over the two thousand merks.</p>
-
-<p>“If baith the mother and the bairn dee,” continued
-Euphan, “the money you got by her
-will tak wing and flee awa to Mr George, her
-brother.”</p>
-
-<p>“What mean you, woman?” asked Mr Whitelaw,
-as he looked wistfully and fearfully into the
-face of the howdie.</p>
-
-<p>“Had ye no’ a contract o’ marriage?” continued
-she.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Aweel, ye’re in danger, for ken ye na it is our
-auld Scotch law that when there’s nae contract,
-and the year and the day hasna passed, and when
-the mither dees and the bairn dees without a cry,
-the tocher flees back again? Heard ye never the
-auld rhyme—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first2">‘Mither dead and bairn gane,</div>
-<div class="verse">Pay the tocher to her kin;</div>
-<div class="verse">But an ye hear the bairn squeal,</div>
-<div class="verse">Gudeman, grip the tocher weel.’”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>“God bless me, Mrs Lythgow! is that the law?”
-cried the husband, in a fright.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, and it is,” was the rejoinder. “You
-are muckle obliged to Writer George. If the bairn
-lives to be baptized, George is no the name it will
-bear.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied he; “if a boy, it will be baptized
-Thomas.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tam!” ejaculated the howdie in a screechy
-voice, the reason of which might be that her son
-carrying that name had died during the year, and
-she was affected.</p>
-
-<p>But no sooner had the word Tam passed from
-her lips, than a large red cat came from the rug,
-and looking up in her face, mewed in so very expressive
-a way that the sadness which the recollection
-of her boy had inspired passed suddenly
-away, and was succeeded by a comical look; and
-rubbing Bawdrons “along of the hair,” as Mr
-Dickens would express it, the true way of treating
-either cats or cat-witted people, she continued
-addressing the favourite—</p>
-
-<p>“And you, Tam, and I will be better acquainted
-before the twa thousand merks are paid to Writer
-George.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span>“What does the woman mean?” said the burgess.
-“What connexion is there between that
-animal and my wife’s fortune?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ye’ll ken that when the time comes,” was the
-answer; “but coming nearer to the subject in hand,
-ye’ll take care to hae twa witnesses in the blue-painted
-parlour, next to your bed-room, when I’m
-untwining the mistress o’ her burden, whether it
-be a dead bairn or a living ane.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what good will that do me if both the
-mother and child should die?” inquired he.</p>
-
-<p>“Ye’ll ken that when Writer George comes and
-asks ye for the tocher,” was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>Nor did Mrs Euphan Lythgow wait to throw
-any further light upon a subject which appeared
-to the burgess to require more than the candle of
-his own mind could supply if he should snuff it
-again and again, and arn’t we, every one of us,
-always snuffing the candle so often that we can
-see nothing? But Mrs Lythgow was what the
-Scotch people call “a skilly woman.” She could
-see—to use an old and very common expression—as
-far into a millstone as any one, and it was
-especially clear to her that she would deliver Mrs
-Whitelaw of a dead child, that death would deliver
-the mother of her life, and Writer George
-would deliver Maister Whitelaw of two thousand
-good merks of Scotch money, unless, as a poor<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span>
-salvage out of all this loss, she could deliver the
-burgess out of the hands of the writer. And so
-the time passed till the eventful evening came,
-when the wasted invalid was seized with those
-premonitory pains which have come right down
-from old mother Eve to the fair daughters of men,
-as a consequence of her eating the too sweet paradise
-pippin. The indispensable Mrs Euphan Lythgow
-was sent for express and came on the instant,
-for she knew she had unusual duties to perform,
-nor did she forget as one of the chief of those to
-get Mrs Jean Gilchrist, a neighbouring gossip, and
-Robina Proudfoot, the servant, ensconsed in the
-said blue-painted parlour, for the sole end that
-they should hear what they could hear, but as for
-seeing anything that passed within the veil of the
-secret temple of Lucina, they were not to be permitted
-to get a glimpse until such time as might
-please the priestess of the mysteries herself.</p>
-
-<p>All which secrecy has been followed by the unfortunate
-consequence that history nowhere records
-what took place in that secret room for an hour or
-two after the two women took up their station in
-the said blue-painted chamber. But this much
-we know, that the house was so silent that our
-favourite Tom could not have chosen a more
-auspicious evening for mousing for prey in place
-of mewing for play, even if he had had all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span>
-sagacity of the famous cats of Tartesia. As for Mrs
-Gilchrist and Robina, they could not have listened
-more zealously, we might even say effectually, if
-they had been gifted with ears as long as those of
-certain animals in Trophonia; and surely we cannot
-be wrong in saying they were successful listeners,
-when we are able to report that Mrs Gilchrist
-nipped the bare fleshy arm of Robina, as a sign
-that she heard what she wanted to hear.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s the scream o’ the wean!” said she.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, and may the Lord be praised!” was the
-answer of Robina, in spite of the nip.</p>
-
-<p>But neither the one nor the other knew that
-that cry was verily worth two thousand merks to
-Maister Burgess Whitelaw, the father, who in a
-back-room sat in the deep pit of anxiety and heard
-nothing, and perhaps it was better that he didn’t,
-for that cry might have raised hopes—never to be
-realised—of the birth of a living son or daughter,
-who would by and by lisp in his ear the charmed
-word “Father”—of a dead wife’s recovery, after so
-terrible a trial to one so much wasted—of the saving
-of his fortune from the ruthless hands of his
-brother-in-law. But there is always some consolation
-for the miserable, and didn’t Mrs Janet’s
-favourite, even Tom himself, with his bright scarlet
-collar, come to him and sit upon his knee and
-look up in his face and purr so audibly, that one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span>
-might have thought he was expressing sympathy
-and hope? So it is: nature is always laughing at
-her own work. Even as this pantomime was acting,
-Mrs Lythgow opened the door of the blue-painted
-chamber, and presenting a bundle to Mrs
-Gilchrist—</p>
-
-<p>“The bairn is dead,” she whispered; “lay it on
-the table there out o’ the sight o’ its mother, who
-will not live lang enough even to see its dead face.”</p>
-
-<p>“And yet we heard it cry,” said Robina. “Poor
-dear innocent,” she added, as she peered among
-the folds of the flannel, “ye have had a short life.”</p>
-
-<p>“And no’ a merry ane,” added the gossip.</p>
-
-<p>“Did ye expect the bairn to laugh, ye fule
-woman that ye are?” was the reply of the howdie.
-“Come and help me wi’ the deeing mither.”</p>
-
-<p>And straightway the three women were by the
-bedside of the patient, in whose throat Death was
-already sounding his rattle, after the last effort of
-exhausted nature to give to the world a life in exchange
-for her own; and Mr Whitelaw was there
-too to witness the dying throes of his wife, with
-perhaps the thought in his mind that the gods are
-pitiless as well as foolish, for what was the use of
-giving him a dead child in recompense for a dead
-mother, and taking away from him, at the very
-same moment, the said two thousand merks of
-good Scotch money. Wherein, so far, Mr Whitelaw<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span>
-was himself unjust to these much abused
-gods; but he did not know as yet that the child
-had cried, and who knows what consoling effect
-that circumstance might have had upon one who
-was what Pindar calls “a man of money.” At
-least, we will give to any man more than one of
-these merks who will show us out of the great
-“Treasury of Evils,” mentioned by the Greek
-poets, any one which cannot be ameliorated by
-money. And so Mr Whitelaw heard, in the last
-expiring breath of Mrs Janet Monypenny the departing
-sign of the loss of the three greatest good
-things of this world—a wife, a child, and a tocher.</p>
-
-<p>But the moral oscillation comes round as sure
-as that of the pendulum, and in accordance with
-that law Mr Whitelaw was, within a short time
-after the death of his wife, told by Mrs Gilchrist
-that the child had made the much-wished-for sign
-of life. A communication, this, very easily accounted
-for, but we do not undertake to explain
-why, when Mr Whitelaw heard it, he was scarcely
-equal to the task of preventing an expression upon
-his sorrowful countenance which an ill-natured person
-would call a smile. Nor, indeed, is there any
-way of explaining so inexplicable a phenomenon,
-except by having recourse to the fact mentioned
-by Burns, that “man is a riddle.” A solution
-which will also serve us when we further narrate<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span>
-that this small wail of the child lightened wonderfully
-Mr Whitelaw’s duty in getting all things arranged
-for the funeral, including the melancholy
-peculiarity of getting the coffin made that was to
-contain a mother and her first-born. Nay, it enabled
-him even at the funeral to meet the triumphant
-look of his brother-in-law, Writer George,
-as it clearly said, even in the midst of his tears,
-“You owe me two thousand merks;” for we are
-to remember that Mr Whitelaw, in exchange for
-the writer’s perfidy in not mentioning to him the
-necessity of a contract of marriage, had with a
-spice of malice concealed from him the fact of the
-child having been heard to cry, and then it was
-natural for the writer to suppose that the child
-had been born dead.</p>
-
-<p>As money ameliorates grief, business prevents
-grief from taking possession of the mind; and so
-we need not be surprised that within a week Mr
-Monypenny served Mr Whitelaw with a summons
-to appear before the fifteen Scotch lords who sat
-round a table in the form of a horse-shoe in the
-Parliament House of Edinburgh, or Court of Session,
-and there be ordered to pay to the pursuer
-or plaintiff the said two thousand merks, which
-devolved upon him, as the heir of his sister, in consequence
-of the dissolution of the marriage within
-a year and a day, without a living child being<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span>
-born thereof. Nor was Mr Whitelaw, angry as
-he was and withal confident of success, slow to
-give in his defence to the effect that the child had
-been born alive, and had been heard to scream—a
-defence which startled Writer George mightily;
-for it was the first intimation he had got of the
-important fact, and his experience told him how
-supple Scotch witnesses are—even to the extent
-that it took no fewer than fifteen learned judges
-to get the subtle thing called truth out of the
-subtle minds of “the canny people;” but he had
-no alternative than to consent to the commission
-to Maister Wylie, advocate, to take a proof of the
-defender’s averment and report. And so accordingly
-the proceedings went on. Mr Advocate
-Wylie sat in one of the rooms adjoining the court
-to take the depositions of the witnesses, and Mr
-Williamson was there for Mr Whitelaw, and Mr
-Hamilton for Mr Monypenny. The first witness
-called was Mrs Jean Gilchrist, who swore
-very honestly that she heard the child scream;
-and Robina Proudfoot swore as honestly to the
-same thing; nor could all the efforts of Mr Advocate
-Hamilton shake those sturdy witnesses, if it
-was not that, as so often happens with Scotch
-witnesses, the more the advocate wrestled with
-them, the more firm they waxed. Nor need we
-say that the philosophical axiom, that the intensity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span>
-of belief is always inversely as the reason for it,
-never had weight with our Scotch judges. But
-then came the difficulty about the <i>causa scientiæ</i>;
-for neither of the two witnesses could swear that
-she <i>saw</i> the child alive and after the scream,
-inasmuch as the child was certainly dead before
-they saw the body; so it was only at best a
-strong presumption that the cry actually did
-come from that child. The witnesses dispersed
-these quibbles, and insisted that, as there was no
-other child in that room, the cry could come from
-no other source than Mrs Whitelaw’s baby. But
-the crowning witness was to come—Mrs Euphan
-Lythgow herself, who would put an end to all
-doubts; and come she did. Asked whether she
-delivered Mrs Whitelaw of a child on the night in
-question, her answer was in the affirmative.</p>
-
-<p>“Was it a boy or a girl?”</p>
-
-<p>“A <i>callant</i>, sir,” was the answer; for Scotch witnesses
-<i>will</i> use their own terms, let counsel do what
-they please. “And,” added Mrs Lythgow, “he
-was to be baptized after his father when the time
-came. He was to be called Tammas.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just so,” continued Mr Hamilton; “and was
-he dead or alive when he was born?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, sir, little Tam wras as life-like as you
-are when I handled him wi’ thae hands.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span>“How do you know that?” was the next question.</p>
-
-<p>“Ken whether a bairn is dead or living?” responded
-the midwife, with an ironical laugh. “Do
-dead bairns scream, think ye, Maister Hamilton?
-Ay, sir, I heard little Tam cry just as plainly as I
-hear you speak. It’s God’s way wi’ mony a wean.
-They seem to ken it’s an ill warld they’re born
-into, wi’ so mony lawyers in’t, and they just gie a
-cry and gae awa back again.”</p>
-
-<p>And thus the evidence was concluded; nor did
-it ever occur to these hair-wigged and ear-wigged
-gentlemen to ask the astute howdie whether there
-was any other creature in the house (except Mr
-Thomas Whitelaw himself, who was out of the
-question) that bore the name of Tam; and Mrs
-Lythgow’s conscience, like many others, sat as easy
-on the equivocation as a hen does on an addled
-egg with a shell like the rest, which contain little
-chickens all alive. And the case was virtually
-saved, as subsequently appeared, when the fifteen,
-all ear-wigged too, pronounced sentence in favour
-of the defender, Mr Whitelaw. But it was not till
-some time afterwards the real truth came out.
-“The labourer is worthy of his hire,” and when
-Mrs Euphan called for fee, on Mr Whitelaw asking
-how much, the cunning howdie replied—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>“Just a hundred merks, Maister Whitelaw.”</p>
-
-<p>“A hundred merks for bringing a child into the
-world, which lived no longer than to give a
-scream?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, but you forget <i>pinched Tam</i>,” replied she.</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon Mr Whitelaw began to meditate,
-and thereupon ejaculated—“Oh! I see. Yes, yes;
-I did forget pinched Tam; and now I remember,
-he came into me that evening after you had ejected
-him from the bed-room.”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely, sir,” rejoined the woman; “think ye I
-was fule enough to keep him in the room to be
-seen by the women, after I had got out o’ him a’
-that I wanted?”</p>
-
-<p>And Mrs Lythgow got her hundred merks. How
-the incident came to the ears of Lord Kilkerran,
-history saith not; but if you are curious, you may
-see upon the margin of the said Session Paper the
-words—“Beware of pinched Tom!”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_176.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_177.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Iron Press.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE story of the Iron Press hung about my
-memory for years before I got it localised;
-nor do I know very well how it
-came to me, whether from the page of an old
-broad-sheet, or the tougher tongue of an old dame—the
-real vellum for the inscription of wonderful
-legends. However this may be, it is of small importance,
-inasmuch as I was subsequently so fortunate—and
-the word will be properly estimated
-by the real story-hunter—as to find myself in the
-very room where the recess of the press was still to
-be seen. How I did look at it, to be sure! nay, if
-it had been of gold—all my own, too—I question
-if I could have gazed into the dark recess with
-more interest; for gold, to people of my bias, is
-nothing in comparison with the enchantment that
-hangs about the real concrete <i>souvenir</i> of an old
-wonder. But before going further, I must apprise
-the English reader that the word “press”—a Scotch
-word of somewhat doubtful derivation (<i>maugre</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span>
-Jamieson)—is convertible into the more modern
-designation “cupboard,” or rather “pantry;” with
-the qualification that our Scotch term more generally
-implies the adjunct of a door with lock and
-key.</p>
-
-<p>With which help you may be induced to represent
-to yourself, as vividly as the fervour of your
-imagination may enable you, the house in Hyndford’s
-Close, which, at the time wherein we are
-concerned, was occupied by a retired advocate
-called Mr George Plenderleith. You may see in
-it yet the signs of its old gentility. There are the
-panellings on the walls, the hooks whereon were
-suspended the flowered and figured draperies, the
-painted roofs, the peculiar enamelled sides of the
-chimneys having the appearance of china—all so
-very unlike our modern house fashions. It may
-not be that the iron press which was in the back
-bed-room, and the recess of which still remains,
-had anything to do with the fashion of the time;
-nor would it be easy to divine its use in a private
-gentleman’s house, who had no ledgers, journals,
-or cash-books to preserve from fire, lest certain
-creditors might say they were burnt to help concealment.
-Perhaps it was for the conservation of
-some great property rights, or title-deeds as we
-call them; perhaps state papers—anything you
-like, but not the least unlikely, it may have been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span>
-for the purpose of concealing some unfortunate
-Covenanter, who could still boast, in his pathetic
-way, that he had verily nowhere to lay his head;
-for the cell was too small for a reclining posture—nay,
-he could scarcely have got upon his knees to
-offer his Ebenezer for the preservation of the solemn
-league and covenant, and give thanks that he had
-got out of “the bishop’s drag-net” and into an iron
-cage.</p>
-
-<p>Most certainly, at least, this iron cage was not
-intended to immure the delicate person of the
-beautiful Ailsie Plenderleith, the only daughter of
-the advocate—nay, the greatest belle you could
-have met, displaying her gown of mazerine and
-her petticoat of cramosie, from “the castle on the
-knowe to the palace in the howe;” or, as the saying
-went, from “the castle gate to the palace yett.”
-We don’t doubt that our Miss Ailsie deserved all
-this high-flown praise; only we are to keep in
-mind that no young lady that ever figured in a
-legend, from the time of the Fair Maid of Troy to
-her of Perth, was ever anything less than an angel
-without wings. And in the case of our Ailsie, she
-might well have passed for possessing these appendages
-too, when we consider that she would
-not be behind her sister-belles in the size of those
-heavy folds of braided silk they drew through their
-pocket-holes, and seemed to fly with. We need<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span>
-not say that such a creature, if amiable in her
-mind and affections, would be doated on by such
-a father as Mr Plenderleith, who had now no wife
-to console him, and who would expect from his
-child at least as much love as he was willing to
-bestow on her. And so, to be sure, it was; he
-loved his dear Ailsie to what may be called paternal
-distraction, but as for how much dutiful affection
-Ailsie bestowed on him, we cannot say.</p>
-
-<p>On another point we can be more sure, and that
-is, that although her father had many nice beaux
-in his eye who had a power to <i>dot</i>, and doubtless
-on so fine a subject no disinclination at all to <i>doat</i>,
-the never a one of them would the saucy Ailsie
-look upon except with that haughty disdain which,
-when it appears in a beautiful woman, is so apt
-to pique young admirers into greater adoration,
-mixed, it may be, sometimes with a little choler—a
-thing that is not so alien to love as you would
-imagine. Nor was the reason of all this cold <i>hauteur</i>
-any wonder at all when we are given to know
-that Miss Plenderleith had one day, by the merest
-chance, taken into her eye, and even to the back
-or innermost recesses thereof, the figure of a young
-student of “old Embro’ College,” called Frederick
-Lind, a poor bursar of no family, but blessed with
-what was ten thousand times of more importance
-in the estimation of the tasteful Ailsie—a handsome<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span>
-person, and a fine ruddy, intelligent face, which was
-lighted up with an eye as likely to drink up the
-form of Ailsie as hers had been to receive his. And
-no doubt it may appear very wonderful that Cupid,
-who is, as they say, as blind as a bat, and so hits
-by chance, should have the power of imparting to
-the eyes of his victims the faculty not only of
-seeing each other more clearly than before, but
-also of reading each other’s eyes so plainly, that
-by a glance they know that they are mutually
-thinking of each other. But such, we all know
-very well, is the fact, and so Frederick Lind and
-Ailsie Plenderleith came to this state of knowledge,
-and not only so, they came to means of
-ascertaining, by actual conversation, whether such
-was really the case or not—the consequence of
-which was just the natural one, that the sympathy
-of this knowledge became the sympathy of love;
-and we suspect that if any one was to blame for
-this, it was Old Mother Nature herself, who is
-considerably stronger and more dogmatic in her
-opinions than either mother or father of earthly
-mould.</p>
-
-<p>The connexion thus formed—we are compelled,
-though sorry, to say, clandestinely—might not
-have entailed upon the young devotees any very
-formidable consequences, had they been prudent,
-and confined their meetings to St Leonard’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[182]</span>
-Double-dykes, St Anthony’s Well, the Giant’s
-Ribs, the Hunter’s Bog, or the Friar’s Walk. Nay,
-they might have adventured even less recondite
-walks; but they had some notions of comfort
-which would be gratified with nothing short of a
-roof over their very irrational heads, and probably
-a fire burning by their sides, as if love could not
-have kept itself in fuel without the assistance of
-so coarse and earthy a thing as Midlothian coal.</p>
-
-<p>While all this was going forward, and generating
-confidence in the ordinary ratio of successful immunity,
-our good and loving old Mr Advocate
-Plenderleith was just as busy with <i>his</i> eyes in endeavouring
-to find out among the said beaux of
-Edinburgh, with their braided broad-tailed coats
-and ruffled wristbands, of which Mr Frederick
-Lind had nothing to boast, such a one as would
-be likely to form a suitable husband to his pretty
-but scornful, (to all save one,) daughter, and a promising
-son-in-law to himself; that is, one who
-would bring a sum to the mutual exchequer, and
-take care not only of Ailsie, but that fine property
-of his in Lanarkshire, called Threemarks, from its
-valuation in the land-roll being of that very considerable
-extent. And so he did his best to invite
-one or two of them to his house in Hyndford’s
-Close to drink a bottle of claret, and see Miss
-Ailsie through the charmed medium of the same,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[183]</span>
-being satisfied that a young woman is seen to more
-advantage through that medium than through the
-roses of the Paphian groves where Venus dallies
-with her son. But all this paternal black-footing
-would not do, because the step went only in one
-direction, without a return. Our Ailsie scorned
-them all—a very unwise policy in the little rebel,
-for she might have seen that her father, who was
-a shrewd man, would be likely to suspect that the
-ship which rides at an anchor, however little seen,
-is just that very one which seems to defy most
-the blustering winds and the rolling waves. And
-accordingly Mr Plenderleith began to think that
-his daughter’s heart must be anchored somewhere—not
-so likely on golden sands as on some tough
-clay—and <i>that</i> “where” he would have given his
-old Parliament-House wig, with all the meal in it
-to boot, to find out. Nay, he began to be angry
-before he could assure himself of the fact; and
-being as determined under a restrainer as he ever
-had been under a retainer, he was a dangerous
-man for even a loving daughter to tamper with.</p>
-
-<p>But old fathers, probably with spectacles, are
-not good watchers of their love-stricken daughters;
-and Mr Plenderleith, knowing this, placed
-confidence in his old servant or servitor, (as these
-domestic Balderstones were then called,) Andrew
-Crabbin, and got him to keep an eye upon the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[184]</span>
-outgoings and incomings, and companionship and
-letters of the unsuspecting Ailsie. On the other
-hand, she was inclined to place faith in Andrew—not
-that she let him know the name or degree of
-her beloved Frederick, but that she bespoke his
-secrecy in the event of his seeing her with a highly
-respectable young man, of genteel connexions,
-whom her father would be delighted to receive
-as a son-in-law, but who was not just yet in a
-position to present himself in the drawing-room.
-Which two confidences Andrew received together,
-and found means in his canny Scotch head to
-entertain both kindly, but with a foregone conclusion
-that he would make more money out of
-the rents and fees of his master than the pin-money
-of poor Ailsie.</p>
-
-<p>Yet Miss Plenderleith was so dexterous in
-managing her intrigue, that Andrew had for a
-time nothing to reveal; but opportunity comes at
-the end to patience, and this was the case one
-night when Andrew was busy cleaning his master’s
-long boots in an outhouse at the back of the
-dwelling-house; for as he was straining to get the
-article in his hand as bright as the “Day and
-Martin” of the time would make it, his attention
-was directed to a sound from the red-tiled roof.
-Whereupon, pricking up his ears, Andrew put his
-head out at the door, and what in all this wide<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[185]</span>
-earth does he see but two boots disappearing at
-Ailsie’s bed-room window! He had never seen
-any of the two or three pairs his master possessed
-going into the house in that way, and probably
-he did not need that fact to explain to him the
-wonderful apparition. Nor was it any question
-with him what to do. The hour was late, but his
-master was not gone to bed, if he was not yet engaged
-over his mulled claret, with a bit of toast
-done pretty brown in it.</p>
-
-<p>Having accordingly got, unobserved from above,
-into the back-door—the more by reason that he
-waited till the window-sash came down with all
-prudential softness of sound—Andrew made his
-way up-stairs to the room where Mr Plenderleith
-was regaling himself, and probably thinking of the
-scornful Ailsie, who would not accord to his matrimonial
-wishes. “There’s a young man gone in
-this minute at Miss Ailsie’s bed-room window,”
-said he, in a mysterious way, to his master;
-whereupon Mr Plenderleith started up in a great
-rage, and rushing to a closet brought forth a long
-rapier of formidable sharpness. “I will slay him
-on the spot,” said he, “for it is hamesucken and a
-deuced deal more, and I have law on my side.
-Come with me, Andrew Crabbin.” But Andrew’s
-intermediate views did not accord with the slaughter
-of Ailsie’s lover. “Wait,” says he, “till I listen;”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[186]</span>
-and hastening to Miss Plenderleith’s room,
-he tirled at the door, so that it might be heard
-inside, but not by his enraged master, whose spirit
-was more in his fiery eye than his ear; and coming
-back more slowly than comported with his
-master’s fury—“Now’s your time,” said he, “for
-I heard him inside.” Nor was there now any time
-lost, for the infuriated father rushed along the
-lobby to his daughter’s chamber door, which, to
-his surprise, he found unfastened; and, having
-entered, he found Ailsie all very much at her
-ease, nor was there anything to rouse his suspicions
-at all except the condition of the blind, which
-was drawn up. No more was needed—that was
-enough; the angry father accused his daughter
-with having had a man in her bed-room. Ailsie
-denied the charge, but it was of no avail. Orders
-were upon the instant issued to get the carriage
-ready, and in the course of an hour afterwards Mr
-Plenderleith and his daughter, with Andrew and
-the two female servants in a hired carriage, were
-on their way to his house at Threemarks. The
-house in Hyndford’s Close was shut up. Mr Plenderleith
-had in so short a period made up his
-mind, and executed a purpose which he considered
-necessary to his own honour and his daughter’s
-preservation.</p>
-
-<p>Time passed on, and in the meantime Andrew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[187]</span>
-kept his secret, delighted in his own mind that he had
-saved the life of the young man. About a month
-afterwards Mr Plenderleith came to town alone,
-and having entered the house found everything
-precisely as he left it. But he had an object—no
-other than to discover whether Ailsie had left any
-letters whereby he might discover the name of
-the clandestine lover. So far he succeeded, and
-having returned to Threemarks, he some time
-afterwards despatched Andrew to Edinburgh to
-make inquiries as to a student of the name of
-Frederick Lind. This commission Andrew executed
-with fidelity, but all his efforts were vain;
-no tidings could be heard of the youth. The landlady
-with whom he had lodged said that he had
-gone out one night and had never returned; and
-the opinion of his relations, to whom she had communicated
-the fact of his absence, was, that he
-had gone to England, where he also had relations.
-With this account Mr Plenderleith was so far
-pleased, but he continued from time to time to
-repeat his inquiries with no better, or rather to
-him worse, success. Yet such was his apprehension
-lest his daughter should again have it in her
-power to deceive him, that he remained at Threemarks
-for the full space of three years and more.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Ailsie, having come to the conclusion
-that she would not see her lover again, renounced<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[188]</span>
-all thoughts of him except what perhaps
-at night would rise up to her fancy, when the internal
-lights play false with the reason. The
-young heart requires only time to renounce the
-strongest passion, though a cherished memory will
-still hang suspended over the sacred tomb of its
-affections. And so it was. More time passed, till
-at length Ailsie Plenderleith agreed to give her
-hand to a young advocate of the name of George
-Graham, who had good prospects at the bar. The
-couple were to be married in Hyndford’s Close,
-and the house was put in order to receive them.
-Ailsie came in a bride. The ceremony was performed
-with great <i>éclat</i> and rejoicings. And now
-comes that part of the legend which always fits so
-well to some great occasion, such as a marriage;
-but we must take these things as we find them.
-The new-married couple were to sleep in the room
-which had been the scene of so strange a play
-three or four years ago. On returning to take off
-her bride’s dress, her eye became fixed upon the
-door of the iron press. A wild thought seized her
-brain: she applied her finger to the well-known
-spring. The door opened, and the skeleton of
-Frederick Lind fell out against her, rattling in
-the clothes that hung about it, and striking her as
-it fell with a loud crash on the floor.</p>
-
-<p>The explanation of our legend is not difficult.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[189]</span>
-Lind had been pushed into the press on previous
-occasions, without the door being closed entirely
-upon him. Ailsie, on the fatal evening, had no
-doubt thought that she had left the door as she
-used to do; but in the hurry consequent on the
-coming of her father, she had committed the terrible
-mistake of imparting to it too much impulse,
-whereby the lock had caught; and as the spring
-was not available inside, the prisoner was immured
-beyond the chance of escape. So narrow, too, was
-the recess, that the skeleton form had stood upright
-in the clothes, and it thus fell out when
-relieved of the support of the door.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_189.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[190]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_190.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Girl Forger.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT is a common thing for writers of a certain
-class, when they want to produce
-the feeling of wonder in their readers, to
-introduce some frantic action, and then to account
-for it by letting out the secret that the actor was
-mad. The trick is not so necessary as it seems,
-for the strength of human passions is a potentiality
-only limited by experience; and so it is that
-a sane person may under certain stimulants do
-the maddest thing in the world. The passion
-itself is always true, it is only the motive that may
-be false; and therefore it is that in narrating for
-your amusement, perhaps I may add instruction,
-the following singular story—traces of the main
-parts of which I got in the old books of a former
-procurator-fiscal—I assume that there was no more
-insanity in the principal actor, Euphemia, or, as
-she was called, Effie, Carr, when she brought herself
-within the arms of the law, than there is in
-you, when now you are reading the story of her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[191]</span>
-strange life. She was the only daughter of John
-Carr, a grain merchant, who lived in Bristo Street.
-It would be easy to ascribe to her all the ordinary
-and extraordinary charms that are thought so
-necessary to embellish heroines; but as we are
-not told what these were in her case, we must be
-contented with the assurance that nature had been
-kind enough to her to give her power over the
-hearts of men. We shall be nearer our purpose
-when we state, what is necessary to explain a peculiar
-part of our story, that her father, in consequence
-of his own insufficient education, had got
-her trained to help him in keeping his accounts
-with the farmers, and in writing up his books;
-nay, she enjoyed the privilege of writing his drafts
-upon the Bank of Scotland, which the father contrived
-to sign, though in his own illiterate way,
-and with a peculiarity which it would not have
-been easy to imitate.</p>
-
-<p>But our gentle clerk did not consider these
-duties imposed upon her by her father as excluding
-her either from gratifying her love of domestic
-habits by assisting her mother in what at that time
-was denominated hussyskep or housekeeping, or
-from a certain other gratification, which might
-without a hint from us be anticipated—no other
-than the luxury of falling head and ears, and heart
-too we fancy, in love with a certain dashing young<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[192]</span>
-student of the name of Robert Stormonth, then
-attending the University more for the sake of
-polish than of mere study; for he was the son of
-the proprietor of Kelton, and required to follow no
-profession. How Effie got entangled with this
-youth we have no means of knowing, so we must
-be contented with the Scotch proverb—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“Tell me where the flea may bite,</div>
-<div class="verse">And I will tell where love may light.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>The probability is that, from the difference of their
-stations and the retiring nature of our gentle clerk,
-we shall be safe in assuming that he had, as the
-saying goes, been smitten by her charms in some
-of those street encounters, where there is more of
-Love’s work done than in “black-footed” tea coteries
-expressly held for the accommodation of
-Cupid. And that the smitting was a genuine feeling
-we are not left to doubt, for, in addition to the reasons
-we shall afterwards have too good occasion
-to know, he treated Effie, not as those wild students
-who are great men’s sons do “the light o’
-loves” they meet in their escapades; for he intrusted
-his secrets to her, he took such small
-counsel from her poor head as a “learned clerk”
-might be supposed able to give; nay, he told her
-of his mother, and how one day he hoped to be
-able to introduce her at Kelton as his wife. All<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[193]</span>
-which Effie repaid with the devotedness of that
-most wonderful affection called the first or virgin
-love—the purest, the deepest, the most thoroughgoing
-of all the emotions of the human heart.
-But as yet he had not conceded to her wish that
-he should consent to their love being made known
-to Effie’s father and mother: love is only a leveller
-to itself and its object; the high-born youth, inured
-to refined manners, shrunk from a family
-intercourse, which put him too much in mind of
-the revolt he had made against the presumed
-wishes and intentions of his proud parents.
-Wherein, after all, he was only true to the instincts
-of that institution, apparently so inhumane
-as well as unchristian in its exclusiveness, called
-aristocracy; and yet with the excuse that its roots
-are pretty deeply set in human nature.</p>
-
-<p>But, proud as he was, Bob Stormonth the
-younger, of Kelton, was amenable to the obligations
-of a necessity, forged by his own imprudent
-hands. He had, by a fast mode of living, got into
-debt—a condition from which his father, a stern
-man, had relieved him twice before, but with a
-threat on the last occasion that if he persevered
-in his prodigality he would withdraw from him his
-yearly allowance, and throw him upon his own
-resources. The threat proved ineffectual, and this
-young heir of entail, with all his pride, was once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[194]</span>
-in the grasp of low-born creditors: nay, things in
-this evil direction had gone so far that writs were
-out against him, and one in the form of a caption
-was already in the hands of a messenger-at-arms.
-That the debts were comparatively small in
-amount was no amelioration where the purse was
-all but empty; and he had exhausted the limited
-exchequers of his chums, which with college youths
-was, and is, not difficult to do. So the gay Bob
-was driven to his last shift, and that, as is generally
-the case, was a mean one; for necessity, as
-the mother of inventions, does not think it proper
-to limit her births to genteel or noble devices to
-please her proud consort. He even had recourse
-to poor Effie to help him; and, however ridiculous
-this may seem, there were reasons that made the
-application appear not so desperate as some of his
-other schemes. It was only the caption that as
-yet quickened his fears; and as the sum for which
-the writ was issued was only twenty pounds, it
-was not, after all, so much beyond the power of a
-clerk.</p>
-
-<p>It was during one of their ordinary walks in the
-Meadows that the pressing necessity was opened
-by Stormonth to the vexed and terrified girl. He
-told her that, but for the small help he required in
-the meantime, all would be ruined. The wrath of
-his father would be excited once more, and probably<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[195]</span>
-to the exclusion of all reconciliation; and he
-himself compelled to flee, but whither he knew
-not. He had his plan prepared, and proposed to
-Effie, who had no means of her own, <i>to take a loan</i>
-of the sum out of her father’s cash-box—words
-very properly chosen according to the euphemistic
-policy of the devil, but Effie’s genuine spirit was
-roused and alarmed.</p>
-
-<p>“Dreadful!” she whispered, as if afraid that
-the night-wind would carry her words to honest
-ears. “Besides,” she continued, “my father, who
-is a hard man, keeps his desk lockit.”</p>
-
-<p>Words which took Stormonth aback, for even
-he saw there was here a necessity as strong as his
-own; yet the power of invention went to work
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“Listen, Effie,” said he. “If you cannot help
-me, it is not likely we shall meet again. I am
-desperate, and will go into the army.”</p>
-
-<p>The ear of Effie was chained to a force which
-was direct upon the heart. She trembled and
-looked wistfully into his face, even as if by that
-look she could extract from him some other device
-less fearful by which she might have the
-power of retaining him for so short a period as a
-day.</p>
-
-<p>“You draw out your father’s drafts on the bank,
-Effie,” he continued. “Write one out for me, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[196]</span>
-I will put your father’s name to it. You can draw
-the money. I will be saved from ruin; and your
-father will never know.”</p>
-
-<p>A proposal which again brought a shudder over
-the girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it Robert Stormonth who asks me to do this
-thing?” she whispered again.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said he; “for I am not myself. Yesterday,
-and before the messenger was after me, I
-would have shrunk from the suggestion. I am
-not myself, I say, Effie. Ay or no; keep me or
-lose me,—that is the alternative.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I cannot,” was the language of her innocence,
-and for which he was prepared; for the
-stimulant was again applied in the most powerful
-of all forms—the word farewell was sounded in her
-ear.</p>
-
-<p>“Stop, Robert; let me think.” But there was
-no thought, only the heart beating wildly. “I
-will do it; and may the penalty be mine, and
-mine only.”</p>
-
-<p>So it was: “even virtue’s self turns vice when
-misapplied.” What her mind shrank from was
-embraced by the heart as a kind of sacred duty
-of a love making a sacrifice for the object of its
-first worship. It was arranged; and as the firmness
-of a purpose is often in proportion to the
-prior disinclination, so Effie’s determination to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[197]</span>
-save her lover from ruin was forthwith put in execution;
-nay, there was even a touch of the heroine
-in her, so wonderfully does the heart, acting under
-its primary instincts, sanctify the device which
-favours its affection. That same evening Effie
-Carr wrote out the draft for twenty pounds on the
-Bank of Scotland, gave it to Stormonth, who from
-a signature of the father’s, also furnished by her,
-perpetrated the forgery—a crime at that time
-punishable by death. The draft so signed was
-returned to Effie. Next forenoon she went to the
-bank, as she had often done for her father before;
-and the document being in her handwriting, as
-prior ones of the same kind had also been, no
-scrutinising eye was turned to the signature. The
-money was handed over, but <i>not counted</i> by the
-recipient, as before had been her careful habit—a
-circumstance with its effect to follow in due time.
-Meanwhile Stormonth was at a place of appointment
-out of the reach of the executor of the law,
-and was soon found out by Effie, who gave him
-the money with trembling hands. For this surely
-a kiss was due. We do not know; but she returned
-with the satisfaction, overcoming all the
-impulses of fear and remorse, that she had saved
-the object of her first and only love from ruin and
-flight.</p>
-
-<p>But even then the reaction was on the spring;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[198]</span>
-the rebound was to be fearful and fatal. The
-teller at the bank had been struck with Effie’s
-manner; and the non-counting of the notes had
-roused a suspicion, which fought its way even
-against the improbability of a mere girl perpetrating
-a crime from which females are generally free.
-He examined the draft, and soon saw that the
-signature was a bad imitation. Thereupon a messenger
-was despatched to Bristo Street for inquiry.
-John Carr, taken by surprise, declared that the
-draft, though written by the daughter, was forged—the
-forgery being in his own mind attributed
-to George Lindsay, his young salesman. Enough
-this for the bank, who had in the first place only
-to do with the utterer, against whom their evidence
-as yet only lay. Within a few hours afterwards
-Effie Carr was in the Tolbooth, charged with the
-crime of forging a cheque on her father’s account-current.</p>
-
-<p>The news soon spread over Edinburgh—at that
-time only an overgrown village, in so far as regarded
-local facilities for the spread of wonders.
-It had begun there, where the mother was in recurring
-faints, the father in distraction and not less
-mystery, George Lindsay in terror and pity. And
-here comes in the next strange turn of our story.
-Lindsay all of a sudden declared he was the person
-who imitated the name—a device of the yearning<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[199]</span>
-heart to save the girl of his affection from the
-gallows, and clutched at by the mother and father
-as a means of their daughter’s redemption. One
-of those thinly-sown beings who are cold-blooded
-by nature, who take on love slowly but surely, and
-seem fitted to be martyrs, Lindsay defied all consequences,
-so that it might be that Effie Carr
-should escape an ignominious death. Nor did he
-take time for further deliberation; in less than
-half an hour he was in the procurator-fiscal’s office;
-the willing self-criminator; the man who did the
-deed; the man who was ready to die for his young
-mistress and his love. His story, too, was as ready
-as it was truth-seeming. He declared that he had
-got Effie to write out the draft as if commissioned
-by John Carr; that he took it away, and with his
-own hands added the name; that he had returned
-the cheque to Effie to go with it to the bank, and
-had received the money from her on her return.
-The consequence was his wish, and it was inevitable.
-That same day George Lindsay was lodged
-also in the Tolbooth, satisfied that he had made a
-sacrifice of his life for one whom he had loved for
-years, and who yet had never shown him even a
-symptom of hope that his love would be returned.</p>
-
-<p>All which proceedings soon came on the wings
-of rumour to the ears of Robert Stormonth, who
-was not formed to be a martyr even for a love<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[200]</span>
-which was to him as true as his nature would permit.
-He saw his danger, because he did not see
-the character of a faithful girl who would die
-rather than compromise her lover. He fled—aided
-probably by that very money he had wrung
-out of the hands of the devoted girl; nor was his
-disappearance connected with the tragic transaction;
-for, as we have said, the connexion between
-him and Effie had been kept a secret, and his
-flight could be sufficiently accounted for by his
-debt.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the precognitions or examination of
-the parties went on, and with a result as strange
-as it was puzzling to the officials. Effie was firm
-to her declaration that she not only wrote the
-body of the cheque, but attached to it the name
-of her father, and had appropriated the money in
-a way which she declined to state. On the other
-hand, Lindsay was equally stanch to his statement
-made to the procurator-fiscal, that he had
-got Effie to write the draft, had forged the name
-to it, and got the money from her. The authorities
-very soon saw that they had got more than
-the law bargained for or wanted; nor was the difficulty
-likely soon to be solved. The two parties
-could not both be guilty, according to the evidence,
-nor could one of them be guilty to the
-exclusion of the other; neither, when the balance<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[201]</span>
-was cast, was there much difference in the weight
-of the scales, because while it was in one view more
-likely that Lindsay signed the false name, it was
-beyond doubt that Effie wrote the body of the
-document, and she had moreover presented it. But
-was it for the honour of the law that people should
-be hanged on a likelihood? It was a new case
-without new heads to decide it, and it made no
-difference that the body of the people, who soon
-became inflamed on the subject, took the part of
-the girl and declared against the man. It was easy
-to be seen that the tracing of the money would
-go far to solve the mystery; and accordingly there
-was a strict search made in Lindsay’s lodgings, as
-well as in Effie’s private repositories at home. We
-need not say with what effect, where the money
-was over the Border and away. It was thus in all
-views more a case for Astræa than common heads;
-but then she had gone to heaven. The Lord Advocate
-soon saw that the law was likely to be
-caught in its own meshes. The first glimpse was
-got of the danger of hanging so versatile, so inconsistent,
-so unsearchable a creature as a human
-being on a mere confession of guilt. That that had
-been the law of Scotland in all time, nay, that it
-had been the law of the world from the beginning,
-there was no doubt. Who could know the murderer
-or the forger better than the murderer or the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[202]</span>
-forger themselves? and would any one throw away
-his life on a false plea? The reasoning does not
-exhaust the deep subject; there remains the presumption
-that the criminal will, in ninety-nine cases
-out of a hundred, deny, and deny boldly. But our
-case threw a new light on the old law, and the
-Lord Advocate was slow to indict where he saw
-not only reasons for failure, but also rising difficulties
-which might strike at the respect upon which
-the law was founded.</p>
-
-<p>The affair hung loose for a time; and Lindsay’s
-friends, anxious to save him, got him induced to
-run his letters,—the effect of which is to give the
-prosecutor a period wherein to try the culprit, on
-failure of which the person charged is free. The
-same was done by Effie’s father; but quickened as
-the Lord Advocate was, the difficulty still met him
-like a ghost that would not be laid,—that if he put
-Effie at the bar, Lindsay would appear in the witness-box;
-and if he put Lindsay on his trial, Effie
-would swear he was innocent; and as for two
-people forging <i>the same name</i>, the thing had never
-been heard of. And so it came to pass that the
-authorities at last, feeling they were in a cleft stick,
-where if they relieved one hand the other would be
-caught, were inclined to liberate both panels. But
-the bank was at that time preyed upon by forgeries,
-and were determined to make an example now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[203]</span>
-when they had a culprit, or perhaps two. The
-consequence was, that the authorities were forced
-to give way, vindicating their right of choice as to
-the party they should arraign. That party was
-Effie Carr; and the choice justified itself by two
-considerations: that she, by writing and uttering
-the cheque, was so far committed by evidence exterior
-to her self-inculpation; and secondly, that
-Lindsay might break down in the witness-box under
-a searching examination. Effie was therefore
-indicted and placed at the bar. She pleaded guilty,
-but the prosecutor notwithstanding led evidence;
-and at length Lindsay appeared as a witness for the
-defence. The people who crowded the court had
-been aware from report of the condition in which
-Lindsay stood; but the deep silence which reigned
-throughout the hall when he was called to answer
-evinced the doubt whether he would stand true to
-his self-impeachment. The doubt was soon solved.
-With a face on which no trace of fear could be perceived,
-with a voice in which there was no quaver,
-he swore that it was he who signed the draft and
-sent Effie for the money. The oscillation of sympathy,
-which had for a time been suspended, came
-round again to the thin pale girl, who sat there
-looking wistfully and wonderingly into the face of
-the witness; and the murmuring approbation that
-broke out, in spite of the shrill “Silence” of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[204]</span>
-crier, expressed at once admiration of the man—criminal
-as he swore himself to be—and pity for
-the accused. What could the issue be? Effie was
-acquitted, and Lindsay sent back to gaol. Was
-he not to be tried? The officials felt that the
-game was dangerous. If Lindsay had stood firm
-in the box, had not Effie sat firm at the bar, with
-the very gallows in her eye; and would not she, in
-her turn, be as firm in the box? All which was too
-evident; and the consequence in the end came to
-be, that Lindsay was in the course of a few days
-set at liberty.</p>
-
-<p>And now there occurred proceedings not less
-strange in the house of John Carr. Lindsay was
-turned off, because, though he had made a sacrifice
-of himself to save the life of Effie, the sacrifice was
-only that due to the justice he had offended. The
-dismissal was against the protestations of Effie,
-who alone knew he was innocent; and she had to
-bear the further grief of learning that Stormonth
-had left the city on the very day whereon she was
-apprehended—a discovery this too much for a
-frame always weak, and latterly so wasted by her
-confinement in prison, and the anguish of mind
-consequent upon her strange position. And so it
-came to pass, in a few more days, that she took to
-her bed, a wan, wasted, heart-broken creature; but
-stung as she had been by the conduct of the man<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[205]</span>
-she had offered to die to save, she felt even more
-the sting of ingratitude in herself for not divulging
-to her mother as much of her secret as would have
-saved Lindsay from dismissal; for she was now
-more and more satisfied that it was the strength of
-his love for her that had driven him to his great
-and perilous sacrifice. Nor could her mother, as
-she bent over her daughter, understand why her
-liberation should have been followed by so much
-of sorrow; nay, loving her as she did, she even
-reproached her as being ungrateful to God.</p>
-
-<p>“Mother,” said the girl, “I have a secret that
-lies like a stane upon my heart. George Lindsay
-had nae mair to do with that forgery than you.”</p>
-
-<p>“And who had to do with it then, Effie, dear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Myself,” continued the daughter; “I filled up
-the cheque at the bidding o’ Robert Stormonth,
-whom I had lang loved. It was he wha put my
-faither’s name to it. It was to him I gave the
-money, to relieve him from debt, and he has fled.”</p>
-
-<p>“Effie, Effie!” cried the mother; “and we have
-done this thing to George Lindsay—ta’en from
-him his basket and his store, yea, the bread o’ his
-mouth, in recompense for trying to save your life
-by offering his ain.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, mother,” added Effie; “but we must make
-that wrang richt.”</p>
-
-<p>“And mair, lass,” rejoined the mother, as she<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[206]</span>
-rose abruptly and nervously, and hurried to her
-husband, to whom she told the strange intelligence.
-Then John Carr was a just man as well as a loving
-parent; and while he forgave his unfortunate
-daughter, he went and brought back George Lindsay
-to his old place that very night; nor did he or
-Mrs Carr know the joy they had poured into the
-heart of the young man, for the reason that they
-did not know the love he bore to their daughter.
-But if this was a satisfaction to Effie, in so far as it
-relieved her heart of a burden, it brought to her a
-burden of another kind. The mother soon saw
-how matters stood with the heart of Lindsay, and
-she moreover saw that her or her daughter’s gratitude
-could not be complete so long as he was denied
-the boon of being allowed to marry the girl
-he had saved from the gallows; and she waited her
-opportunity of breaking the delicate subject to
-Effie. It was not time yet, when Effie was an invalid;
-and even so far wasted and worn as to cause
-apprehensions of her ultimate fate, even death; nor
-perhaps would that time ever come when she could
-bear to hear the appeal without pain; for though
-Stormonth had ruined her character and her peace
-of mind—nay, had left her in circumstances almost
-unprecedented for treachery, baseness, and cruelty—he
-retained still the niche where the offerings of
-a first love had been made: his image had been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[207]</span>
-indeed burned into the virgin heart, and no other
-form of man’s face, though representing the possessor
-of beauty, wealth, and worldly honours,
-would ever take away that treasured symbol. It
-haunted her even as a shadow of herself, which,
-disappearing at sundown, comes again at the rise
-of the moon; nay, she would have been contented
-to make other sacrifices equally great as that which
-she had made; nor wild moors, nor streams, nor
-rugged hills, would have stopped her in an effort
-to look upon him once more, and replace that inevitable
-image by the real vision, which had first
-taken captive her young heart.</p>
-
-<p>But time passed, bringing the usual ameliorations
-to the miserable. Effie got so far better in
-health that she became able to resume, in a languid
-way, her former duties, with the exception of those
-of “the gentle clerk”—for of these she had had
-enough; even the very look of a bank-draft brought
-a shudder over her; nor would she have entered
-the Bank of Scotland again, even with a good
-cheque for a thousand pounds to have been all her
-own. Meanwhile the patient George had plied a
-suit which he could only express by his eyes, or
-the attentions of one who worships; but he never
-alluded, even in their conversations, to the old
-sacrifice. The mother too, and not less the father,
-saw the advantages that might result as well to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[208]</span>
-health of her mind as that of her body. They had
-waited—a vain waiting—for the wearing out of the
-traces of the obdurate image: and when they
-thought they might take placidity as the sign of
-what they waited for, they first hinted, and then
-expressed in plain terms, the wishes of their hearts.
-For a time all their efforts were fruitless; but John
-Carr, getting old and weak, wished to be succeeded
-in his business by George; and the wife, when she
-became a widow, would require to be maintained,—reasons
-which had more weight with Effie than
-any others, excepting always the act of George’s
-self-immolation at the shrine in which his fancy
-had placed her. The importunities at length wore
-out her resistings, without effacing the lines of the
-old and still endeared image; and she gave a cold,
-we may say reluctant, consent. The bride’s “ay”
-was a sigh, the rapture a tear of sadness. But
-George was pleased even with this: Effie, the long-cherished
-Effie, was at length his.</p>
-
-<p>In her new situation Effie Carr—now Mrs Lindsay—performed
-all the duties of a good and faithful
-wife; by an effort of the will no doubt, though
-in another sense only a sad obedience to necessity,
-of which we are all, as the creatures of motives, the
-very slaves. But the old image resisted the appeals
-of her reason, as well as the blandishments
-of a husband’s love. She was only true, faithful,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[209]</span>
-and kind, till the birth of a child lent its reconciling
-power to the efforts of duty. Some time afterwards
-John Carr died—an event which carried in
-its train the subsequent death of his wife. There
-was left to the son-in-law a dwindling business, and
-a very small sum of money; for the father had met
-with misfortunes in his declining years, which impaired
-health prevented him from resisting. Time
-wore on, and showed that the power of the martyr-spirit
-is not always that of the champion of worldly
-success; for it was now but a struggle between
-George Lindsay, with a stained name, and the
-stern demon of misfortune. He was at length
-overtaken by poverty, which, as affecting Effie,
-preyed so relentlessly upon his spirits, that within
-two years he followed John Carr to the grave.
-Effie was now left with two children to the work
-of her fingers, a poor weapon wherewith to beat
-off the wolf of want; and even this was curtailed
-by the effects of the old crime, which the public
-still kept in green remembrance.</p>
-
-<p>Throughout, our story has been the sensationalism
-of angry Fate, and even less likely to be
-believed than the work of fiction. Nor was the
-vulture face of the Nemesis yet smoothed down.
-The grief of her bereavement had only partially
-diverted Effie’s mind from the recollections of him
-who had ruined her, and yet could not be hated<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[210]</span>
-by her, nay, could not be but loved by her. The
-sensitised nerve, which had received the old image,
-gave it out fresh again to the reviving power of
-memory, and this was only a continuation of what
-had been a corroding custom of years and years.
-But as the saying goes, it is a long road that does
-not offer by its side the spreading bough of shade to
-the way-worn traveller. One day, when Effie was
-engaged with her work, of which she was as weary
-as of the dreaming which accompanied it, there
-appeared before her, without premonition or foreshadowing
-sign, Robert Stormonth, of Kelton,
-dressed as a country gentleman, booted, and with
-a whip in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you Effie Carr?”</p>
-
-<p>The question was useless to one who was already
-lying back in her chair in a state of unconsciousness,
-from which she recovered only to open her
-eyes and avert them, and shut them and open them
-again, like the victim of epilepsy.</p>
-
-<p>“And do you fear me?” said the excited man,
-as he took her in his strong arms and stared wildly
-into her face; “I have more reason to fear you,
-whom I ruined,” he continued. “Ay, brought
-within the verge of the gallows. I know it all,
-Effie. Open your eyes, dear soul, and smile once
-more upon me. Nay, I have known it for years,
-during which remorse has scourged me through the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[211]</span>
-world. Look up, dear Effie, while I tell you I
-could bear the agony no longer; and now opportunity
-favours the wretched penitent, for my father
-is dead, and I am not only my own master, but
-master of Kelton, of which you once heard me
-speak. Will you not look up yet, dear Effie? I
-come to make amends to you, not by wealth merely,
-but to offer you again that love I once bore to you,
-and still bear. Another such look, dear; it is oil
-to my parched spirit. You are to consent to be
-my wife—the very smallest boon I dare offer.”</p>
-
-<p>During which strange rambling speech Effie was
-partly insensible; yet she heard enough to afford
-her clouded mind a glimpse of her condition, and
-of the meaning of what was said to her. For a
-time she kept staring into his face as if she had
-doubts of his real personality; nor could she find
-words to express even those more collected thoughts
-that began to gather into form.</p>
-
-<p>“Robert Stormonth,” at length she said, calmly,
-“and have you suffered too? Oh, this is more
-wonderful to me than a’ the rest o’ these wonderful
-things.”</p>
-
-<p>“As no man ever suffered, dear Effie,” he answered.
-“I was on the eve of coming to you,
-when a friend I retained here wrote me to London
-of your marriage with the man who saved you from
-the fate into which I precipitated you. How I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[212]</span>
-envied that man who offered to die for you! He
-seemed to take from me my only means of reparation;
-nay, my only chance of happiness. But he
-is dead. Heaven give peace to so noble a spirit!
-And now you are mine. It is mercy I come to
-seek in the first instance; the love—if that, after
-all that is past, is indeed possible—I will take my
-chance of that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Robert,” cried the now weeping woman, “if
-that love had been aince less, what misery I would
-have been spared! Ay, and my father, and mother,
-and poor George Lindsay; a’ helped awa to
-the grave by my crime, for it stuck to us to the
-end.” And she buried her head in his bosom, sobbing
-piteously.</p>
-
-<p>“<i>My</i> crime, dear Effie, not yours,” said he. “It
-was you who saved my life; and if Heaven has a
-kindlier part than another for those who err by the
-fault of others, it will be reserved for one who made
-a sacrifice to love. But we have, I hope, something
-to enjoy before you go there, and as yet I
-have not got your forgiveness.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is yours—it is yours, Robert,” was the sobbing
-answer. “Ay, and with it a’ the love I ever
-had for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Enough for this time, dear Effie,” said he. “My
-horse waits for me. Expect me to-morrow at this
-hour with a better-arranged purpose.” And folding<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[213]</span>
-her in his arms, and kissing her fervently, even
-as his remorse were thereby assuaged as well as his
-love gratified, he departed, leaving Effie to thoughts
-we should be sorry to think ourselves capable of
-putting into words. Nor need we say more than
-that Stormonth kept his word. Effie Carr was in
-a few days Mrs Stormonth, and in not many more
-the presiding female power in the fine residence of
-Kelton.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_012.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[214]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_013.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Mary Mochrie and the<br />
-Miracle of the Cod.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was said that David Hume’s barber, who
-had the honour of shaving the philosopher
-every morning, was so scandalised
-by David’s Essay on Miracles, that he told him to
-his face—which he was smoothing at the time—that
-Mary Mochrie’s miracle shut his mouth. And
-no doubt this was so far true, for the shaver took
-care while he was telling the story to hold David’s
-lips close with his left hand, while he was plying
-his razor with the other. David, we are informed,
-used to tell this anecdote himself along with the
-story of the modern miracle appended to it; and
-as the latter is a good example of the easy way by
-which the blind sentiment of wonder groping for
-light comes to refer strange things to Divine interposition,
-and consequently the facility of belief in
-those darker times, we may include among our<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[215]</span>
-stories for the amusement of our readers that of
-the miracle, which, goes in this wise:—</p>
-
-<p>On a fine day in the month of June a certain
-Miss Isabella Warrender, the daughter of a respectable
-burgess, bethought herself of the luxury of a
-plunge in the Forth, on the sands to the west of
-Newhaven, and with a view to safety, as well as
-companionship, she behoved to take with her her
-father’s trusty servant, Mary Mochrie. The blue
-bathing-gowns were accordingly put into the basket,
-and away they went on their journey of two
-miles with heads “as light as lavrocks,” and thinking
-of no other miracle in the world than that of
-enjoyment—a veritable miracle to many, insomuch
-as it is to them in this world of doubtful happiness
-and real misery miraculously scarce. Nor was it
-long, with their light feet, ere they reached their
-destination; all things, too, being otherwise propitious,
-for the sun was shining in a clear sky, the
-surface of the sea was as smooth as glass, and like
-a mirror reflected the rays of the sun; so that, to
-speak figuratively, Apollo and Neptune were on
-the best of terms, as if they had resolved to favour
-specially on that day so fair a specimen of an
-earthly maid, who, for a time, was to become a
-water nymph. So, after looking out from beneath
-her curls for Peeping Toms,—of whom, by the
-way, to the honour of Scotland, our Godivas in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[216]</span>
-these parts have little to complain,—Isabella got
-herself made as like Musidora as possible, in which
-condition she remained only for that single moment
-occupied by Mary in investing her with the said
-blue gown. Whereupon, Mary having also divested
-herself of her clothes, was as quickly reclaimed from
-the searching eyes of the upper of the two propitious
-gods by her young mistress helping her on
-with her sea dress.</p>
-
-<p>All which sacrifices to <i>Bona Dea</i> are pretty uniform,
-if we may not say that, although young
-women have as good a right to outrage modesty
-by splashing about perfectly nude in the sea as
-the men have, they know better than do any such
-naughty thing. Nor, perhaps, was it any exception,
-that as they went into the sea they took each other
-by the hand, just as Adam and Eve did when they
-walked hand in hand into a flood of sin, as enticing
-to them, too, as the shining water was to our
-virgins—a comparison more true than you may be
-at present thinking. Then having got up to the
-middle—that is, in a sense, half seas over, they got
-into that sportive mood which belongs to bathers,
-as if an infection from the playful element; and,
-of course, they could not avoid the usual ducking,
-which is performed by the two taking hold of both
-hands, and alternately or simultaneously dipping
-themselves over head, and as they emerge shaking<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[217]</span>
-their locks as the ducks do their wings when they
-come out of the water. All which was very pleasant,
-as might have been apparent from the laughing
-and screighing which terrified the Tom Norries
-there and then flying over their heads; but it so
-happened that in one of these see-saws Isabella’s
-foot slipped, and the consequence was that her
-hands slipped also out of those of Mary, so that
-she fell back into the water, more afraid, of course,
-than hurt; nor was this all, for no sooner had Isabella
-got on her feet again than holding out her
-left hand she cried in rather a wild way that she
-had lost her ruby ring—nay, that very ring which
-a certain George Ballennie had given her as a
-pledge of his love, and the loss of which was so
-like an augury of evil. And then as it was Mary’s
-hand which pulled it off, or rather Isabella’s that
-left it in Mary’s, it was natural she should ask at
-the same time whether Mary had it or had felt it,
-but Mary asserted that she had it not, neither had
-she felt it when coming off. So if Mary was honest
-it behoved to be in the sea, and in all likelihood
-would never be found again.</p>
-
-<p>And thus the pleasant act of bathing was interrupted
-in the very middle, for how could there be
-any more splashing and tumbling and mermaiding
-with this terrible loss weighing upon Isabella’s
-heart? She would not know how to face her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[218]</span>
-mother; and as for Ballennie, might he not think
-that she who would not take better care of a love-token
-had no great love on her part to be betokened
-by a ring or anything else. The very sea
-which a moment before was as beautiful as a blushing
-bride holding out her arms for the embrace of
-the bridegroom, became as hateful to her as a
-Fury, and, hastening to the bank with tears in her
-eyes, which, of course, could not be seen, she began
-to dress. Mary, who seemed to participate in
-her young mistress’s sorrow, commenced the same
-operation; but when the clothes were on what was
-to be done? The tide was ebbing, and an hour,
-or at most two, would discover the channel at the
-spot where the unlucky slip was made, but to remain
-all that time would produce uneasiness at
-home, and there appeared to be nothing for it but
-for the young lady to go to Edinburgh, and leave
-Mary to wait for the ebbing of the tide, and make a
-search among the shingle for the valuable article.</p>
-
-<p>A plan accordingly carried out. Mary certainly
-awaited the ebb, and did make a search among the
-gravel, but whether that search was conducted in
-that assiduous way followed by those who are
-lighted in their travel by the Lamp of Hope, it is
-not for us at present to say. Certain at least it is
-that Mary did not seem very greatly disappointed
-at her failure in not finding Isabella’s precious love-token,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[219]</span>
-for which want of feeling we do not require
-to go very deep into Mary’s breast, or any other
-body’s breast, seeing she was a woman, and had a
-lover of her own, even George Gallie, as good as
-Ballennie any day. True, he had never given her
-a ruby ring; though, as for that, he would if he
-could, and if he couldn’t how could he? So Mary
-was on a par with Isabella in that matter; still,
-we confess, she might have searched more carefully,
-unless, indeed, we are to be so ungallant as to believe
-that she had in her mind some foregone secret
-conclusion that the ring was not there to be found.</p>
-
-<p>Nor, what is almost as strange, did Mary take
-up her basket and commence her journey homeward
-in that saddened way which belongs to deep
-disappointment. Nay, we are not sure but that
-the words of the old song of her whose ring had
-been stolen by a mermaid, were conned by Mary
-to herself as she trudged homewards,—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“And sair she moiled, and sair she toiled,</div>
-<div class="indent">To find the ring lost in the sea,</div>
-<div class="verse">And still the thought within her wrought</div>
-<div class="indent">That she would never married be.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>But there was something else in her head when
-she reached the house, where she met some very
-suspicious looks not only from Isabella, but also
-from Mrs Warrender, for we may as well confess
-that the daughter had told her mother that when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[220]</span>
-the slip of the hand took place she felt as if the
-ring had been taken off by the hand of Mary. And
-then when Mary appeared with a lugubrious face,
-and reported that she had not found the ring in
-the shingle, the foresaid suspicion was so much
-confirmed, that very little more would be required
-to induce Mr Warrender to make some judicial
-investigation into the strange circumstance. An
-inauspicious afternoon and night for Mary, and
-not less the next day, when she was called into
-the dining-room, and so sharply interrogated by
-Mr Warrender, that she cried very bitterly, all the
-time asserting that she never felt her hand touch
-the ring, and that it had most certainly fallen into
-the water and been lost. But Mr Warrender was
-not a man who believed in tears, at least women’s;
-for he was ungallant enough to think, that as we
-cannot distinguish <i>ex parte rei</i> between those of
-anger and those of sorrow, and as there is a kind
-called crocodile, as limpid as the others, and just
-as like a pretty dewdrop, so they never can or
-ought to be received as evidence either of guilt or
-innocence. And so it came about, that as the
-hours passed the conviction grew stronger and
-stronger in the minds of the family that the meek,
-and church-going, and psalm-singing Mary Mochrie
-was a thief.</p>
-
-<p>Of this latter fact, in the peculiar circumstances<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[221]</span>
-of the case, there could be no evidence beyond the
-finding of the missing article, either on Mary’s
-person or in some place under her power, for Isabella’s
-word could not go for much; and so it was
-resolved that Mary’s person and trunk should be
-searched. A very strong step in the case of a girl
-who had hitherto held a very good character, and
-probably altogether unjustifiable, where so powerful
-an abstractor of earthly things as Neptune was
-apparently as much in the scrape as Mary. Yet
-this strong thing was done <i>illotis manibus</i>, and, as
-might have been expected, with no effect beyond
-scandalising Mary, who went so far as to say that
-Heaven took care of its own, and that God would
-in His own time and way show her persecutors that
-she was as innocent as that babe unborn, who takes
-away and places, nobody knows where, so many
-of the wickednesses of the world. But then an
-assertion of innocence in the grand style of an appeal
-to the Deity sometimes piques a prosecutor,
-because it conveys an imputation that the accused
-one is better taken care of by Heaven than he is;
-and so it turned out here, for Mr Warrender felt
-as if he had been challenged to the ultimate trial
-by ordeal, and he straightway proceeded to take
-measures for having Mary apprehended upon the
-charge of having robbed his daughter of the much-prized
-ring.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[222]</span>These measures were taken as they had been
-resolved upon, and here it behoves us, for a reason
-which may appear by and by, to be so particular
-as to say, that the officer was to come in the morning
-after breakfast to convey the alleged culprit to
-the office of the public prosecutor, for the purpose,
-in the first place, of examination. Nor was Mary
-unprepared, nay, she was not even to all appearance
-very much put about, for she had gone about
-her work as usual, and having finished what she
-had to do as maid-of-all-work—cook, scullery-maid,
-and scrub—she began to make preparations
-for cutting-up and gutting, and scraping, and washing
-the large cod, which lay upon the dresser ready
-for these operations, and which, by the way, Mrs
-Warrender had that morning, an hour before,
-bought for the sum of one and sixpence, from a
-Jenny Mucklebacket, of the village of Newhaven—another
-particular fact which we are bound to
-apologise for on the foresaid plea of necessity, lest
-we might incur the charge of wishing to produce
-an effect by Dutch painting. But Mary’s services
-as to the cod were dispensed with by Mrs Warrender,
-if they were not actually resented as either
-a bribe to forego the prosecution, or a cold-blooded
-indifference assumed for the purpose of showing
-her innocence. And so when the officer came
-Mary was hurried away to undergo this terrible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[223]</span>
-ordeal, which, whatever other effect it might have,
-could not fail to leave her marked with the very
-burning irons that might not inflict the punishment
-due to robbery.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving Mrs Warrender with the cod, which is
-as indispensable to our legend as a frying-pan to
-a Dutch interior, or the bone of a pig to a saint’s
-legend, we follow the prisoner to the office of the
-man who is a terror to evil-doers. Mr Warrender
-was there as the private prosecutor, and Isabella
-as a witness, or rather <i>the</i> witness. On being
-seated, the fiscal asked Mary, whether, on the day
-of the bathing, she had not seen the said ring on
-the finger of her young mistress; whereto Mary
-answered in the affirmative. Then came the application
-of the Lydian stone, in the form of the question,
-whether she did not, at the foresaid time and
-place, abstract the said ring from the finger of
-Isabella when she held her hand in the process of
-dipping; but Mary was here negative and firm,
-asserting that she did not, and giving emphasis to
-her denial by adding, that God knew she was as
-innocent as the foresaid babe. In spite of all which,
-Isabella insisted that she had been robbed in the
-manner set forth. The fiscal saw at once that the
-whole case lay between the two young women, and
-recommended Mr Warrender to let go the prosecution
-as one which must fail for defect of evidence;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[224]</span>
-but that gentleman, for the reason that he had so
-far committed himself, and also for that he was
-annoyed at what he called the impudence of a servant
-disputing the word of his daughter, and calling
-her, in effect, a liar, insisted upon his right, as
-the protector and curator of his daughter, of having
-the culprit committed to jail, in the expectation
-that, through some medium of the three magic
-balls, or otherwise, he would get more evidence of
-the crime. The fiscal had no alternative; and so
-Mary Mochrie was taken to the Tolbooth, with the
-ordinary result, in the first place, of the news going
-up and down the long street which then formed the
-city, that Mrs Warrender’s servant was imprisoned
-for the strange crime of abstracting from Miss
-Warrender’s finger, while bathing, the love-token
-given to her by her intended. There was, doubtless,
-about the tale just so much of romance that
-would serve it as wings to carry it wherever gossip
-was acceptable—and we would like to know where
-in that city it was not acceptable then, and where
-it is not acceptable now.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Mrs Warrender had been very busy
-with the mute person of our drama—the cod—in
-which, like the devil in the story who had bargained
-for a sinner and having got a saint instead, had half
-resolved to follow the advice of Burns and “take a
-thought and mend,” she had got so much more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[225]</span>
-than she bargained for with the fishwife that she was,
-when Mr Warrender and Isabella entered, ready
-to faint. They found her sitting in a chair scarcely
-able to move, under no less an agency than the fear
-of God. Her breath came and went with difficulty
-through lips with that degree of paleness which lips
-have a special tendency to take on, an expression
-of awe was over her face, and in her hand she held
-that identical ruby ring for the supposed theft of
-which the unfortunate Mary had been hurried to
-jail, and as for being able to speak she was as mute
-as the flounder in the proverb that never spoke but
-once; all she could do was to hold up the ring and
-point to the cod upon the dresser. But all in vain,
-for Mr Warrender could not see through the terrible
-mystery, nay, surely the most wonderful thing
-that had ever happened in this lower world since
-the time when the whale cast up Jonah just where
-and when he was wanted, till at length Mrs Warrender
-was enabled to utter a few broken words
-to the effect that the ring had been found in the
-stomach of the fish. Then, to be sure, all was plain
-enough—the cod was a chosen instrument in the
-hands of the great Author of Justice sent by a special
-message to save Mary Mochrie from the ruin
-which awaited her under a false charge. The conviction
-was easy in proportion to the charm which
-supernaturalism always holds over man—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[226]</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“True miracles are more believed</div>
-<div class="verse">The more they cannot be conceived;”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>and we are to remember that the last witch had
-not been burnt at the time of our story. But what
-made this Divine interposition the more serious to
-the house of the Warrenders, the message from
-above was sent as direct as a letter by post, only
-not prepaid, for Mrs Warrender had paid for the
-fish; and so it was equally plain that a duty was
-thus put upon Mr Warrender of no ordinary kind.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was he long in obeying the command.
-Taking the wonderful ring along with him he hurried
-away to the office he had so lately left, and
-told the miraculous tale to the man of prosecutions.
-And what although that astute personage smiled
-at the story, just as if he would have said, if he had
-thought it worth his while, “Was there any opportunity
-for Mary Mochrie handling the cod?”—it
-was only the small whipcord of scepticism applied
-to the posteriors of the rhinoceros of superstition,
-even that instinct in poor man to be eternally looking
-up into the blank sky for special providences.
-So Mr Warrender, now himself a holy instrument,
-got what he wanted—an order to the jailer for
-Mary’s liberation. So away he went; and as he
-went to the Tolbooth he told every acquaintance
-he met the exciting story—among others his own
-clergyman of the Greyfriars, who held up his hands<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[227]</span>
-and said, “Wonderful are the ways of God! Yea,
-this very thing hath a purpose in it, even that of
-utterly demolishing that arch sceptic David Hume’s
-soul-destroying Essay on Miracles. I will verily
-take up the subject the next Sabbath.” And thus,
-dropping the germs as he went, which formed a
-revolving radius line from the centre of the mystery—his
-own house—the consequence was that
-the miracle of the cod went like wildfire wherever
-there was the fuel of a predisposing superstition;
-and where, we repeat, was that not then? where is
-not now, despite of David with all his genius—the
-first and best of the anti-Positivists, because he was
-a true Pyrrhonean. Having got to the jail, Mr
-Warrender informed Mary of this wonderful turn
-of providence in her favour, whereat Mary, as a
-matter of course, held up her hands in great wonder
-and admiration.</p>
-
-<p>But Mr Warrender was not, by this act of justice,
-yet done with Mary. It behoved him to take her
-home and restore her to her place, with a character
-not only cleared of all imputation, but illustrated
-by the shining light of the favour of Heaven; and
-so he accompanied her down the thronged High
-Street,—an act which partook somewhat of the
-procession of a saint, whereat people stared; nay,
-many who had heard of the miracle went up and
-shook hands with one who was the favourite of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[228]</span>
-Great Disposer of events. Nor did her honours
-end with this display; for when they reached the
-house they found it filled with acquaintances, and
-even strangers, all anxious to see the wonderful
-fish, and the ring, and the maid. In the midst of
-all which honours Mary looked as simple as a
-Madonna; and if she winked it was only with one
-eye, and the winking was to herself. Even here
-her honours that day did not terminate, for she
-behoved for once to dine with the family—not on
-the cod, which was reserved as something sacred,
-like the small fishes offered by the Phaselites to
-their gods—but on a jolly leg of lamb, as a recompense
-for the breakfast of which she had that
-morning been deprived. Nay, as for the cod, in
-place of being eaten, it stood a risk of being pickled,
-and carried off to help the exchequer of some poor
-Catholic community in the land of miracles.</p>
-
-<p>But probably the most wonderful part of our
-history consists in this fact, that no one ever hinted
-at the propriety of having recourse to the easiest
-and most natural way of solving a knot so easily
-tied; but we have only to remember another mystery—that
-of the gullibility of man when under
-the hunger of superstition. Nor need we say that
-the maw of a cod, big and omnivorous as it is,
-never equalled that of the miracle-devourer’s, possessing,
-as it does, too, the peculiarity of keeping<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[229]</span>
-so long that which is accepted. Wherein it resembles
-the purse of the miser, the click of the
-spring of which is the sign of perpetual imprisonment.
-We only hear the subsequent jingle of the
-coin, and the jingle in our present instance might
-have lasted for twenty years, during all which
-time Mary Mochrie’s miracle might have served as
-the best answer to the Essay of the renowned
-sceptic.</p>
-
-<p>And thus we are brought back to the anecdote
-with which we set out. The story we have told is,
-in all its essentials, that which Donald Gorm,
-David Hume’s barber, treated him to on that
-morning when he wanted to close up for ever the
-mouth of the arch sceptic. It is not easy to smile
-while under the hands of a story-telling barber, for
-the reason that the contracted muscle runs a risk of
-being still more contracted by a slice being taken
-off it by a resolute razor moving in straight lines,
-so that probably it was not till Donald had finished
-both the story and the shaving, that David dared
-to indulge in that good-natured smile with which
-he used to meet his opponents, even in the teeth
-of the Gael’s oath, “’Tis a miracle, py Cot,”—a
-word this latter which, in Donald’s humour, might
-stand for the word cod, as well as for another too
-sacred to be here mentioned.</p>
-
-<p>Yet the philosopher had further occasion for his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[230]</span>
-good-humoured reticence, with which, as is well
-known, he declared he would alone meet the
-censors of his Essay, for it was really on the occasion
-of this great religious sensation in the city
-that the washer-women at the “Nor’ Loch”
-threatened to “dook him,” for the reason that, as
-they had heard, he had not only written that detestable
-Essay to prove that no miracles (for they
-were ungenerous enough to pay no attention to
-his <i>very</i> grave exception of the real Bible ones)
-could ever be, but he had actually gone the extreme
-length of disbelieving the intervention of
-God to save the innocent Mary Mochrie from the
-Moloch of the criminal law. We need not be unassured
-that this additional bit of gossip, as it
-spread though the city, would only tend to the
-inflammation that already prevailed. Nor need
-we wonder at all this, when we remember the play
-of metaphysical wit, which was received as very
-serious by the vulgar,—that David believed in
-nothing, except that there was no God.</p>
-
-<p>But the mind of the Edinburgh public was not
-destined to cool down before it underwent further
-combustion. It happened that a certain person of
-the name of Gallie, a common working jeweller in
-World’s End Close, was possessed of knowledge
-which he had picked up on the road to Newhaven,
-whither he had been going to bathe, on that very<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[231]</span>
-morning when the miraculous ring was lost, and
-which knowledge, he thought, being a knowing fellow,
-he could turn to account in the midst of the heat
-of collision between the miracle-mongers and the
-sceptics, even as he might have transmuted by the
-fire of the furnace a piece of base metal into gold;
-and he took a strange way to effect his purpose.
-Having first called on Mr Warrender and got a
-sight of the magic ring, he next wrote an advertisement,
-which he got printed in the form of the
-small posters of that day of Lilliputian bills. It
-ran in these terms:—“Mary Mochrie’s Miracle.—If
-any one is anxious to learne the trew secret
-of this reputyd miracle, let him or her, mann or
-woman, hye to the closs of ye Warld’s End, where
-Michael Gallie resideth, and on ye payement of
-one shilling they will hear somethyng that will
-astonie them; but not one to tell ye other upon his
-aith.”</p>
-
-<p>Copies of this bill Gallie posted on several walls
-in the most crowded parts of the city, and the consequence
-was such a crowd at World’s End Close
-as might have been looked for if the close had really
-been the last refuge from a conflagration of another
-kind. The applicants got their turn of entry;
-every one came out with a face expressive of wonder,
-yet so true were they to their oath, that no
-one would tell a word he had heard behind the veil<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[232]</span>
-of Gallie’s mystery, so that the curiosity of the
-outsiders, who wanted to save their shillings, became
-inflamed by pique in addition to curiosity.
-The secret took on the sacred and cabalistic character
-of a mystery, and the mystery feeding, as it
-always does, upon whispers and ominous looks,
-increased as the hours passed. Nor can we wonder
-at an excitement which had religion at the
-bottom of it, and the vanquishment of the soul-destroying
-David for the fruitful and ultimate issue.
-It was only the high price of admission which
-limited the number of Gallie’s shillings, for during
-the entire day the stern obligation of an oath
-proved the stern honesty of a religious people. It
-was said—and I see no reason to doubt the truth
-of the report—that Dr Robertson and many others
-of the educated classes caught the infection and
-paid their shilling; but we may doubt if the imperturbable
-David would risk his body or trouble
-his spirit by looking into the mysterious close of
-the World’s End.</p>
-
-<p>As to what took place within Gallie’s room, it
-would seem that the ingenious fellow, when he saw
-the heather on fire, set his gins for the hares and
-conies in such a way as to catch them by dozens.
-He allowed the room to fill, and having administered
-the oath to two or three dozen at a time, he
-contrived during the course of the day to bag more<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[233]</span>
-shillings than there might have been supposed to
-be fools or religious enthusiasts even in superstitious
-Edinburgh. Afterwards, when rumour became
-busy with his gains, it was said that he was
-thereby enabled to set up the famous silversmith’s
-shop that so long, under the name of “Gallie and
-Son,” occupied a prominent front in the High
-Street, between Halkerston’s Wynd and Milne’s
-Entry.</p>
-
-<p>But as all things that depend upon mere human
-testimony must ultimately be left insoluble, except
-as belief makes an election and decision, so even
-the revelation of the prophet Gallie did not settle
-the great question of Mochrie <i>versus</i> Hume, for
-Gallie could offer no corroboration of the testimony
-of which he contrived to make a little fortune.
-That revelation came to be known very well the
-next day, probably from the softening and tongue-loosening
-influence of Edinburgh ale exercised
-upon even gnarled and cross-grained Presbyterians;
-and we need be under no doubt that Donald
-Gorm, when he shaved the philosopher next morning,
-was in full possession of the secret, though we
-might be entitled to hold pretty fast by the suspicion
-that he would not court another smile from
-David by recounting to him the destruction of his,
-Donald’s, theory of the miracle.</p>
-
-<p>With an apology for having kept the reader too<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[234]</span>
-long from a knowledge of Gallie’s revelation, we
-now proceed to give it as it was currently reported.
-It seemed that on that morning when the two girls
-went to bathe, Gallie had left Edinburgh for the
-same purpose about an hour later—a statement
-probable enough, although not attempted to be
-supported by any evidence. When about halfway
-on his journey, he met Mary Mochrie, who, strangely
-enough, though perfectly true, was his sweetheart.
-After some talk about the kind of bathe she had
-had, Mary showed him a ring, which she said she
-had bought from an old Jew broker on the previous
-day, and which she regretted was too wide for
-her finger. She then asked him to take it home
-with him and reduce it. Gallie having taken the
-ring into his hand started the moment he fixed his
-eye upon it.</p>
-
-<p>“That ring,” said he, for, notwithstanding his
-scheme to make capital out of superstition, of
-which he was an enemy, he was an honest fellow,—“that
-ring belongs to your young mistress; and
-the reason I know this is that I fixed the ruby in
-it for her not yet a fortnight since.”</p>
-
-<p>Taken thus aback, Mary began to prevaricate,
-saying that Miss Isabella Warrender had given it
-to her.</p>
-
-<p>“That cannot be,” said Gallie, “because she told<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[235]</span>
-me it was a present from her lover, George Ballennie,
-to whom she is to be married.”</p>
-
-<p>Words which Gallie uttered in a solemn if not
-sorrowful tone, and a look indicating displeasure
-and disappointment at thus detecting in the woman
-whom he had intended to marry, both theft and
-falsehood. Nor were these words left unrequited,
-for the fiery girl, snatching the ring out of his hand,
-called him a liar, besides taunting him with a
-certain pendulous attitude which his father, old
-Gallie, had assumed somewhere about the precincts
-of the Tolbooth immediately before dying.
-The cruel remark was one of those combinations
-of sharp words which have a tendency to stick,
-especially where the brain to which they adhere
-has been previously occupied by love, and so Gallie,
-muttering to himself a determination to be
-revenged, parted from her for ever, and proceeded
-on his way to Newhaven.</p>
-
-<p>Things in this world being so arranged that one
-person’s misfortune or wretchedness becomes another
-person’s opportunity, we may see how Gallie
-came to his purpose. Perhaps he might not have
-thought it worth his pains to expose his own sweetheart
-from a mere feeling of revenge, but when he
-came to find that the woman who had cast up to
-him his father’s misfortune, had taken or been put<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[236]</span>
-into the position of an instrument of God’s grace,
-that the public had been by her precipitated into
-a superstitious enthusiasm—a species of feeling
-which he hated, (for who knows but that he might
-have been descended from that older Gallio who
-deserved to have been hanged?) and that he saw
-by the clear vision of ingenuity that he could revenge
-himself as to Mary, and make himself rich
-at the expense of the fools whom he despised, he
-fell upon the adroit scheme which we have so faithfully
-recorded.</p>
-
-<p>We have already also said that the oath of secrecy
-which Gallie had imposed on his dupes was dispensed
-with by some of the “loose-fish” who could
-not be so easily caught as the devout cod. But
-this did not end the controversy, for it immediately
-took the form of a contest between the Gallieites
-and the Mochrieites, and the fury of the contest
-having drawn the attention of the officials of the
-law, Mary was again apprehended, with the view
-to be indicted for the theft of the ring, provided
-any corroborative testimony could be got in support
-of the statement of Gallie, who was forced to
-make his revelation to the fiscal, this one time
-without a shilling. The Scotch people are blessed
-or cursed with a metaphysical tendency, and this
-may be the reason of their peculiar faith, as well as
-of their old suspicion of human testimony in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[237]</span>
-courts of law. One witness has never been received
-in Scotland as good for anything, if standing alone;
-and when we look to the samples of humanity that
-meet us every day, so nicely poised between truth
-and falsehood, that the weight of a Queen Anne’s
-farthing would decide the inclination to the one
-side or the other, we are apt to think our judges
-rather sagacious. Perhaps they thought of themselves
-in these palmy days when they took bribes,
-and considered them very good and gracious things,
-too, in their own way. But be all that as it may,
-the evidence of Gallie was not corroborated in any
-way; the ring might have been put into the cod’s
-mouth by Isabella Warrender herself to ruin Mary.
-Woman can do such things; and Gallie’s accusation
-might have been the consequence of Mary’s
-allusion to the fate of his father. The result, accordingly,
-was, that Mary Mochrie was dismissed.
-Yet even here the affair did not end, for some
-people received her with open arms, as being a
-vessel of mercy.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_159.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[238]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_160.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Pelican.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THOUGH not so much a tradition as a
-memory still fresh probably in the minds
-of some of the good old Edinburgh folks,
-we here offer, chiefly for the benefit of our young
-female readers who are fond of a story wherein
-little heroines figure, as in Béranger’s “Sylphide,”
-an account of a very famous adventure of a certain
-little Jeannie Deans in our city—the more
-like the elder Jeannie, inasmuch as they both
-were concerned in a loving effort to save the life
-of a sister. Whereunto, as a very necessary introduction,
-it behoves us to set forth that there
-was, some sixty years ago, more or less, a certain
-Mr William Maconie, who was a merchant
-on the South Bridge of Edinburgh, but
-who, for the sake of exercise and fresh air,—a
-commodity this last he need not have gone so far
-from the Calton Hill to seek—resided at Juniper
-Green, a little village three or four miles from St
-Giles’s. Nor did this distance incommode him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[239]</span>
-much, seeing that he had the attraction to quicken
-his steps homewards of a pretty young wife and
-two little twin daughters, Mary and Annie, as like
-each other as two rosebuds partially opened, and
-as like their mother, too, as the objects of our
-simile are to themselves when full blown.</p>
-
-<p>Peculiar in this respect of having twins at the
-outset, and sisters too—a good beginning of a
-contract to perpetuate the species—Mr Maconie
-was destined to be even more so, inasmuch as
-there came no more of these pleasant <i>deliciæ
-domi</i>, at least up to the time of our curious
-story—a circumstance the more to be regretted
-by the father in consequence of a strange fancy
-(never told to his wife) that possessed him of
-wishing to insure the lives of his children as they
-came into the world, or at least after they had
-got through the rather uninsurable period of mere
-infant life. And in execution of this fancy—a very
-fair and reasonable one, and not uncommon at
-that time, whatever it may be now, when people
-are not so provident—he had got an insurance to
-the extent of five hundred pounds effected in the
-Pelican Office—perhaps the most famous at that
-time—on the lives of the said twins, Mary and
-Annie, who were, no doubt, altogether unconscious
-of the importance they were thus made to hold in
-the world.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[240]</span>Yet, unfortunately for the far-seeing and provident
-father, this scheme threatened to fructify
-sooner than he wished, if indeed it could ever have
-fructified to his satisfaction; for the grisly spectre
-of Typhus laid his relentless hand upon Mary when
-she—and of a consequence Annie—was somewhere
-about eight years old. And surely, being as we
-are very hopeful optimists in the cause of human
-nature, we need not say that the father, as he and
-his wife watched the suffering invalid on through
-the weary days and nights of the progress towards
-the crisis of that dangerous ailment, never once
-thought of the Pelican, except as a bird that feeds
-its young with the warm blood of its breast. But,
-sorrowful as they were, their grief was nothing in
-comparison with the distress of little Annie, who
-slipped about listening and making all manner of
-anxious inquiries about her sick sister, whom she
-was prohibited from seeing for fear of her being
-touched by the said spectre; nor was her heart the
-less troubled with fears for her life, that all things
-seemed so quiet and mysterious about the house—the
-doctor coming and going, and the father and
-mother whispering to each other, but never to her,
-and their faces so sad-like and mournful, in place
-of being, as was their wont, so cheerful and happy.</p>
-
-<p>And surely all this solicitude on the part of
-Annie Maconie need not excite our wonder, when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[241]</span>
-we consider that, from the time of their birth, the
-twin sisters had never been separated; but that,
-from the moment they had made their entrance
-on this world’s stage, they had been always each
-where the other was, and had run each where
-the other ran, wished each what the other wished,
-and wept and laughed each when the other
-wept or laughed. Nature, indeed, before it came
-into her fickle head to make two of them, had, in
-all probability, intended these little sisters—“little
-cherries on one stalk”—to be but one; and they
-could only be said not to be <i>one</i>, because of their
-bodies being two—a circumstance of no great importance,
-for, in spite of the duality of body, the
-spirit that animated them was a unity, and as we
-know from an old philosopher called Plato, the
-spirit is really the human creature, the flesh and
-bones constituting the body being nothing more
-than a mere husk intended at the end to feed
-worms. And then the mother helped this sameness
-by dressing them so like each other, as if she
-wanted to make a “Comedy of Errors” out of the
-two little female Dromios.</p>
-
-<p>But in the middle of this mystery and solicitude,
-it happened that Annie was to get some light; for
-at breakfast one morning—not yet that of the expected
-crisis—when her father and mother were
-talking earnestly in an undertone to each other,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[242]</span>
-all unaware that the child, as she was moving
-about, was watching their words and looks, much
-as an older victim of credulity may be supposed to
-hang on the cabalistic movements and incantations
-of a sibyl, the attentive little listener eagerly drank
-in every word of the following conversation:—</p>
-
-<p>“The doctor is so doubtful,” said the anxious
-mother, with a tear in her eye, “that I have
-scarcely any hope; and if she is taken away, the
-very look of Annie, left alone ‘bleating for her
-sister lamb,’ will break my heart altogether.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” rejoined Mr Maconie, “it would be hard
-to bear; but,”—and it was the first time since
-Mary’s illness he had ever remembered the insurance,—“it
-was wise that I insured poor Mary’s
-life in the Pelican.”</p>
-
-<p>“Insured her life in the Pelican!” echoed the
-wife, in a higher tone. “That was at least lucky;
-but, oh! I hope we will not need to have our grief
-solaced by that comfort in affliction for many a
-day.”</p>
-
-<p>And this colloquy had scarcely been finished
-when the doctor entered, having gone previously
-into the invalid’s room, with a very mournful expression
-upon his face; nor did his words make
-that expression any more bearable, as he said—</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry to say I do not like Mary’s appearance
-so well to-day. I fear it is to be one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[243]</span>
-of those cases where we cannot discover anything
-like a crisis at all; indeed, I have doubts about
-this old theory being applicable to this kind of
-fever, where the virus goes on gradually working
-to the end.”</p>
-
-<p>“The end!” echoed Mrs Maconie; “then, doctor,
-I fear you see what that will be.”</p>
-
-<p>“I would not like to say,” added he; “but I fear
-you must make up your mind for the worst.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, all this was overheard by Annie, who, we
-may here seize the opportunity of saying, was, in
-addition to being a sensitive creature, one of those
-precocious little philosophers thinly spread in the
-female world, and made what they are often by
-delicate health, which reduces them to a habit of
-thinking much before their time. Not that she
-wanted the vivacity of her age, but that it was
-tempered by periods of serious musing, when all
-kinds of what the Scotch call “auld farrent” (far
-yont) thoughts come to be where they should not
-be, the consequence being a weird-like kind of
-wisdom, very like that of the aged; so the effect
-on a creature so constituted was just equal to the
-cause. Annie ran out of the room with her face
-concealed in her hands, and got into a small bed-room
-darkened by the window-blind, and there, in
-an obscurity and solitude suited to her mind and
-feelings, she resigned herself to the grief of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[244]</span>
-young heart. It was now clear to her that her
-dear Mary was to be taken from her; had not the
-doctor said as much? And then she had never
-seen death, of which she had read and heard and
-thought so much, that she looked upon it as a
-thing altogether mysterious and terrible. But had
-she not overheard her father say that he had insured
-poor dear Mary’s life with the Pelican? and
-had she not heard of the pelican—yea, the pelican
-of the wilderness—as a creature of a most mythical
-kind, though she knew not aught of its nature,
-whether bird or beast, or man or woman, or angel.
-But whatever it might be, certain it was that her
-father would never have got this wonderful creature
-to insure Mary’s life if it was not possessed of the
-power to bring about so great a result; so she cogitated,
-and mused, and philosophised in her small
-way, till she came to the conclusion that the pelican
-not only had the destiny of Mary in its hands,
-but was under an obligation to save her from that
-death which was so terrible to her. Nor had she
-done yet with the all-important subject; for all at
-once it came into her head as a faint memory, that
-one day, when her father was taking her along
-with her mother through the city, he pointed to a
-gilded sign, with a large bird represented thereon
-tearing its breast with its long beak and letting
-out the blood to its young, who were holding their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[245]</span>
-mouths open to drink it in. “There,” said he, “is
-the Pelican;” words she remembered even to that
-hour, for they were imprinted upon her mind by
-the formidable appearance of the wonderful-looking
-creature feeding its young with the very blood
-of its bosom. But withal she had sense enough to
-know—being, as we have said, a small philosopher—that
-a mere bird, however endowed with the
-power of sustaining the lives of its offspring, could
-not save that of her sister, and therefore it behoved
-to be only the symbol of some power within the
-office over the door of which the said sign was
-suspended. Nor in all this was Annie Maconie
-more extravagant than are nineteen-twentieths of
-the thousand millions in the world who still cling
-to occult causes.</p>
-
-<p>And with those there came other equally strange
-thoughts; but beyond all she could not for the
-very life of her comprehend that most inexcusable
-apathy of her father, who, though he had heard
-with his own ears, from good authority, that her
-beloved Mary was lying in the next bed-room
-dying, never seemed to think of hurrying away to
-town—even to that very pelican who had so generously
-undertaken to insure Mary’s life. It was
-an apathy unbecoming a father; and the blood of
-her little heart warmed with indignation at the
-very time that the said heart was down in sorrow<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[246]</span>
-as far as its loose strings would enable it to go.
-But was there no remedy? To be sure there was,
-and Annie knew, moreover, what it was; but then
-it was to be got only by a sacrifice, and that sacrifice
-she also knew, though it must of necessity be
-kept in the meantime as secret as the wonderful
-doings in the death-chamber of the palace of a
-certain Bluebeard.</p>
-
-<p>Great thoughts these for so little a woman as
-Annie Maconie; and no doubt the greatness and
-the weight of them were the cause why, for all that
-day—every hour of which her father was allowing
-to pass—she was more melancholy and thoughtful
-than she had ever been since Mary began to be ill.
-But, somehow, there was a peculiar change which
-even her mother could observe in her; for while
-she had been in the habit of weeping for her sister,
-yea, and sobbing very piteously, she was all this
-day apparently in a reverie. Nor even up to the
-time of her going to bed was she less thoughtful
-and abstracted, even as if she had been engaged
-in solving some problem great to her, however
-small it might seem to grown-up infants. As for
-sleeping under the weight of so much responsibility,
-it might seem to be out of the question, and
-so verily it was; for her little body, acted on by
-the big thoughts, was moved from one side to
-another all night, so that she never slept a wink<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[247]</span>
-still thinking and thinking, in her unutterable grief,
-of poor Mary, her father’s criminal passiveness,
-and that most occult remedy which so completely
-engrossed her mind.</p>
-
-<p>But certainly it was the light of morning for
-which sister Annie sighed; and when it came
-glinting in at the small window, she was up and
-beginning to dress, all the while listening lest the
-servant or any other one in the house should know
-she was up at that hour. Having completed her
-toilet, she slipped downstairs, and having got to
-the lobby, she was provident enough to lay hold
-of an umbrella, for she suspected the elements as
-being in league against her. Thus equipped, she
-crept out by the back-door, and having got thus
-free, she hurried along, never looking behind her
-till she came to the main road to Edinburgh, when
-she mounted the umbrella—one used by her father,
-and so large that it was more like a main-sheet
-than a covering suitable to so small a personage;
-so it behoved, that if she met any other “travellers
-on purpose bent,” the moving body must have appeared
-to be some small tent on its way to a fair,
-carried by the proprietor thereof, of whom no more
-could be seen but the two short toddling legs, and
-the hem of the black riding-hood. But what cared
-Annie? She toiled along; the miles were long in
-comparison of the short legs, but then there was a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[248]</span>
-large purpose in that little body, in the view of
-which miles were of small account, however long a
-time it might take those steps to go over them.
-Nor was it any drawback to all this energy, concentrated
-in so small a bulk, that she had had no
-breakfast. Was the dying sister Mary able to take
-any breakfast? and why should Annie eat when
-Mary, who did all she did—and she always did
-everything that sister Mary did—could not? The
-argument was enough for our little logician.</p>
-
-<p>By the time she reached, by those short steps of
-hers, the great city, it was half-past eleven, and
-she had before her still a great deal to accomplish.
-She made out, after considerable wanderings, the
-street signalised above all streets by that wonderful
-bird; but after she got into it, the greater
-difficulty remained of finding the figure itself,
-whereto there was this untoward obstacle, that it
-was still drizzling in the thick Scotch way of concrete
-drops of mist, and the umbrella which she
-held over her head was so large that no turning it
-aside would enable her to see under the rim at
-such an angle as would permit her scanning so
-elevated a position, and so there was nothing for
-it but to draw it down. But even this was a task—heavy
-as the main-sheet was with rain, and
-rattling in a considerable wind—almost beyond
-her strength; and if it hadn’t been that a kindly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[249]</span>
-personage who saw the little maid’s difficulty gave
-her assistance, she might not have been able to
-accomplish it. And now, with the heavy article
-in her hand, she peered about for another half-hour,
-till at length her gladdened eye fell upon
-the mystic symbol.</p>
-
-<p>And no sooner had she made sure of the object,
-than she found her way into the office, asking the
-porter as well as a clerk where the pelican was to
-be found—questions that produced a smile; but
-smile here or smile there, Annie was not to be
-beat, nor did she stop in her progress until at last
-she was shown into a room where she saw perched
-on a high stool with three (of course) long legs, a
-strange-looking personage with a curled wig and
-a pair of green spectacles, who no doubt must be
-the pelican himself. As she appeared in the room,
-with the umbrella, not much shorter or less in
-circumference than herself, the gentleman looked
-curiously at her, wondering no doubt what the
-errand of so strange a little customer could be.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, my little lady,” said he, “what may be
-your pleasure?”</p>
-
-<p>“I want the pelican,” said Annie.</p>
-
-<p>The gentleman was still more astonished, even
-to the extent that he laid down his pen and looked
-at her again.</p>
-
-<p>“The pelican, dear?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[250]</span>“Ay; just the pelican,” answered she, deliberately,
-and even a little indignantly. “Are you the
-pelican?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes, dear; all that is for it below the
-figure,” said he, smiling, and wondering what the
-next question would be.</p>
-
-<p>“I am so glad I have found you,” said she;
-“because sister Mary is dying.”</p>
-
-<p>“And who is sister Mary?”</p>
-
-<p>“My sister, Mary Maconie, at Juniper Green.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the gentleman began to remember
-that the name of William Maconie was in his books
-as holder of a policy.</p>
-
-<p>“And what more?”</p>
-
-<p>“My father says the pelican insured Mary’s life,
-and I want you to come direct and do it, because
-I couldn’t live if Mary were to die. And there’s
-no time to be lost.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I see, dear; and who sent you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody,” answered Annie. “My father
-wouldn’t come to you, and I have come from
-Juniper Green myself, without telling my father
-or mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, dear; I understand you.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you must do it quick,” continued she, “because
-the doctor says she’s in great danger; so you
-must come with me, and save her immediately.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry, my dear little lady,” rejoined he,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[251]</span>
-“that I cannot go with you; but I will set about
-it immediately, and I have no doubt, being able
-to go faster than you, that I will get there before
-you, so that all will be right before you
-arrive.”</p>
-
-<p>“See that you do it, then,” said she, “because
-I can’t live if Mary dies. Are you quite sure you
-will do it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perfectly sure, my little dear,” added he; “go
-away home, and all will be right. The pelican
-will do his duty.”</p>
-
-<p>And Annie being thus satisfied, went away,
-dragging the main-sheet after her, and having
-upon her face a look of contentment, if not absolute
-happiness, in place of the sorrow which had
-occupied it during all the time of her toilsome
-journey. The same road is to be retraced; and if
-she had an object before which nerved her little
-limbs, she had now the delightful consciousness of
-that object having been effected—a feeling of inspiration
-which enabled her, hungry as she was, to
-overcome all the toil of the return. Another two
-hours, with that heavy umbrella overhead as well
-as body, brought her at length home, where she
-found that people had been sent out in various
-directions to find the missing Annie. The mother
-was in tears, and the father in great anxiety; and
-no sooner had she entered and laid down her burden,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[252]</span>
-than she was clasped to the bosom, first of
-one parent, and then of the other.</p>
-
-<p>“But where is the pelican?” said the anxious
-little maid.</p>
-
-<p>“The pelican! my darling,” cried the mother;
-“what do you mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I have been to him at his own office at
-Edinburgh, to get him to come and save Mary’s
-life, and he said he would be here before me.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what in the world put it in your head to
-go there?” again asked the mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Because I heard my father say yesterday that
-the pelican had insured dear sister Mary’s life, and
-I went to tell him to come and do it immediately;
-because, if Mary were to die, I couldn’t live, you
-know—that’s the reason, dear mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes,” said the father, scarcely able to
-repress a smile which rose in spite of his grief.
-“I see it all; you did a very right thing, my love.
-The pelican has been here, and Mary is better.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I am so glad,” rejoined Annie, “for I
-wasn’t sure whether he had come or not; because,
-though I looked for him on the road, I couldn’t
-see him.”</p>
-
-<p>At the same moment the doctor came in, with a
-blithe face.</p>
-
-<p>“Mary is safe now,” said he. “There has been
-a crisis, after all. The sweat has broken out upon<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[253]</span>
-her dry skin, and she will be well in a very short
-time.”</p>
-
-<p>“And there’s no thanks to you,” said Annie,
-“because it was I who went for the pelican.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the doctor looked to the father, who,
-taking him aside, narrated to him the story, at
-which the doctor was so pleased that he laughed
-right out.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re the noblest little heroine I ever heard
-of,” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“But have you had anything to eat, dear, in
-this long journey?” said the mother.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I didn’t want,” was the answer; “all I
-wanted was to save Mary’s life, and I am glad I
-have done it.”</p>
-
-<p>And glad would we be if, by the laws of historical
-truth, our stranger story could have ended here;
-but, alas! we are obliged to pain the good reader’s
-heart by saying that the demon who had left the
-troubled little breast of Mary Maconie took possession
-of Annie’s. The very next day she lay extended
-on the bed, panting under the fell embrace
-of the relentless foe. As Mary got better, Annie
-grew worse; and her case was so far unlike
-Mary’s, that there was more a tendency to a
-fevered state of the brain. The little sufferer
-watched with curious eyes the anxious faces of
-her parents, and seemed conscious that she was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[254]</span>
-in a dangerous condition. Nor did it fail to occur
-to her as a great mystery as well as wonder, why
-they did not send for the wonderful being who
-had so promptly saved the life of her sister. The
-thought haunted her, yet she was afraid to mention
-it to her mother, because it implied a sense
-of danger—a fear which one evening she overcame.
-Fixing her eyes, now every moment waxing less
-clear, on the face of her mother—</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! mother, dear,” she whispered, “why do you
-not send for the pelican?”</p>
-
-<p>In other circumstances the mother would have
-smiled; but, alas, no smile could be seen on that
-pale face. Whether the pelican was sent for we
-know not, but certain it is, that he had no power
-to save poor Annie, and she died within the week.
-But she did not die in vain, for the large sum insured
-upon her life eventually came to Mary,
-whom she loved so dearly.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_136.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[255]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_137.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of Davie Dempster’s Ghaist.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_t.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THERE was once an old saying very common
-in the mouths of the Edinburgh
-people—“As dead as Davie Dempster.”
-It has long since passed away; but whether it was
-preferable to the one to which it has given place,
-viz.,—“As dead as a door-nail,” we must leave to
-those wise people who can measure degrees of nonvitality
-in objects which are without life. Be all
-which as it may, the imputed deadness of David
-Dempster may appear to have some interest to us
-when we know the story from which the old popular
-saying took its rise; and the more, that the
-story cannot be said to want a moral vitality, if it
-has not even a spice of humour in it. Certain, to
-begin with, David Dempster was at least once alive,
-for we can vouch for his having been a very respectable
-denizen of the old city. We can even impart the
-nature of his calling, that of a trafficker in the stuff
-of man’s wearing apparel, which he sold to those
-who were willing to buy, and even to some who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[256]</span>
-were unwilling to buy; for David’s tongue, if not
-so long as his ell-wand, was a deuced deal more
-supple. Nor does our information end here, for we
-can, we are happy to say, tell the name of his wife,
-which was Dorothy; nay, we know even the interesting
-particular, that when David had more Edinburgh
-ale in his stomach than humility in his head,
-he got so far into the heroics as to call her Dorothea;
-but as for the maiden name of this woman,
-who was the wife of a man so famous as to have
-been the source and origin of a proverb, we regret
-to say that it has gone into the limbo of things that
-are lost. To make amends, we can, however, add
-that Mrs Dempster was, at the time of our story,
-as plump and well coloured as Florabel; but as
-for David, who was ten years older than his wife,
-he was just as plain as any man needs be without
-pretension to being disagreeable.</p>
-
-<p>We have said that David Dempster and his wife
-were respectable, and we do not intend to offer a
-jot more evidence on the point, than the fact that
-they went to “the kirk” on Sundays, and that, too,
-with faces of the normal Calvinistic elongation,
-and in good clothes; Dorothy being covered, head
-and all, with her red silk plaid, and David immersed
-in the long square coat of the times, with cuffs as
-big as four-pound tea-bags, buttons as broad as
-crown-pieces, and pockets able to have held Dr<span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[257]</span>
-Webster’s—their minister’s—pulpit Bible in the one,
-and as many bottles of wine as the worthy gentleman
-could carry away at a sitting, in the other; an
-allusion this last by no means ill-natured, as we
-may show by making the admission that, if David
-and Dorothy had had heads big enough to carry
-away all that their excellent preacher told them,
-they required no more for unction and function for
-a whole week. But, however fair things looked in
-the sanctuary, it was otherwise at home in Lady
-Stair’s Close, where they resided, for it so happened
-that our worthy clothes-merchant had got into
-debt; nay, there were hornings and captions out
-against him, and he stood a chance any day in all
-the year round of being shut up in “The Heart of
-Mid-Lothian,” not nearly so soft a one as Dorothy’s.
-Not that all David’s creditors were equally hard
-upon him, for the laird of Rubbledykes—a small
-property on the left-hand side of the road to Cramond—Mr
-Thomas Snoddy, who had lent him
-two hundred pounds Scots, never asked him for a
-farthing; the reason of which requires a little explanation.</p>
-
-<p>In real secret truth the laird had been a lover of
-Dorothy’s before she was married to David, and
-there is no doubt that if he had declared himself,
-with Rubbledykes to back him, he would have carried
-off the adorable Dorothy in triumph; but then<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[258]</span>
-it was the laird’s misfortune to be what the Scotch
-call “a blate lover;” which is just to say, a belated
-one; and Dorothy was married to the spruce and
-ardent David before she knew that a real laird of
-an estate was dying in secret for her. Nor could
-she have had any doubt of the fact, for Mr Snoddy
-summoned up courage to tell her so himself—a
-circumstance which cost him something, insomuch
-as no sooner did David know the fact than he asked
-him for the loan of the said two hundred pounds
-Scots money. Of course, David being, as we have
-said, a man with a supple tongue, and brains at the
-end of it, knew what he was about, and so sure
-enough he succeeded; for Rubbledykes, who would
-not have lent two hundred pound Scots to the
-treasurer of the Virgin Mary on a note-of-hand,
-payable in Heaven, was even delighted to advance
-that sum to the husband of his once loved, and for
-ever lost, Dorothy. And in this act the laird was
-wonderfully liberal; for in his secret heart he conditioned
-for no more than the liberty of being
-allowed to visit the house in Lady Stair’s Close on
-market days, and sit beside Dorothy, and look at
-her, and wonder at her still red cheeks—albeit,
-more of the pickling cabbage than the rose—and
-sigh at the loss of such a treasure. Neither in suffering
-all this adoration did Mrs Dempster commit
-any very heinous sin; nay, being, as a good Calvinist,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[259]</span>
-a believer in the excellent doctrine (if acted
-up to) of “total depravity,” she was necessarily in
-the highway of salvation.</p>
-
-<p>Neither did Mrs Dempster think it necessary to
-conceal any of these doings from David. Nay, on one
-particular Wednesday, after the laird had had his
-fill of this will-worship, she brought the subject up
-in so particular a way to her husband, that we are
-thereby led to believe that they understood each
-other, and could act in concert. The occasion was
-the complaint of David that some of his other creditors
-were likely to be down upon him.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Dorothy, if they were a’ like Snoddy.”</p>
-
-<p>Not a very respectful way of alluding to no less
-a personage than the laird of Rubbledykes, let
-alone his kindness; but then David, being a debtor,
-did not respect himself, and nothing was ever more
-true than the saying, “That our own self-respect is
-the foundation of that respect which we pay to
-others.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they’re <i>no’</i> a’ like the laird,” replied Dorothy;
-“and what’s mair, David, my man, the laird
-winna be ane o’ your creditors lang either.”</p>
-
-<p>“What mean you, lass?” inquired David.</p>
-
-<p>“I just mean neither mair nor less than that
-Thomas Snoddy o’ Rubbledykes, wha should hae
-been my gudeman, is deein’ as fast as he can bicker;
-and that by and by I might have been my Leddy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[260]</span>
-Rubbledykes wi’ three hundred a year, and nae
-husband to trouble me.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s ill news,” continued David; “for if he
-dees, the debt will gae to his brother, a man who
-would raze the skin frae the mother’s face that bore
-him, if he could mak a leather purse out o’t. But
-what maks ye think he is deein’, lass?”</p>
-
-<p>“Deein’!” rejoined Dorothy, with an ill-timed, if
-not cruel laugh. “That cough o’ his would kill
-baith you and me in a year, even if we should only
-cough time about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ower true, I fear,” groaned David; “and then
-there’s a’ thae ither debts upon me. Hark, Dorothy,
-ye’re a clever dame; could ye no’ get the
-laird to discharge the debt?”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe I might, were I to kiss him, David,”
-was the answer, with another smile.</p>
-
-<p>“And what for no’?” asked this honest man, who
-raised his voice in the Tron every Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>“Because I am neither a Judith nor a Judas,”
-replied she.</p>
-
-<p>“But ye’re a Christian,” was the ready rejoinder;
-“and what’s mair, a Calvinist.”</p>
-
-<p>“As if a body could be a Christian without being
-a Calvinist,” said she. “But what do ye mean,
-David—are ye crazy? Why should I kiss another
-man because I’m a Calvinist?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nae sin, nae salvation,” said he.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[261]</span>Whereupon the worthy couple laughed at a tenet
-which, being liable to a double construction, has
-always been dangerous to the common people of
-Scotland. And what was worse, this laugh was
-only the prelude to a further conversation so deep
-and mysterious, and withal conducted in so low a
-train of whispers and re-whispers, that even our
-familiar, endowed as he is with the power of going
-through stone walls, could carry off no more
-than smiles and nods and winks, and more and
-more of the same kind of laughs. But as the son
-of Sirach says, “There is an exquisite subtlety, and
-the same is unjust;” and “Wrath will surely search
-it.” Nor was there in this case much time required
-for the retribution, for the very next day a man
-rushed into the house of Mrs Dempster with the
-intelligence on his tongue that David Dempster
-was drowned at Granton. The dreadful story was
-indeed corroborated into a certainty by a bundle of
-clothes which the messenger of evil tidings laid on
-the table, no other than the suit which David had
-put on that morning, including the linen shirt
-which Dorothy’s own fingers had adorned with the
-breast-ruffle, and identified with the beloved initials,
-D. D., more precious to her than the symbols
-of ecclesiastical honours. All were there as he had
-left them on the beach before the plunge which was
-to be unto death—yea, something after death, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[262]</span>
-more terrible, for had not David been a scoffer?
-If Mrs Dempster had at first been able to collect
-her scattered senses, she would have been satisfied
-even with the look of the clothes, for she had heard
-her husband say, with a blithe look, that he was to
-go to Granton to bathe, and she would, moreover,
-have had some minutes sooner the melancholy
-satisfaction that one so dear to her had not committed
-suicide.</p>
-
-<p>But the sudden impression left no room for consolations
-of any kind. Struggling nature could
-do no more than work itself out of one swoon to
-fall into another, and how long it was before she
-could listen to the inrushing neighbours with their
-news that he had been boated for, and dived for,
-and hooked for, and searched for, no record remains
-to tell. But that all these efforts had been
-made there was no doubt, and as the hours passed
-bringing as yet no assuagement of a grief which is
-only amenable to time, it came to be known that
-the coast had been examined all about the fatal
-spot with no return but the inevitable <i>non inventus</i>;
-nor did it require many days to satisfy the
-unfortunate widow that the catastrophe was of
-that complete kind where the remaining victim is
-not only deprived of a husband, but denied the
-poor consolation of seeing his dead body.</p>
-
-<p>Yet how true it is that the kingdom of Death is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[263]</span>
-in the land of forgetfulness, not only to the ghostly
-denizens who there dwell, but also to those who
-are left in this region of quick memories. Wherein
-surely there is a kindness in the cruelty; for
-assuredly there is no one who could suffer for a
-protracted period the intensity of the first onset of
-a grief of a privation which is to be for ever in this
-world and be able to live. And this kindliness of
-the fates was experienced by Mrs Dorothy Dempster,
-who, after a decent period, and amidst the consolations
-of friends, felt herself in a condition to
-be able to wait upon the creditors of her husband
-and get them to be contented with the small stock
-left by him, and give her acquittances of their
-debts; nay, so heartrending were her appeals, and
-so miserable she appeared in her weeds, that these
-good men even voted her a small sum out of the
-wreck as a beautiful tribute to pity and humanity.
-All which went for its value, so creditable as it
-is to human nature, and we need hardly add that
-the frequent reading of the encomium in the <i>Mercury</i>
-on the merits of the deceased—which, of
-course, proceeded on the inevitable rule that a
-man is only good provided he is dead—heaped
-up the consolation even to a species of melancholy
-pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>And, surely, if on this occasion there was any
-one <i>ipsis charitibus humanior</i>, it was Mr Thomas<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[264]</span>
-Snoddy, the good laird of Rubbledykes. Nor
-were his attentions merely empty-handed visits to
-the house of the widow, for he brought her money,
-often, after all, the chief of consolations. Of the
-manner in which that might be accepted he probably
-suspected there was nothing to be feared;
-but there was another gift he had in store, in regard
-to the acceptability of which he was not quite
-so sure—and that was his old love kindled up into
-a new flame—probably enough he had never heard
-or read the lines to the effect that—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“Cupid can his wings apply,</div>
-<div class="verse">To other uses than to fly;</div>
-<div class="verse">Serving as a handkerchief</div>
-<div class="verse">To dry the tears of widows’ grief.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>But, whether so or not, he resolved upon trying
-what he himself could do in that remedial way;
-and, accordingly, he began with a small dose, the
-success of which urged him to a repetition; and on
-he went from small quantities to greater, till he
-was overjoyed to find that the patient could bear
-any amount he was able to administer. Nor could
-it be said that the aforesaid cough made any
-abatement from the success of these efforts, if we
-might not rather surmise that it entered as an element
-in their recommendation—at least it indicated
-no hollowness in Rubbledykes.</p>
-
-<p>We all know that “the question” once meant<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[265]</span>
-<i>torture</i>. At the period of our story, and we hope
-not less in our day, it meant <i>rapture</i>; and it is
-not unlikely that Mrs Dempster on that market-day,
-when the laird sat by the side of the parlour
-fire in Lady Stair’s Close, enjoyed something of
-that kind when the words fell on her ear.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, my dear Dorothy—to come to the point
-in the lang-run—will ye hae me for your second
-husband, wha should hae been your first?”</p>
-
-<p>“I hae no objection,” replied Dorothy, as she
-held away her head and covered her eyes with her
-handkerchief; “<i>but</i>——”</p>
-
-<p>And Mrs Dempster stopped short, with an effect
-almost as great on the astonished suitor as that of
-the memorable answer given by a certain Mrs Jean
-of Clavershalee to another laird, whose property
-lay not far distant from Rubbledykes.</p>
-
-<p>“But!” ejaculated the laird, with an effort that
-brought an attack of his cough upon him. “You
-maun ‘but’ me nae ‘buts,’ Dorothy, unless ye
-want to kill me. I aye thought I had a better
-claim to you than David. Heaven rest his body
-in the deep waters o’ the Forth, and his soul in
-heaven!”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay,” continued she, as she applied the handkerchief
-again, as if this time to receive some tears
-which ought to have come and didn’t; “but that
-just puts me in mind o’ what I was going to say.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[266]</span>
-You have seen how David was ta’en awa. What
-if onything should happen to you? What would
-become o’ me? Rubbledykes would gae to your
-brother.”</p>
-
-<p>“The de’il a stane o’t, Dorothy,” cried the laird.
-“It will be a’ yours. I will mak it ower to you;
-tofts and crofts, outhouses and inhouses, muirs and
-mosses, pairts and pertinents. Will that please
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, will’t,” answered Dorothy from behind the
-handkerchief.</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon the laird took her in his arms with a
-view to kiss her; but there is many a slip not only
-between the cup and the lip, but between one lip
-and another; for no sooner had Thomas so prepared
-himself for, perhaps, the greatest occasion of
-his life—even that of kissing a woman, and that
-woman the very idol of his heart—than that dreadful
-cough came again upon him, and Dorothy
-could not help thinking that it was now more hollow,
-or, as the Scotch call it, <i>toom</i>, than ever she
-had heard it.</p>
-
-<p>“I will awa to Mr Ainslie and get the contract
-written out at length,” he said, to cover his disgrace.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was it sooner said than done. Away he
-went, leaving Dorothy virtually a bride, and the
-lady <i>in esse</i> of an estate, albeit a small one, yet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[267]</span>
-great to her. At all which she laughed a most
-enigmatical laugh, as if some secret thoughts had
-risen in her mind with the effect of a ridiculous
-incongruity; but what these thoughts were no one
-ever knew. Nor shall we try to imagine them,
-considering ourselves to be better employed in
-setting forth that shortly afterwards Mrs Dorothy
-Dempster was joined in the silken bands of holy
-wedlock with Thomas Snoddy, Esquire, of Rubbledykes,
-and that by the hands of Dr Webster
-of the Tron, who accompanied the happy couple in
-the evening to the gray-slated mansion-house,
-where he made another celebration of the event
-by draining a couple of bottles of good old claret.
-Strange enough all these things; but the real
-wonders of our story would seem only to begin
-with the settlement of Mr David Dempster’s
-widow in the mansion-house of the veritable laird;
-even though, consistently with the manners of the
-time, there was a duck-pond at the door, a peat-stack
-on the gable, and a midden gracing the byre
-not five yards from the parlour window; spite of
-all which Mrs Dorothy was a lady, while David
-lay with glazed eyes in the Forth among the fishes
-scarcely a mile distant from his enchanted widow.</p>
-
-<p>We think it a strange thing that mortals should
-laugh and weep by turns, yet we think sunshine
-and showers a very natural alternation; and surely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[268]</span>
-it is far more wonderful that we often weep when
-we should laugh, and laugh when we should weep—of
-which hypocrisy, notwithstanding, there is a
-hundred times more in the world than man or
-woman wots of. And we are sorry to be obliged
-to doubt the extent of the new-made lady’s grief
-when she saw the laird’s cough increasing as his
-love waxed stronger and his lungs grew less. Nay,
-we are not sure that when she saw that he was
-dying, and hailed the signs with grief in her eyes
-and joy in her heart, she was under the impression
-that she was acting up to the amiable tenet of her
-religious creed—total depravity. Be all which as
-it may, it is certain that though Dorothy’s tears
-had been of that real kind of which Tully says
-they are—“the easiest dried of all things,” they
-would not have retarded the progress of the laird’s
-disease. It was not yet three months, and he was
-confined to bed, with Dorothy hanging over him,
-watching him with all the care of a seeker for
-favourable symptoms. But one evening there was
-a symptom which she was unprepared for—nay,
-she was this time serious in her alarm.</p>
-
-<p>“I have done that which is evil in the sight o’
-God.”</p>
-
-<p>The words came as from a far-away place, they
-were so hollow.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Tammas?” asked she.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[269]</span>“I have seen David Dempster’s ghaist,” said he.
-“It looked in at that window, and disappeared in
-an instant; but no’ before I kent what the een
-said. Yea, Dorothy, they said as plainly as een
-can speak—‘Tammas Snoddy, ye made love to
-Dorothy Dempster when I was alive in the body,
-and her lawful husband.’”</p>
-
-<p>And the laird shook all over so violently that
-Dorothy could see the clothes move.</p>
-
-<p>“Just your conscience, Tammas,” said she. “Ye
-maun fley thae visions awa in the auld way. It is
-the deevil tempting ye. We maun flap the leaves
-o’ the Bible at him, and ye’ll see nae mair o’ him
-in this warld at any rate.”</p>
-
-<p>And Dorothy, taking up the holy book and
-opening it at the middle, flapt it with such energy
-that more dust came out of it than should have
-been found in a Calvinist’s Bible.</p>
-
-<p>“Ye’ll see nor hilt, nor hair, nor hoop, nor horn
-mair o’ him,” she added, with, we almost fear to
-surmise, a laugh.</p>
-
-<p>And Mrs Snoddy’s prophecy was of that kind—the
-safest of all—which comes after knowledge.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I will dee in peace,” said the relieved
-laird; “for I hae nae ither sin on my conscience.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nae sin, nae salvation,” added Dorothy.</p>
-
-<p>“A maist comfortable doctrine,” sighed the
-laird.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[270]</span>And comfortable, surely, it must have been to
-him, for two days afterwards the good laird slipt
-away out of this bad world as lightly and easily as
-if he had felt the burden of his sins as imponderous
-as the flying dove does the white feathers on
-its back. Nor did many more days elapse before
-the mortal remains of the good man were deposited
-in the churchyard of Cramond, leaving the double
-widow with her contract of marriage and her tears
-for a second husband lying in the earth so near
-the first, deep in the bosom of the Forth. But,
-sooner or later, there comes comfort of some kind
-to these amiable creatures in distress, especially if
-they are possessed of those cabalistic things called
-marriage contracts. We do not say that that comfort
-comes always from the grave in the shape of a
-veritable ghost, but sure it is that if we could in
-any case fancy a spirit visiting the earth for any
-rational purpose, it would be where a comely
-widow was ready to receive it, and warm its cold
-hands, and wrap the winding-sheet well round it,
-and treat it kindly. All which we may leave for
-suggestion and meditation, but we demand conviction,
-and assent, as we proceed, to set forth that
-the very next evening after the funeral of Laird
-Tammas, the ghaist of David Dempster, despising
-all secret openings, and even giving up the privilege
-of keyholes, went straight into the house of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[271]</span>
-Rubbledykes, and entered the room where Dorothy
-was sitting. Extraordinary enough, no doubt;
-but not even so much so as the fact we are about
-to relate—viz., that Mrs Dorothy was no more
-astonished at its appearance before her than she
-had been when she heard the laird say that he saw
-the face of that same spirit at the window; nor did
-she on this occasion have recourse to the Bible as
-an exorcist, by flapping the leaves of the same, to
-terrify it away, in the supposition that it was the
-devil in disguise. It is very true that she held up
-her hands, but then that was only a prelude to the
-arms being employed in clasping the appearance
-to her breast; an embrace which was responded
-to with a fervour little to be expected from one of
-these flimsy creatures. Nay, things waxed even
-more enigmatical and ridiculous, for the two actually
-kissed each other—a fact which ought to be
-treasured up as a psychological curiosity of some
-use, insomuch as it may diminish the fear we so
-irrationally feel at the expected visit of supernatural
-beings. But worse and more ridiculous
-still—</p>
-
-<p>“When had you anything to eat Davie? Ye’ll
-be hungry.”</p>
-
-<p>“No’ unlikely, Dorothy lass,” answered the
-wraith; “for I didna like the cauld fish, and
-there’s nae cooking apparatus in the Forth.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[272]</span>“Ye would maybe tak a whang o’ the round o’
-beef we had at the laird’s funeral yesterday?”</p>
-
-<p>“The very thing, woman,” answered the ghaist;
-“and if ye have a bottle o’ brandy to wash it
-down, it will tak awa the cauld o’ the saut water.”</p>
-
-<p>“Twa, an ye like, lad,” responded the apparently
-delighted widow, as she ran away to set
-before the visitor the edible and drinkable comforts
-which had been declared so acceptable.</p>
-
-<p>And you may believe or reject the whisperings
-of our familiar just as you please, but we have all
-the justification of absolute veritability for the fact
-that this extraordinary guest, or ghaist, if you so
-please, sat down before the said round of beef,
-brandishing a knife in the one hand and a fork in
-the other, and looking so heartily purposed to attack
-the same, that you might have augured it
-had not had a chop since that forenoon when in
-the embodied state it went down to cool and wash
-itself in the sea at Granton. Nor need we be more
-squeamish than we have been in declaring at once
-that it did so much justice to the meat and the
-drink, that you might have thought it had been
-fed for months on Hecate’s short-commons in
-Hades. And then a text so ample and substantial
-could surely bear a running commentary.</p>
-
-<p>“It would have been o’ nae use, Dorothy. If
-ye hadna been as gude a prophetess as Deborah,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[273]</span>
-I might hae been obliged to conceal myself in
-England lang enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“It didna need a Deborah, David,” answered she,
-“to see that nae human body could stand that
-cough mair than a month or two. Ye hadna lang
-to wait, man; and though ye had had langer, <i>there</i>,
-see, was your comfort at the end.”</p>
-
-<p>And Dorothy put into the ghaist’s hand the
-marriage contract—a worldly thing which seemed
-to vie with the junket of beef in its influence over
-mere spirit, insomuch as he perused the same by
-snatches between the bites and draughts, both processes
-going on almost simultaneously—the eye
-fixed on the paper, while a protruding lump in the
-cheek was in the act of being diminished.</p>
-
-<p>“A’ right, lass,” was at length the exclamation.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay; but ye maun be gude to me now, Davie,”
-said she; “for ye see it’s a’ in my ain power:
-Rubbledykes is mine, and I hae wrought for’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“And so hae I,” ejaculated the other. “You
-forget my banishment and difficulty of living, for
-I took scarcely any siller wi’ me; and, mairower,
-how am I to face the people o’ E’nbro’?”</p>
-
-<p>“And the gude Calvinists o’ the Tron?” added
-the wife.</p>
-
-<p>Notwithstanding which difficulties the visitor
-contrived to make a hearty meal; nor was he
-contented with the brandy taken during the time<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[274]</span>
-of eating, for with all their spiritual tenderness,
-there was a crave for toddy—a request which
-was complied with by the introduction of warm
-water and sugar. How often the tumbler was
-tumbled up to pour the last drops, which defied
-the silver toddy-ladle in the glass, we are not
-authorised to say; but we have authority for the
-assertion that any man of flesh and blood could
-not have perpetrated that number of tumblings
-without changing almost his nature—that is, being
-so far spiritualised as to be entitled to say, in the
-words of the old song by Pinkerton—</p>
-
-<p class="center">“Death, begone—here’s none but souls.”</p>
-
-<p>And therefore the spiritual nature of David Dempster,
-in his new part, was not so wonderful after all.
-But the doubt recurs again, as we proceed to say
-that Mrs Dorothy Snoddy helped her visitor to
-bed, nay, she actually went very blithely into that
-same bed herself, where they both slumbered very
-comfortably till next morning.</p>
-
-<p>We may add that these same doubts were liable
-to be dispelled by another fact we have to relate.
-The visitor, it will be remembered, put the question
-to Dorothy, “How was he to meet the people of
-Edinburgh?” a question which implied a mortal
-presence, besides no prescience. We say this last
-deliberately, because in place of the fear of meeting
-being on his side, it was altogether on theirs.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[275]</span>
-It happened that, two days after the occurrences
-we have described, an object bearing the figure
-of David Dempster was seen on the Cramond
-road by a carrier called Samuel Finlayson, who
-had had transactions with the dealer in corduroys—an
-occasion which had the inevitable effect of
-raising Samuel’s bonnet along with the standing
-hair, besides that of inducing him to whip his horse
-to force the animal on, just in the way of another
-animal of cognate species under similar circumstances.
-He, of course, took the story of a ghaist,
-all cut and dry, into the city. On the same day,
-Andrew Gilfillan saw the same figure on Corstorphine
-Hill, and flew past the seat marked “Rest
-and be thankful,” without even looking at it. He,
-too, carried the same tidings. George Plenderleith
-encountered the identical object in the village of
-Corstorphine busy eating Corstorphine cream—that
-is, cream mixed with oatmeal, (a finer kind of
-crowdy,) and he hastened to Edinburgh with a
-speed only to be accounted for by terror. He, too,
-told his tale; the effect of all which, added to and
-inflamed by other reports, was, that Edinburgh
-was stirred from the Castle gate to the Palace yett,
-by the conviction that David Dempster had returned
-from the kingdom of death to this world of
-life for some purpose which would most certainly
-come out; but, in due time, whether with or without<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[276]</span>
-a purpose, here it was proved that ghosts were
-no dream, and David Hume no philosopher. Many
-people sought the Cramond road, and hung about
-Rubbledykes to get their scepticism or dogmatism
-confirmed. The end of these things is pretty
-uniform—<i>res locuta est</i>; the people began to see
-where the truth lay, and the laughter came in due
-course, to revive the hearts that had been chilled
-by fear.</p>
-
-<p>We would be sorry if we were necessitated to
-end our story at the very nick of the triumph of
-vice. Happily, we have something more to say—nothing
-less, indeed, than that James Snoddy, the
-brother of the laird, raised a process—that is, instituted
-a suit before the Court of Session, to have
-his brother’s contract of marriage with Mrs Dorothy
-Dempster annulled and set aside, upon the
-grounds of deception, circumvention, and <i>prava
-causa</i>; nor had he any trouble in getting a decree,
-for David and his wife made no appearance, neither
-could they make any appearance in Edinburgh.
-Their only resource was to take advantage of that
-kind of bail called “leg;” an easy affair, insomuch
-as there is no bond required for appearance anywhere.
-It was at the time supposed that they had
-gone to America, that asylum of unfortunates,
-where one-half of the people cut the throats of the
-other in the name of liberty.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[277]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_115.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Gorthley Twins.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_i.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT was the custom at one time in Edinburgh
-for the proprietors of large self-contained
-houses to give them the names of the
-properties they had in the country—hence our
-Panmure House, Tweeddale Court, and so forth—and
-among them there was Gorthley House, of
-which no vestige now remains; nay, we are by no
-means sure where it was situated, beyond the fact
-that it was somewhere in the Canongate, but gone
-as it is according to the law of change, its name
-will always be associated with the law-plea Bruce
-<i>versus</i> Bruce, which contained the germ of the little
-romance we are now to relate in our way. And to
-begin in order, we take the state of matters at the
-time when the plea began. John Bruce of Gorthley
-had died, and left a widow and three daughters,
-two of whom were twins, and the third was the
-youngest. The names of the twins were Sarah
-and Martha, who at this time were two fine girls
-verging upon majority, and as like each other as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[278]</span>
-two white peas; and surely if we might expect,
-in this world of strife and contention, that there
-should be found real love and friendship anywhere,
-it might be in the case of two sisters who had lain
-so close together for nine months, and who had
-drunk their milk at the same kindly fountain of a
-doating mother’s breast. But so full is the moral
-atmosphere of our fallen world of the spores of
-hatred, that you may as well try to keep a cheese
-from the seeds of green mould as the human heart
-from the germs of ill-will. And so it was that
-these two young ladies hated each other very
-heartily, for a reason which we will by and by
-reveal, to the astonishment of the reader; and this
-hatred was the counterpart of a contention that
-had embittered the lives of the father and mother,
-even up to the time of the former’s death.</p>
-
-<p>All which will be better explained by following
-the course of events after the death of Mr Bruce,
-beginning with a visit on the part of Lady Gorthley—as
-she was called according to the custom of the
-time, when titles were held in such regard that the
-common people even forged them for the great—along
-with her favourite daughter, Martha, to the
-office of Mr James Pollock, the agent for the
-family. That her ladyship was bent upon some
-enterprise of considerable moment might have
-been guessed from the look of her face, which had<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[279]</span>
-that mysterious air about it belonging to secrecy,
-nor less from that of the daughter; and no one
-could have doubted that, whatever they were bent
-upon, the other twin, Sarah, was not to be let up
-to the secret. Perhaps the time of the visit to the
-writer was opportune, insomuch as Sarah had gone,
-as she had said, with her cousin, George Walkinshaw,
-advocate, to take a stroll by the back of St
-Leonard’s as far as “the Cat Nick,” and come
-home by the Hunter’s Bog; which couple, we may
-also say, had their secret too, in addition to their
-love affair, if that secret was not connected with
-the very same subject we have referred to as that
-which divided the family. Be all that as it might,
-we are going right along with the facts of the plea
-when we set forth that in a very short time Lady
-Gorthley and Martha were seated each on a chair
-in the writing office of the said agent, Mr Pollock,
-and the very first words that came out of her ladyship’s
-mouth were these—</p>
-
-<p>“Has Sarah or her cousin called upon you since
-the death of Gorthley?” by which she meant,
-according to the custom of the time, her own husband.</p>
-
-<p>“They are even at this moment in the other
-room, madam,” said he, with a lawyer’s smile on
-his face.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed,” said her ladyship, with an expression<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[280]</span>
-of both surprise and anger. “Why, she told me
-an hour ago that she was going to take a walk by
-the ‘Cat Nick.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And so she has,” added the writer, still smiling,
-“for my door may not be inappropriately so
-called in the circumstances?”</p>
-
-<p>“Only, I presume,” said the lady, “I am not, I
-hope, to be included among the cats. I will wait
-until you have learned what the impertinent girl
-has got to say, and then you will have time to hear
-me and Martha.”</p>
-
-<p>“I already know that,” said he; “but, as I believe
-our conversation is about finished, I will
-despatch them in a few seconds, and then return
-to hear your ladyship’s commands.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you will say nothing of our being here.”</p>
-
-<p>“The never a word, madam,” said he, adding to
-himself as he went away, “I don’t want a battle of
-the cats in my office at least; they do best when
-they put the cheese into the hands of the ——,”
-and he did not add the word monkey, insomuch as
-it looked personal.</p>
-
-<p>“There, you see, Martha, the gipsy is determined
-to stand by her rights,” was the remark of her
-ladyship after Mr Pollock had left the room.</p>
-
-<p>“But we’ll beat her off, mother,” rejoined
-Martha, with a spirit which Mr Pollock or any
-other lawyer might have admired; “and,” continued<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[281]</span>
-Martha, with a smile, “we will say nothing
-about the <i>strawberry</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing, dear,” rejoined the mother; “that
-strawberry is worth all the lands of Gorthley.”</p>
-
-<p>Of which enigmatical strawberry they said no
-more; but that is no reason why we should not
-say something of it when the proper time comes,
-of which, by the rules of our art, we are the best
-judges. Meanwhile Mr Pollock, having despatched
-the other feline, returned.</p>
-
-<p>“And now, madam,” said he, as he took his
-seat, “I am ready to hear you.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know, Mr Pollock,” resumed her ladyship,
-“that the entail of Gorthley provides that the property
-shall go to the eldest heir female in the event
-of there being no heir male.”</p>
-
-<p>“We all know that, madam,” said the writer;
-“and if we had any doubt of it a certain paper
-in that green box there would very soon clear up
-our vision. But the question is, which of the two
-young ladies, Sarah or Martha, first saw the light
-of day?”</p>
-
-<p>“No question at all,” rejoined the lady. “Martha
-was the first-born.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, madam, I know, and knew before, that
-that is your opinion; but you are perhaps not
-aware that Gorthley himself told me, some time
-before he died, that Sarah was the first-born; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[282]</span>
-so we have here, so far as the testimony goes, one
-witness against another.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what knew he about it?” retorted she,
-sharply. “He was not present at the birth to see;
-while I fancy you won’t deny I was.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereupon Mr Pollock, getting into the mistake
-that her ladyship was drolling, and being a droll
-himself, said, laughing, “Why, madam, no man
-could deny the necessity of your being present
-any more than in the case of Girzel Jamphrey,
-who said to the people who were pressing on to
-see her burnt as a witch on the sands at Dundee,
-‘You needna be in sic a hurry; there will be nae
-sport till I come.’”</p>
-
-<p>Whereat Lady Gorthley tightened the strings
-she had allowed to get loose.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s not a matter to joke about, sir,” she said.
-“Though I am not a witch, I say, and will maintain,
-that I am a better witness to the fact of which
-of the twins was born first than Gorthley could
-possibly be.”</p>
-
-<p>“Still, madam,” continued the writer, “I fear it
-is only a comparison between the value of two
-ciphers; the one may look bigger than the other,
-but each is equal to nothing. It is true that we
-men don’t know much of these things, yet—I beg
-pardon, the subject is a little delicate—we know
-that when a lady bears twins she doesn’t take the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[283]</span>
-first and mark it before she bears the second; and
-then if she doesn’t mark it in the very nick of time,
-it’s of no use, because the two babies get mixed in
-the bath, as an Irishman would say, and their
-being so like as one strawberry to another, no one
-can say that the one is not the other, or the other
-not the one.”</p>
-
-<p>At which mention of the word strawberry, Lady
-Gorthley looked to Martha, and Martha looked to
-her, and they seemed puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“But however all that may be,” continued the
-lady, “what can you say to the evidence of Peggy
-Macintosh, the nurse, who will swear that Martha
-came first into the world?”</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot answer that question,” said he, with
-the caution of his profession, “until I see Mrs
-Macintosh and examine her. There is also Jean
-Gilchrist, one of the servants, who was present, I
-have her to examine also, and then we will see
-where the truth lies. Oh! but I forgot there is
-Mrs Glennie, the midwife, the woman whose word
-will go farthest, because she had a better <i>causa
-scientiæ</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know nothing about Latin,” rejoined her
-ladyship angrily; “but as for Mrs Glennie, she’s
-dead years ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, indeed,” said Mr Pollock, “if that is true
-we will have only the nurse and the servant for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[284]</span>
-witnesses, and if they oppose each other, the one
-for Sarah and the other for Martha, and as it is
-true that you always treated Martha as the eldest,
-and Gorthley always insisted on Sarah as being
-the first-born, we will have an undecidable case, a
-thing that never occurred in Scotland before, perhaps
-not in the world, for you know Solomon
-would not allow any impossibility in deciding the
-case of the baby with the two mothers. But,
-madam, allow me to say, that as your husband,
-Mr Bruce, left directions that I, as agent for the
-family, should get Sarah served heir, and as you
-insist upon that being done for Martha, it will be
-necessary that you employ a man of business of
-your own, so that we may fight the battle fair out.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said the lady with an expression of
-bitterness in her face not much in harmony with
-her words, “since Gorthley has left the continuance
-of the strife as a legacy to his widow and children,
-I shall go to Mr Bayne as my agent, and authorise
-him to protect the rights of Martha, and fight it to
-the bitter end—bitter, I mean, for Sarah Bruce,
-who will never be Lady Gorthley.”</p>
-
-<p>And with these words she left, accompanied by
-Martha, directing their steps to the office of Mr
-Bayne, who, as her ladyship’s private agent, knew
-very well of this most strange contention which
-had so long been maintained in Gorthley House.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[285]</span>
-Nor, probably, was he displeased at it, any more
-than Mr Pollock had been. Gorthley estate was a
-large cheese, the cats were fierce, and there was
-plenty for even two monkeys, so he listened attentively
-to her ladyship’s statement that the nurse,
-Mrs Macintosh, would swear in favour of Martha,
-but she said never a word about Jean Gilchrist.</p>
-
-<p>“The nurse’s evidence will go a great way,
-madam,” said he, “seeing the midwife is dead; but
-it will be satisfactory if Mrs Macintosh could condescend
-upon some mark which she noticed immediately
-at the time of the birth, for the two young
-ladies are really so like each other now I often
-confound them, nay, they confound me so that we
-cannot very well imagine how they could be distinguished
-when brought together soon after birth.”</p>
-
-<p>“Look here, Mr Bayne,” said the lady in a
-whispering way, as if she were to reveal something
-wonderously mysterious, “look here, sir,”—</p>
-
-<p>And taking off Martha’s cloak and turning up
-the kerchief that covered her neck and the top of
-her shoulders, she said, “Do you see that?”</p>
-
-<p>The writer complied by a pretty narrow inspection
-of a very pretty neck of (a strawberry being
-in question) the appropriate colour of cream.</p>
-
-<p>“A very decided mark of a strawberry,” said he;
-“and, really if it were a proof that Martha has the
-right to succeed to Gorthley, it might be said to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[286]</span>
-the most beautiful beauty spot that a young lady
-could bear. How comes that mark to be there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why,” replied the lady, “Gorthley threw a
-strawberry at me when I was in the way, you
-know, and thus made a mother’s mark, as they call
-it, just as if he had intended to point out the true
-heir; and you know the Scotch say that these
-marks are lucky.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you forget, madam,” replied the man of
-the law, who did not believe in special providences,
-except in special cases, when he received payment
-of his accounts. “You forget that Gorthley was
-against Martha, so that if he had had any intention
-in the matter, it must rather have been to
-make a blot; besides, our judges might probably
-say that the mark, for aught they knew, was intended
-to show that Martha was not the heir; in
-short, unless we can identify the mark as having
-been seen on the first-born, I fear, though it is very
-pretty, it will do us no good.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Mrs Macintosh can do that,” replied the
-lady.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! you have hit the mark now,” said he;
-“and I will see Mrs Macintosh, and any other
-witnesses who can speak to the point.”</p>
-
-<p>And so having, after some more conversation,
-despatched his two clients, Mr Bayne proceeded
-that same evening to the residence of Mrs Peggy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[287]</span>
-Macintosh, whom he found very busy spinning,
-little prepared for a visit from a man of the law,
-with a powdered wig on his head, and a gold-headed
-cane in his hand,—an apparition which
-even the wheel could not resist, for it stopt its birr
-instantly, as if through fear.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs Macintosh,” said Mr Bayne, as he took
-a seat alongside of Peggy, “do you remember
-having been present at the birth of Mrs Bruce’s
-twins?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, sir, and I was,” answered she, “and a
-gey birth it was.”</p>
-
-<p>“And could you tell which was which when the
-infants were born?”</p>
-
-<p>“Weel, sir,” answered Peggy, “if you will tell
-me which is the which you mean, I’ll try to satisfy
-ye if I can?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, I mean, which was Sarah and which
-Martha?” continued the writer.</p>
-
-<p>“How could I tell ye that, sir,” answered Peggy,
-with a look of true Scotch complacency, “when
-the bairns werena christened?”</p>
-
-<p>The writer, acute as he was, was a little put out,
-but he rallied.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Peggy, you surely understand what I
-mean; did you not know the child which was
-afterwards called Sarah from that which was afterwards
-called Martha?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[288]</span>“I would have liked to have seen you try that,
-sir,” was again the answer. “How the deil—I beg
-pardon, sir—was I to ken what they were to be
-ca’ed when their names werena even fixed by the
-father and mother themselves?”</p>
-
-<p>“I see you don’t understand me, Mrs Macintosh,”
-continued Mr Bayne, who had got a Scotch
-witness on his line.</p>
-
-<p>“I think it’s you that doesna understand me,”
-retorted Peggy.</p>
-
-<p>“Look here,” continued Mr Bayne, smiling,
-“you know Sarah Bruce and Martha Bruce?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, when they’re thegither,” replied Peggy,
-“and they tell me their names; but just put them
-an ell or twa asinder, and I’ll defy the horned
-Clootie himsel to say which is which.”</p>
-
-<p>“Worse and worse,” muttered the writer. “Look
-you, Peggy, was there no mark on either of the
-children by which you could know it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay was there,” replied the woman; “but we’re
-just where we were; for, whether the strawberry
-was upon the ane or the ither, or the ither or the
-ane, is just what I want you, since you’re a man o’
-the law, and weel skilled in kittle points, to tell
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Worse even yet,” muttered the discomfited
-precognoscer.</p>
-
-<p>“But I can mak the thing as plain as the Shorter<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">[289]</span>
-Catechism,” continued she, with a sharp look,
-which revived the sinking hopes of Mr Bayne.
-“Mrs Glennie that night was in a terrible fluster,
-for she began to see that there was likely to be
-mair bairns than she bargained for—twins, if no
-may be trins; so Jean Gilchrist was brought up to
-help in addition to mysel. Then the first are
-cam’ in a hurry, the mair by token it kenned naething
-o’ the warld it was coming into, and Mrs
-Glennie pushed it into my hands. ‘There will be
-anither, Peggy,’ said she, ‘and look gleg;’ but
-there was only flannel for ane; and I gave the
-wean to Jean to wash, while I ran to get happins.
-I was back in less than five minutes; and, just as
-I was entering, ‘Here’s the other ane,’ said Mrs
-Glennie. I took it frae her, and gave it to Jean,
-and took frae her the ane she had washed, in order
-to wrap it, and so I did; but before I was dune I
-saw Jean wasna doing the thing as she ought; so
-I gave her the ane I had, and I took hers to wash
-it better; but before it was dune Mrs Glennie cried
-to me to come to help her with the lady; so I put
-my bairn into Jean’s arms alang side o’ the ither;
-and when I had finished with the lady I took the
-last ane frae Jean again; but before I had completed
-the dressing o’t Jean cried out, ‘This bairn
-is deein’.’ ‘You’re a fule,’ said I, ‘give it to me;’
-and so she did. Then I ran and got some cordial,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">[290]</span>
-and poured it down the throat o’ the creature. By
-this time Jean had hers upon the settee, and I laid
-mine alang side o’t; but in a little time the mither
-was crying to see the weans; and Mrs Glennie
-took the ane, and I took the ither, and showed her
-them. Then Mrs Glennie took mine away to lay
-it down on the settee again; and I took hers and
-laid it down by the side o’ its sister. That’s how
-it was, sir, and sure I am naething can be plainer.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what about the strawberry?” said Mr
-Bayne.</p>
-
-<p>“Nane o’ us saw that till the bairns began to
-be mixed,” was the answer; “and then they were
-changed, and changed again sae aften that my
-head ran round, and I lost a’ count.”</p>
-
-<p>“But haven’t you said to Lady Gorthley that
-the mark was on the first-born?” asked Mr
-Bayne.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, and I did that same,” was the ready
-answer. “My lady gave me five gowden guineas
-to tell her; and, as I couldna be sure, I thought I
-couldna do better than to make safe and sure wark
-o’t; so I took five shillings out o’ the five guineas
-and gave it to the Carlin o’ the Cowgate, a wise
-woman, frae the very native place o’ thae far-seeing
-creatures, Auldearn, Auld Eppie, as they ca’
-her, (they were all Eppies,) and she settled the
-thing in the trice o’ a cantrup; so you see the fact<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">[291]</span>
-is sure that the strawberry belanged to the first-born.”</p>
-
-<p>“And did you tell Lady Gorthley you went to
-Eppie?” inquired the discomfited writer.</p>
-
-<p>“Gude faith na, she might hae asked back the
-five guineas,” answered Peggy; “and besides, if
-she got the truth, it was a’ ane to her, ye ken,
-where it cam’ frae; and you’ll be discreet and say
-naething.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you ask from the old woman the name of
-her who bore the mark?” rejoined Mr Bayne.</p>
-
-<p>“Ay, but she said she didna like to spier that at
-the auld ane—Nick, ye ken—because he might
-have got angry and told her a lee, and that might
-hae brought me into a scrape wi’ her ladyship,
-who knew hersel which o’ her daughters bore the
-mark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very prudent,” muttered again the writer, as
-he rose, “this is a most satisfactory witness.”</p>
-
-<p>And carrying this satisfaction along with him,
-he proceeded to the small garret occupied by Jean
-Gilchrist, the direction to which he had got from
-Mrs Macintosh. Believing as he did the statement
-made to him by the latter, he had very little hope
-of getting anything satisfactory out of his present
-witness, and wishing to keep her more to the point
-than he had been able to effect in the prior case,
-he assumed her presence at the birth, and came<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">[292]</span>
-straight out with the question, whether she knew
-if there had been noticed on one of the children
-the mark of the strawberry.</p>
-
-<p>“The strawberry?” said she, “ay, wi’ a’ wondered
-at that, but then it’s no uncommon things
-in weans to be marked in that way, so we sune got
-ower’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“And was this mark on the child which was
-first born?” inquired he.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you that, sir,” replied she, “if ye’ll tell
-me first which o’ the twa cam’ first into the world.”</p>
-
-<p>Whereby Mr Bayne found himself where he was,
-in the hands of a Scotch metaphysician, for, was
-there not here an example of the <i>à priori</i> argument,
-to use the old jargon, wherein the cause is assumed
-to prove the effect, and the effect is then brought
-forward to prove the cause—a trick of wisdom we
-are yet in the nineteenth century playing every
-day?</p>
-
-<p>“That is just what I want to know, Jean,” said
-he.</p>
-
-<p>“And it’s just what I want to ken, too,” rejoined
-Jean, “for to tell you God’s truth, sir,” she continued
-in a lower tone, “I hae something on my
-conscience, and yet it’s no muckle either.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what is that?” said he, expecting to get
-at something on which he could rely, whatever it
-might be.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">[293]</span>“Just this,” answered Jean. “Years agane,
-Gorthley came to me, and said, ‘Jean Gilchrist,
-here is something for you,’ and I took it—it was a
-purse o’ gowd,—and then he said, ‘I would die
-happy, Jean, if I could think that Martha Bruce,
-who bears the mark, was the second born of my
-daughters;’ and, looking at the purse, said I,
-‘Weel, sir, if that will mak ye happy, ye may be
-happy, for it was even so.’ Then said he, ‘Will
-you stand to that, Jean?’ And I said, ‘Ay, will
-I, through thick and thin;’ and when he went
-away, I began to consider if I had dune wrang,
-but I couldna see it, for doesna the Bible say, that
-man and wife are ane flesh? and if that be true,
-how could their children be separate flesh? Weel
-then, whichever o’ the twa, the first or the second
-born, carried the mark, they baith being ane flesh,
-behoved to bear it, and so, if the ane bore it the
-other bore it, and if the other bore it the ane bore
-it. Besides, wha doesna ken that twins are just ae
-bairn cut in twa? They’re aye less than the single
-bairns, and isna a double-yokit egg just twa eggs
-joined thegither into ane.”</p>
-
-<p>A kind of logic common at the time, and which,
-indeed, touched upon the most obscure question
-of metaphysics, and not very satisfactory to Mr
-Bayne, who, however, knew the subtle character
-of the Scotch mind too well to try a fall with so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">[294]</span>
-acute a dialectician. So, altogether disappointed
-with his precognition he left and came away, meeting
-in the passage Mr Pollock, who had been with
-Mrs Macintosh, and was now on his way to Jean
-Gilchrist. They were very intimate, and did not
-hesitate to compare notes, the result of which was
-that the case was to realise once more the truth of
-the toast generally drunk by Edinburgh practitioners
-at the end of the session, “The glorious uncertainty;”
-and if Mr Pollock thought so before he
-examined Jean Gilchrist, his opinion must have
-been pretty well confirmed by what she said. The
-case, in short, was not one in which there is conflicting
-evidence, and where the judges can make
-out the weight by a hair of prejudice; it was a
-case in which there was no evidence at all as to
-which of the girls was the heir; but, then, it was
-just on account of this equipoise that the two
-claimants, Martha, helped by her mother on the
-one side, and Sarah, supported by her lover,
-Walkinshaw, on the other, waxed the more bitter;
-and the contention which had so long raged in
-Gorthley House became hotter and hotter. Nor
-need we fancy that the writers would try to get
-the right compromised in some way, where they
-had so good a chance of making a money certainty
-out of a moral uncertainty; and so the case went
-into court under two competing briefs, that is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">[295]</span>
-just two claims by the daughters, each insisting to
-be served heir. The witnesses, whose precognitions
-we have given, were examined; and a great
-number of servants who had been in the family,
-who swore that Gorthley himself always called
-Sarah Miss Bruce, and Mrs Bruce always called
-Martha by that dignified title, so that the servants
-tried to please both master and mistress by calling
-the one daughter or the other miss, just according
-to the chance of being overheard by the heads of
-the house. When before the sheriff, and when
-the claims were equally suspended, a strange plea
-was set up by Sarah’s counsel, Mr Fotheringham, to
-the effect that, taking the question of priority of
-birth to be doubtful, the doubt could be resolved
-by a kind of <i>nobile officium</i> on the part of the father
-as the head of the house, and that as Gorthley had
-declared for Sarah this should be held as sufficient;
-but Mr Maitland answered this by saying that the
-question being one of fact, and that fact coming
-more within the presumed knowledge of the mother,
-ought to be settled by the voice of the mother, who
-declared for Martha; and here again the argument
-being nearly equal, the judge on the inquest was
-nonplussed. And thus it came to pass that the
-old irony of the ancients, directed against a sow
-coming in place of Minerva as a judge of some
-very fine matter of truth, turned out to be in this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">[296]</span>
-case no irony at all, for the sow was here as good
-a judge as Minerva. The scales were so nearly
-balanced that the mere breath which conveyed the
-doubt might disperse the doubt by moving one of
-the scales—a very fine irony in itself, in so much
-as all truth may be resolved, in the far end, into
-the mere breath of man’s opinion. At length the
-sheriff gave the cast of the scale to the side of the
-mother, as the “<i>domestic witness</i>.”</p>
-
-<p>But Sarah was, of course, dissatisfied; or, rather,
-Fotheringham, who advised her to take the case before
-the Fifteen, by what is called an Advocation,
-and so to be sure these lords got a burden thrown
-upon them which cost them no little trouble. They
-got the case argued and argued, and were in the
-end so mystified, that if they could have decided
-that the question was undecidable, they would
-have been very glad to have hung it up among the
-eternal dubieties as an everlasting proof of “the
-glorious uncertainty;” but they could not agree
-even to do that, for the entail could not be compromised
-or set aside, and so they behoved to
-decide one way or another. Meanwhile, the case
-having made a noise, a great number of people
-were collected in court on the day when the judgment
-was to be finally given. And given it was
-so far, for seven judges were for Sarah, and seven
-for Martha, so it came to the president, who said,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">[297]</span>
-“I have read of a case somewhere in which the
-judges drew cuts, and decided by the Goddess
-Chance in place of justice; and, indeed, if the latter
-is blind, as they say she is, we may take the
-one as well as the other as the umpire of the right
-or the wrong. But there is one consideration
-which moves me in this case, and that is, that as
-it is the wife’s duty to bear the children of the
-family, so it is her privilege to know more about
-that interesting affair than the husband, who is, as
-I understand, never present at the mysteries of
-Lucina, and, therefore, I would be inclined to declare
-that Martha was the first-born.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a lee, my lord,” cried a shrill screaming
-voice from the court. Whereat the judges directed
-their eyes with much amazement to the place
-whence the scream came.</p>
-
-<p>“And who are you,” said the president, “who
-dare to speak in a court of justice?”</p>
-
-<p>“I deny it’s a court o’ justice,” cried the voice
-again. “My name is Janet Glennie, and it was
-me that had the first handlin’ o’ the bairns, and I
-tell your lordship to your face, that you’re clean
-wrang, and ken nae mair about the case than
-Jenkins did about the colour o’ the great grandmother
-o’ his hen. I tell ye it was Sarah wha
-came first, and Martha wi’ her strawberry came
-second, for I saw the mark wi’ my ain een.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">[298]</span>A speech followed by the inevitable laugh of a
-curious audience, and the better received that the
-people had always a satirical feeling against the
-fifteen wise wigs. Nor was this late testimony too
-late: Mrs Glennie was subsequently sworn, and the
-judgment went for Sarah. It turned out that Mrs
-Glennie had been absent for a time from Scotland,
-and, having, upon visiting Edinburgh, heard of the
-famous trial, made it a point to be present. Nay,
-there was a little retribution in the affair, for Lady
-Gorthley knew she was alive, and had reported her
-death to serve her own ends.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_176.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">[299]</span>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_299.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><span class="antiqua">The Story of the Chalk Line.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <img class="drop-cap" src="images/dropcap_f.jpg" width="75" height="75" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">FOR the truth of the story I am now to relate
-I have the word of a godly minister
-of the Church of Scotland, whose father
-had been in the house in Burnet’s Close, and had
-seen the two females and examined “the chalk
-line” in the middle of the floor. I do not say this
-to conciliate your belief; for perhaps if this were
-my object, I should be nearer the attainment of it
-by asserting, as Mr Thackeray used to do when he
-wanted his readers to believe him, that there is not
-a word of truth in the whole affair. There is a
-certain species of fish in the Ganges which is
-never happy but when it is pushing up against the
-stream; and people, as civilisation goes on, find
-themselves so often cheated, that they go by contraries,
-just as the old sorcerers divined by reading
-backwards. But surely in this age of subtleties it
-is a pleasant thing to think that you are so much
-the object of an author’s care as that he would not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">[300]</span>
-only save you from thinking, but think for you;
-and so I proceed to tell you of the personages in
-Burnet’s Close, leading from the High Street to
-the Cowgate.</p>
-
-<p>In a room of the second flat of the third tall
-tenement on your left hand as you descend lived
-Martha and Mary Jopp. They were, so far as I
-have been able to discover, the daughters of a
-writer of the name of Peter Jopp. You cannot
-be wrong in supposing that they had been once
-young, though, in regard to the aged, this is not
-always conceded by those who are buoyant with
-the spirit of youth. Yes, these aged maidens had
-not only been once young, they had been very fair
-and very comely. They had passed through the
-spring and summer flowers without treading upon
-the speckled serpent of the same colour. They
-had heard the song of love where there was no risk
-of the deceptions of the siren. They had been
-tempted; but they had resisted the temptation of
-some who could well have returned their affection.
-Nor was this the result of any want of natural
-sensibility; if it was not that they had too much
-of that quality, which, if it is the source of pleasure,
-is also that of pain—perhaps more of the latter
-than the former, though we dare not say so in this
-our time of angelic perfection.</p>
-
-<p>To be a little more particular upon a peculiarity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">[301]</span>
-of our two ladies, which enters as rather a “loud
-colour” in the web of our story, there was a sufficient
-reason for their celibacy. They had a mother
-who, as the saying goes, was “a woman of price”—such
-a one as Solomon excepts from so many,
-that I am afraid to mention the number. She was
-a good Calvinist, without insisting too much for
-election and predestination. She was affectionate,
-without the weakness which so often belongs to
-doating mothers; and she possessed, along with
-the charm of universal kindness, a strength of mind
-which demanded respect without diminishing love.
-No wonder that her daughters loved her even to
-that extent that neither of the two could think of
-leaving her so long as she lived. An inclination
-this, or rather a resolution, which had been confirmed
-in them by certain experiences they had
-had of what their mother had suffered from having
-been deprived by death of an elder daughter, and
-by marriage of a younger; the latter of whom had
-gone with her husband, a Mr Darling, to Calcutta,
-under the patronage of Major Scott, the friend of
-Warren Hastings.</p>
-
-<p>But there was another reason which kept the
-sisters from marrying—one which will, I suspect,
-be very slow to be believed; and that was, their
-love for each other. But I am resolute in urging
-it, because, in the first place, it is not absolutely<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">[302]</span>
-against the experience of mankind; and, secondly,
-because, while it forms a part of the story as
-narrated to me, it is necessary as one of the two
-sides of a contrast, without which I could not answer
-for a certain effect in my picture. Certain,
-at least, it was that more than one external revolving
-body in the shape of lovers came within the
-sphere of their attraction for each other, and could
-produce no deflection in the lines of their mutual
-attachment. It was said that one of them had
-been jilted. I do not know; but the circumstance
-would explain a fact more certain that the sisters,
-in their then lively humour of young blood, used
-to sing a love-defiance song, which might have
-been both sport and earnest. My informant gave
-me the words. It is a kind of rough mosaic, with
-borrowed verses, yet worth recording:—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">A farmer’s daughter fair am I,</div>
-<div class="indent">As blithe as May-day morning,</div>
-<div class="verse">And when my lover passes by,</div>
-<div class="indent">I laugh at him wi’ scorning.</div>
-<div class="indent5">Ha! ha! ha! fal lal la!</div>
-<div class="indent5">Ha! ha! fal lal laldy!</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">There came a cock to our father’s flock,</div>
-<div class="indent">And he wore a double kaim, O;</div>
-<div class="verse">He flapt his wings, and fain would craw,</div>
-<div class="indent">But craw he could craw nane, O.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">A braw young man came courting me,</div>
-<div class="indent">And swore his wife he’d make me;</div>
-<div class="verse">But when he knew my pounds were few,</div>
-<div class="indent">The rogue he did forsake me.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">[303]</span>
-<div class="verse">Gae whistle on your thumb, young man,</div>
-<div class="indent">You left me wae and weary;</div>
-<div class="verse">But, now I’ve got my heart again,</div>
-<div class="indent">Gude faith, I’ll keep it cheery.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">There’s world’s room for you to pass,</div>
-<div class="indent">And room enough for Nan, O;</div>
-<div class="verse">The deil may tak her on his back</div>
-<div class="indent">Who dies for faithless man, O.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">There’s still as good fish in the sea</div>
-<div class="indent">As ever yet were taken;</div>
-<div class="verse">I’ll spread my net and catch again,</div>
-<div class="indent">Though I have been forsaken.</div>
-<div class="indent5">Ha! ha! ha! &amp;c.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<p>A better medicine, I suspect, than an action of
-damages. But to continue. The sisters read the
-same books, took the same walks, wrought at the
-same work as steadfastly and lovingly as they worshipped
-the same mother, and revered the memory of
-the same father—a remark this last which helps us on
-to a point of our story; for the father had been dead
-for some years, leaving the mother a competent annuity,
-besides a residue, which would afford at least
-so much to the daughters as would tocher them
-to a kind of independence, though not to a husband
-with much hope of being benefited in a
-money point of view by marriage. But the time
-came—as what time does not come, even to those
-who think in the heyday of their happiness it will
-never come—when there would be a change, when
-the charm of this threefold relation should cease.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">[304]</span>
-The mother died, and with her the annuity; and
-the attraction she had exercised over the daughters
-had just drawn them so far past the point of the
-shaking of the blossoms of youth and beauty and
-hope, that their affection for each other stood now
-no chance of being broken by even one of those
-moral comets that burn up more incombustible
-bodies than old spinsters with very small competences.</p>
-
-<p>And so, with bleared eyes of uncontrollable
-grief, and no hope, and a trifle of twenty pounds
-a-year each to be paid them by Mr David Ross,
-writer, their father’s agent, our two spinsters took
-up their solitary residence in the foresaid room in
-the second flat of the big tenement in Burnet’s
-Close to which I have alluded. Even at the first
-moment of their retreat they seem to have shaken
-off with the blossoms, which, in the human plant
-no less than in the vegetable one, alone contain
-the beauties and sweets of life—the stem being,
-alas, only at best the custodier of an acid—much
-of their interest in the busy, gossipping, scandalising,
-hating, and loving Edinburgh; but so far this
-resistance to the charms of the outer world only
-served to make them live even more and more to
-each other. And then, had they not the sweet
-though melancholy solace of that Calvinistic tenet
-which imparted such mildness and equanimity to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">[305]</span>
-the face of their beloved mother—even that mysterious
-scroll which contains the ordination and
-predestination of all things which shall ever come
-to pass? Yes; but even this solace was modified
-by the regret that the portrait of that mother,
-painted by no unskilful hand—a pupil of George
-Jameson’s—was not, as it ought to have been, in
-that room hanging over the mantelpiece; the more
-by reason that that picture had been surreptitiously
-taken away by their sister Margaret when she sailed
-with her husband, Mr Darling, to India. And
-would they not have it back? Mr Ross might tell
-them when he was there on a certain evening.</p>
-
-<p>“You have as good a right to it,” said the man
-of the law, “as your sister; for I believe it was
-never given to her by your mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“No more it ever was,” said Martha; “for did
-not our mother write herself for it, but it never
-came; and she was to have got herself painted
-again, but death came at the predestinated hour,
-and took away her life, and with it all our happiness
-in this world.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not all your happiness, Miss Martha,” rejoined
-the agent; “for have you not your mutual affection
-left?—ay, and even your love for her who is
-only removed to a distance—even among blessed
-spirits?—from whence she is at this moment looking
-down upon you to bless that love which you<span class="pagenum" id="Page_306">[306]</span>
-bear to each other, and which, I trust, will never
-decay.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope not,” said Mary, calmly; “but I remember
-how, when the evil spirit took hold of us,
-and made us fretful and discontented with each
-other, she calmed our rebellious spirits by a look
-so justly reproving, and yet so mild and heavenly-like,
-that for very love of her we would dote on
-each other the more. And now I think if we had
-that picture, with the same eye as if still fixed on
-us, we would be secured against all fretfulness; for
-O sir, we are all weak and wilful. Will you write
-for it, Mr Ross? It would hang so well up there
-over the fire, where, you see, there is an old nail,
-which seems to have been left by the former
-tenant for the very purpose.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will,” replied Mr Ross; “but I may as well
-tell you I have little chance of success, for Margaret,
-I suspect, would nearly as soon part with
-her life. Nor do I wonder at it; for the countenance
-of your mother as there represented seems
-so far above that of ordinary mortals, both in
-beauty and benignity, that methinks,”—and here
-Mr Ross smiled in his own grave way,—“if I ever
-felt inclined to put down six-and-eightpence against
-a client in place of three-and-fourpence, that look
-of hers would bring back my sense of honesty.
-You know I have Mrs Ross over the mantelpiece<span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">[307]</span>
-of my business room; and though she never approached
-your mother in that peculiar expression,
-which your father used to say to me, in a half-jocular
-way, humanised him into that wonderful
-being, a conscientious writer, yet I have been
-benefited in the same way by the mild light of
-my Agnes’s eyes.”</p>
-
-<p>And Mr Ross stopped, in consequence of feeling
-a small tendency to a thickening in the throat,
-which he seldom felt except when he had a cold.</p>
-
-<p>“And you will write Margaret, then?” resumed
-Martha.</p>
-
-<p>“That I will,” said he; “but I do not say may
-Heaven bless my effort, because you know Heaven
-has made up its mind on that and all other subjects
-long ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“Even from the foundations of the earth,” sighed
-Mary.</p>
-
-<p>“Even so,” rejoined Mr Ross as he departed,
-leaving the sisters to their small supper of a Newhaven
-haddock, each half of which was sweetened
-to the receiver by the consciousness that the other
-was being partaken of by her sister. And thereafter,
-having said their prayers, they retired to the
-same bed, to fall asleep in each other’s arms, without
-a regret that said arms were not a little more
-sinewy, or that their faces did not wear beards,
-and to dream of their mother.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">[308]</span>And it would have been well if affairs in Burnet’s
-Close had continued to go on as smoothly as we
-have here indicated. Nor did there seem any
-reason why they should not. The sisters had a
-sufficiency to live on; they had no evil passions
-to disturb the equanimity of their thoughts; they
-were religious, and resigned to the predestinated;
-they were among “the elect,” that is, orthodoxically,
-they elected to think so, which is the same
-thing. They had their house in order, and could
-afford to have Peggy Fergusson to clean out the
-room occasionally, and to go the few messages that
-their few wants required. But Time is a sower as
-well as a reaper; and he casts about with an
-equally ready hand the seeds of opinions and imaginations,
-the germs of feelings and the spores of
-mildewed hopes: some for the young, some for the
-old, but all inferring change from what was yesterday
-to what is to-day; from what is to-day to what
-will be to-morrow. As the days passed into years,
-they appeared to get shorter and shorter—a process
-with all of us, which no theory can explain,
-if it is not against all theory; for if time is generated
-by ideas, it should appear to go more slowly
-the more slowly those ideas arise and pass, and yet
-the practical effect of the working is the very reverse.
-But whatever were the changes that were
-taking place in the habits and feelings of the two<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">[309]</span>
-sisters, they were altogether unconscious of them.
-The indisposition to go out and mix with their
-friends was gradually increasing, as they felt, without
-being aware of the feeling, that they had less and
-less in common with the ways of the world; and the
-seldomer they went out, the seldomer their friends
-came to see them, nor when they did come, did
-they receive any encouragement to repeat the
-visit.</p>
-
-<p>In all this I do not consider that I am describing
-human nature in the aspect in which we generally
-see it; for we more often find in those who
-are advancing into age a felt necessity for enlivenment,
-were it for nothing else than to relieve them
-from solitary musings and the perilous stuff of old
-memories; but here, as it will by and by be seen,
-I have not to do with ordinary human nature.
-These sisters were fated to be strange, and to do
-strange things. The indisposition to go out degenerated
-in the course of some years into a love
-of total seclusion. They never passed the threshold
-of their room; and as time went on, their friends
-gradually renounced their efforts to get either of
-them to change a purpose to which they seemed
-to have attained by the sympathy of two natures
-exactly similar. They probably knew nothing of
-the words of the poet, nor would they have cared
-for them:—</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">[310]</span></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="first">“The world careth not a whit</div>
-<div class="verse">For him who careth not for it:</div>
-<div class="verse">One only duty and one right,</div>
-<div class="verse">That he be buried out of sight.”</div>
-</div></div>
-
-<p>But amidst this strange asceticism the one still
-remained to the other as a dear, loving, and beloved
-sister; and if all the world should be nothing
-to them, they would still be all the world to each
-other. The seclusion had lasted five years since
-the death of the mother, and still no decay of their
-mutual attachment could be observed.</p>
-
-<p>It is here that commences the wonderful part of
-my story,—so wonderful, indeed, that if I had not
-had at second-hand the testimony of an eye-witness,
-confirmed by the traditions of the Close, I
-could scarcely have ventured the recital I here
-offer; not that I consider the facts as unnatural,
-but that the causes which change love into hatred,
-and superinduce the latter often in a direct ratio
-to the former, lie so deep, and are altogether so
-mysterious, that we cannot understand the meaning
-of their being there, and far less how they came
-to be there. Some strange and unaccountable
-change came over these hitherto loving sisters, not
-only at the same time, but without its having ever
-been ascertained that there was any physical or
-moral reason for it. It began to show itself in
-small catches and sharper rejoinders; minim points<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">[311]</span>
-not discernible by their former love became subjects
-of difference. Then the number of these increased
-where the points of contact were, as one
-might say, infinite. They assert that nature resents
-too close an affinity of affection; nor is this
-altogether theory, for we see every day friendships
-which are so close as to merge identities flare
-up into terrible hatreds; and we have scriptural
-authority for the wrath of brothers. A plain man
-would get out of the difficulty in a plain way.
-Those sisters had become discontented because
-they had rejected that natural food of the mind
-which is derived from an intercourse with the
-world; and who does not know that discontent
-always finds a peg somewhere whereon to hang a
-grievance. Where you have many people about
-you, you have a greater choice of these pegs; if
-you are cooped up in a room with only one human
-being within your vision, you are limited; but the
-pegs must be got, and <i>are</i> got, till the whole of the
-one object, a miserable scapegoat, is covered with
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Probably the plain man is right. I leave him
-to the philosopher, and keep to my safe duty as a
-narrator.</p>
-
-<p>The spirit of fault-finding once begun, waxed
-stronger and stronger upon the food it generated
-by its own powers of production. Almost everything<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">[312]</span>
-either of them did appeared to be wrong in
-the eyes of the other; and though for a time they
-tried to repress the sharp feelings, which were
-wonders even to themselves, yet the check would
-come, the taunt would follow, and the flash of the
-eye—an organ once so expressive of love—succeeded
-within the passing minute. People who
-merely meet may be supposed to seek for objects
-of disagreement. In the room in Burnet’s Close
-the occasions were the very actions of natural life;
-the movements of the body, the words of the mouth,
-the glances of the eye, the thoughts of the mind,
-the misconstrued feelings of the heart. Nor could
-they, as in most cases people who disagree may,
-get away from each other. The repulsion which
-they felt towards a world which offered them only
-reminiscences of past joys, was as a wall enclosing
-the arena where these gladiatorial displays of feeling
-went on from day to day, scarcely even interrupted
-by the holy Sabbath any more than if they
-had come within the excepted category of necessity
-and mercy.</p>
-
-<p>According to my information, which descended
-to the minutest particulars, this domestic disease
-went on for years, without any other alteration than
-changes consistent with the laws of bodily ailment.
-There were exasperations which, expending themselves
-in gratuitous vituperations, receded into<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">[313]</span>
-silent sullennesses, which lasted for days. If it
-happened that no grievance could be discovered by
-the microscopic vision, there was recourse to the
-grievance of yesterday, which was called up to
-occupy the greedy vacuum; and then the changes
-of aspect, of which, to the jaundiced eye, it was
-capable, were rung upon it till they were physically
-wearied of the strife: while the weariness
-only lasted till a renewed energy became ripe
-for another onset. But however high the exasperation
-ever reached, they never came to any
-violence. All the energy expended lay in the
-tongue, and the eye, and the contorted muscles of
-irascible expression. It might have been doubted
-whether, if any third party interfered, the one would
-not have defended the other; but only to retain
-her as valuable property for the onset of her peculiar
-privilege. And what is not less strange, their
-religion, which was still maintained with the old
-Calvinistic dogmatism, in place of overcoming the
-domestic demon, became subjected to it, and
-changed its aspect according to the wish. Though
-incapable of inflicting any bodily pain upon each
-other, they felt no compunction in fostering the
-opinion that, while each was among the elect and
-predestinated to everlasting glory, the other was
-in the scroll of the reprobate, and ordained to
-eternal punishment in the brimstone fires, and the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">[314]</span>
-howling horrors of the pit which is so peculiarly
-constituted as to have no bottom. Each would
-read her Bible in her own chair, and shoot against
-the other glances of triumph as she figured herself
-in heaven looking down upon the torments of her
-sister in hell. And all this while neither could have
-with her own hands inflicted the scratch of a pin upon
-the body of the other. It was enough that each could
-lacerate the feelings of the other as a vent to the exasperation
-which embittered her own heart.</p>
-
-<p>Still more remarkable, there were none of these
-reconciliations that among relations often make
-amends for strife, and maintain the equipoise so
-insisted upon by nature. We all know how these
-ameliorations work in the married life and among
-lovers. In these cases the anger seems to become
-the fuel of love. Not so with our sisters. The
-worm was a never-dying one. But even in this
-desperate case there was not wanting evidence of
-nature’s efforts towards an amelioration. It was
-true they could not separate; they were objects
-necessary to each other; nay, even if Mr Ross,
-who witnessed the working of the domestic evil,
-had contrived to get them into separate rooms—a
-proposal which was indeed made, and morbidly
-resisted—they would have pursued each other in
-imagination with perhaps even more misery than
-that which they inflicted on each other.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">[315]</span>At length they came to a scheme of their own,
-so peculiar that it has formed the incident of that
-story which has made it live in Edinburgh through
-many years, and even to this day. The plan was,
-that they should draw in the middle of the floor a
-distinct line of chalk, which should be a boundary
-between them, over which neither the one nor the
-other would ever set her foot. To make this plan
-workable, it was necessary that the two ends of
-the room should be each self-contained as regarded
-the necessary articles of household plenishing; and
-this, by the aid of Mr Ross and Peggy Fergusson,
-was duly accomplished. One of these articles was
-a big ha’ Bible for Martha, to stand against that
-retained by Mary—in explanation of which I may
-inform the English reader that the old Calvinists
-had nearly as much faith in the size of their Bibles
-as in their contents. Nor was the strength of their
-faith altogether irrespective of the kind of cover,
-and the manner in which it was clasped. There
-was a great virtue in good strong calfskin—sometimes
-with the rough hair upon it; and if the clasps
-were of silver or gold, the volume had a peculiar
-merit. It was necessary, therefore, that Martha’s
-Bible should be as big as Mary’s; and the latter
-having been adorned by old Peter Jopp with silver
-clasps, so the former was equally orthodox in this
-respect.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_316">[316]</span>And so the chalk line was drawn. The only
-difficulty regarded the fire; but this was got over
-by some ingenuity on the part of Peggy and a
-workman, whereby the grate was altered so as to
-hold two cranes; and so minute were the engineers,
-that the end of the chalk line came up to
-the hearth, dividing it exactly into two halves; so
-that each crane could be got at without overstepping
-the mark. This arrangement lasted through
-eleven years; and if to that period we add the five
-years of prior strife, this domestic war endured for
-sixteen years; nor, according to the report of Mr
-Ross and Peggy, with that of the good many curious
-visitors who contrived through various excuses
-to get a view of the domestic arrangement, was
-that magic line which thus separated two hearts
-once so loving ever transgressed; nay, it seemed
-to become a point of honour in the two maidens.
-They might read their Bibles on either side of it,
-and send their mute anathemas across it, so as to
-reach the unhappy non-elect; but not a foot of
-either ever trod upon the mark. The foot of time
-might dull it, but the ready hand of either revived
-the line of demarcation, even as the feelings were
-kept alive in undying vividness; all which may
-easily enough be conceived; it contravenes no law
-of nature; but I fairly admit that I must draw a
-strong bill on the credulity of poor modern haters<span class="pagenum" id="Page_317">[317]</span>
-of the Armenian kind, when I state what was on
-all hands acknowledged, that after the chalk truce—that
-is, for eleven years—the residents of this
-room, divided so against itself, never interchanged
-a word with each other. I freely admit that all
-traditions become incrusted by the marvellous.
-We do not reject port wine because it has undergone
-a certain process. Yes; but we do not swallow
-the crust, which is only deposited sugar. So
-be it; and you are welcome to your advantage,
-provided you admit that the raciness you admire
-is the consequence of the deposit; and so, in my
-case, you may reject the eleven years’ silence of
-Martha and Mary Jopp, yet you cannot get quit
-of the tang of the reported marvel. For my own
-part, I am a little sceptical myself; but then I
-cannot prove the negative of a popular statement;
-and I rather doubt if there are many religions in
-the world which are founded on anything better
-than this defiance.</p>
-
-<p>Towards the end of the eleventh year a new incident
-arose to change perhaps the tenor of this
-strange drama. Martha Darling, a daughter of
-the sister Margaret who went to India, was sent
-home to Mr Ross to be educated in Scotland,
-where she was to remain till the homecoming of
-her parents, who had become rich on the spoils of
-Cheyte Sing, or the Begums of Oude, or some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_318">[318]</span>
-other unfortunate Indian victim. The girl was
-generous, and full of young life; and Mr Ross became
-hopeful that by introducing her to her aunts
-some instinctive feelings might be called up in the
-breasts of the sisters which would break up the
-old congelation. He told her the story of the
-chalk line, and got a scream of a laugh for an
-answer, with the threat that she would force her
-aunts to embrace, and weep, and be friends. Next
-day the visit was made, and, designedly, without
-any intimation that the niece had arrived in Scotland.
-On opening the door, Mr Ross found the
-two ladies in that position in which he had so often
-before found them, each sitting stiffly on her own
-side of the chalk line, and looking out of her window
-into the close—for, as I should have stated before,
-the room was supplied by two windows.</p>
-
-<p>“Your niece from India—only arrived yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>No more time for prologue, for the girl flew forward,
-and taking her elder aunt round the neck,
-hugged her very lovingly after the Anglo-Indian
-fashion, and thereafter, making a spring over the
-line of chalk, she ran to Aunt Mary, and performed
-the same operation upon her, but with no emolliating
-result; the old petrefactions, which had become
-harder by the passage of every wave of time,
-were not to be dissolved or softened by the sparkling
-rill from the green sunny mountains. They<span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">[319]</span>
-looked strangely only because they looked unnaturally;
-but that was no reason why Martha the
-younger should change her nature, and so she
-rattled away, every now and then casting her eye,
-with a laugh, at the line of chalk.</p>
-
-<p>“If I had you only in India,” she went on,
-“where the natives, when they drink bang, dance
-such strange dances, you would laugh so. Shall I
-show you?”</p>
-
-<p>And without waiting for an answer, she began
-to make very pretty but somewhat irregular revolving
-movements on the floor, whereby in a
-short time, by the rapid motion of her small feet,
-she contrived to efface the line of chalk.</p>
-
-<p>“Now you can hardly see it,” she proceeded
-with shortened breath; “and now, the nasty thing
-being gone, you are to cross and shake hands, and
-kiss each other.”</p>
-
-<p>But the good-natured girl’s efforts were useless.
-The sisters sat as stiff in their chairs as if
-they had been the figures in a pagoda irresponsive
-to the dance of the worshippers. Even the confident
-will-power of youth, which under-estimates all
-difficulties, was staggered by the resistance offered
-to its efforts, and the young Martha was obliged
-to leave without attaining an object over which
-she had been dreaming the preceding night. Next
-morning the chalk line was renewed, the still air<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">[320]</span>
-of the room in Burnet’s Close had recovered its
-quietude from the oscillation produced by the
-young girl’s laugh, and the demon of obstinacy
-sat enshrined in its niche which it had occupied
-for so many years; nor had the after visits of the
-younger Martha had any better effect towards the
-object that lay nearest to her generous heart.
-And now a month had passed; a particular morning
-rose—not marked by an asterisk in the calendar,
-and yet remarkable for opening with the
-thickest gray dawn that had been observed for a
-time. And here you may already see I am getting
-among the mists, where old Dame Mystery, with
-her undefined lines, is ready to assume the forms
-forecast by brooding fancy. The gloom in the old
-room still hung thick, as the two maiden ladies
-moved slowly about, so like automatons, each preparing
-her cup of tea. So sternly had custom occupied
-the place of primary nature, that it would
-now have appeared more strange and out of joint
-for them to speak than to be silent. And so, as
-the minutes passed, the gray mist of the morning
-gave way to the struggling rays of the sun, and
-now there was something to be seen—nay, something
-that could not be unseen. Nor this the less
-by token that the eyes of both our Martha and
-Mary were fixed as if by a spell upon that part of
-the wall over the mantelpiece. There was hanging<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">[321]</span>
-bodily, in the old frame, and radiant with the
-old light, the real picture of their mother, for the
-possession of which they had sighed for sixteen
-years. We may easily conceive that it could not
-fail of an effect, even as free from the connexion
-of any mystery as to how it came to be there.
-But the question, if put by either to herself or her
-neighbour, could not be answered in any way consistently
-with natural causes, for neither of them
-had been out of the room—nay, neither had been
-in a condition which could have been taken advantage
-of by any one who wished by a trick to take
-them by surprise. Then how catching the superstitious
-when it plays into the hand of our fears!
-As they looked with spell-bound eyes on that apparition,
-and read once more the expression in that
-blessed countenance that spoke peace and love,—reproof
-enough to those who for so many long
-years had disobeyed her injunctions to treat each
-other as sisters, and love each other even as she
-loved them and they her,—they never doubted but
-that some unseen hand placed that picture there
-for the end of chastening their rebellious hearts,
-and bringing them back to that love which was
-enjoined even by Him whom they worshipped as
-the very God of Love. It seemed as if they
-shook as they gazed, and each one at intervals
-sought with a furtive glance the face of the other.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">[322]</span>
-A charm was working among the old half-dead
-nerves that for years had quivered with the passions
-of the devil. The revived feelings of that
-olden time, when that mild loving mother was the
-centre of their affections and bond of love between
-themselves, were in a tumult below the hard crust
-of mutual hatred, that was breaking under the
-touch of the finger of God; they were both of the
-elect, since God took the trouble to chide them
-and recall them to their duty and their obedience.
-The relentings in the hard faces, the rising tears in
-the eyes of both, the tremors in the hands, all
-spoke eloquently to each other; nor did they
-speak in vain; they rose as if by sympathy. “O
-Martha!” “O Mary!” No more; the words
-were enough, and the two sisters were locked in
-the arms of each other, drawing long sighs, and
-sobbing convulsively.</p>
-
-<p>A scene all this which, being apt to precipitate
-one of my disposition into the gushing vein, I
-must leave. I shall be on somewhat safer ground
-as I proceed to say what truth and probability
-equally require, that the paroxysm being over, and
-the two having begun, even as they had done of
-old, to make and sugar each other’s tea, to butter
-each other’s bread, and even to break each other’s
-egg, or bone each other’s small haddock—most
-delightful tricks of love, which selfishness knows<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">[323]</span>
-nothing of, and cannot compensate by any means
-within its power,—they gradually began to doubt
-whether some kindly hand of flesh was not concerned
-in producing the phenomenon of the picture.
-They had both been sound asleep till nine
-o’clock, and Peggy Fergusson had in the gray
-dawn been in the room doing her duty to the fire.
-But what although the Indian elf, who had likely
-brought the picture home with her from India, had
-been put up by Mr Ross to a little deception, and
-had slipt in in the wake of Peggy, and hung it on
-the nail which had been so generously left by the
-old tenant? nay, these spinsters, apart from the
-delusion produced by the demon of obstinacy,
-were sensible women; and in the pleasant talk
-that now flowed like limpid water down a very
-pretty valley with flowers on either side they came
-to the conclusion, with—Oh, wonder!—a laugh
-fighting for utterance among the dry muscles, that
-the fact was just so as we have stated it. What
-then. Was not the effect admirable—yea, delectable?</p>
-
-<p>A conclusion this which derived no little confirmation
-from the fact that the young Anglo-Indian
-came bouncing into the room about eleven o’clock,
-crying, in her spirited way, “Ah, I see it is all
-right,” and yet never saying a word of the said
-picture; but, indeed, the fairy had some work to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">[324]</span>
-do other than of revealing the secrets of Titania to
-her victims, for she straightway set to work with a
-wet cloth to eradicate every trace of that devil-invented
-line of chalk which had so long kept
-asunder good amiable spirits. Nor was she contented
-with even this, for to satisfy her impish
-whims, she got her now changed aunts, nothing
-loth, to cross and recross the place of the now defaced
-line, till all notion of the division was taken
-out of their minds.</p>
-
-<p>It is a pleasant thing for me to have authority
-to say that this miraculous change was not destined
-to be merely temporary. The flow from the
-once secluded fountains of feeling continued its
-stream—nay, it seemed as if the two old maidens
-could not love each other enough, and they had
-been often heard to confess that one hour of pure
-nature was worth all the sixteen years of factitious
-opposition to her dictates. So true it is that, let
-us deplore as we may the many ills of life, we
-shall never diminish them by damming up the
-fountains of feeling and driving the emotions back
-upon the heart. Then fortune favours those who
-are true to nature, who is the mother of fortune,
-and all other occult agencies. The nabob and his
-wife came home the next year, and set up a great
-establishment in our old city. The spinsters were
-gradually drawn out again into that world which<span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">[325]</span>
-they had so foolishly left—we use the word deliberately,
-for hermits carry with them into their
-cells a worse world than they leave behind, however
-unsteady, however cruel, and however vain,
-that may at times seem to be;—nay, we can say
-with a good conscience that our two sisters became
-the very darlings of a flock of young nephews and
-nieces; sometimes danced in a reel of ancient
-maidens; gadded gaily about; sipt their scandal,
-and helped like good citizens to spread the sweet
-poison; and passed many years as happily as can
-be the fortune of those who are contented to live
-according to the laws of nature.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_114.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="tiny" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>Ballantyne &amp; Company, Printers, Edinburgh.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="ph1">TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:</p>
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-
-<p>Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.</p>
-
-<p>The cover image for this eBook was created by the transcriber and is entered into the public domain.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROMANCES OF THE OLD TOWN OF EDINBURGH ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c66b316..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/coversmall.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/coversmall.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4af6ec5..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/coversmall.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/decoline.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/decoline.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c51e34c..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/decoline.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_a.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_a.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1259604..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_a.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_f.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_f.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c2ea2d4..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_f.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_i.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_i.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 30eedab..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_i.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_t.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_t.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a3bacaa..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/dropcap_t.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_001.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_001.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 10fcd8a..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_001.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_012.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_012.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8671c60..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_012.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_013.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_013.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9ff0778..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_013.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_034.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_034.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1d5f8c3..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_034.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_060.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_060.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5a63dfb..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_060.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_087.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_087.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 65c68e9..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_087.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_114.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_114.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 33ba37c..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_114.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_115.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_115.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index af32050..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_115.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_136.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_136.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fa2225b..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_136.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_137.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_137.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6a2bc01..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_137.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_159.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_159.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index be2b080..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_159.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_160.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_160.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 63f8f12..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_160.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_176.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_176.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index dec5c59..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_176.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_177.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_177.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e4188e5..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_177.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_189.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_189.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a985c64..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_189.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_190.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_190.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2726984..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_190.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_299.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_299.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 07b50a1..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_299.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_contents.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_contents.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9a34090..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_contents.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/i_preface.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/i_preface.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3d0871d..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/i_preface.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69051-h/images/title.jpg b/old/69051-h/images/title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 0ff5148..0000000
--- a/old/69051-h/images/title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ